Cornell University Library
HX 279.D2 1899
German socialism and Ferdinand Lassalle;
3 1924 002 265 407
THE
MARTIN P. CATHERWOOD
LIBRARY
OF THE
NEW YORK STATE SCHOOL
OF
INDUSTRIAL AND LABOR
RELATIONS
AT
CORNELL UNIVERSITY
M]^ Cornell University
VM Library
The original of tliis bool< is in
tine Cornell University Library.
There are no known copyright restrictions in
the United States on the use of the text.
http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924002265407
GERMAN SOCIALISM.
GERMAN SOCIALISM
FERDINAND LASSALLE
A BIOGRAPHICAL HISTOR Y OF GERMAN SOCIALISTIC
MOVEMENTS DURING THIS CENTURY
BY
WILLIAM HARBUTT DAWSON
' ' I
Author of
" Germday and the Germans," " Bismarck and State Socialism,"
" Social Switzerland," Sfe.
LONDON
SWAN SONNENSCHEIN & CO., LIM.
NEW YORK : CHARLES SCRIBNER'S SONS
1899
First Edition ...... June, 1888
Second Edition - March, 1891
Third Edition (Revised and Enlarged) • January, 1899
THIS VOLUME IS
§titiaiteb
TO THE REVERED MEMORY OF
MY FATHER,
WHOSE LIFE, SHORT IN YEARS BUT LONG IN GOOD AND USEFUL
WORKS, CAME TO AN UNEXPECTED CLOSE WHILE THE
LAST PAGES WERE IN THE PRESS.
PROPERTY OF LIBRARY
NEW ymK S7;'JE tmpi
fNDUSTFI.U m If MR «?n 4]jQj^^534
CONTENTS.,
Pass
Introduction ... ... ... „. ... i
Chap.
I. Historical Basis of the German Socialist Move-
ment ... ... ... ... ... 15
Development of the Socialistic Idea, 16; Influence of Philo-
sophical, Political, and Economical Factors, 16 ; The French
Revolution, 16 ; Social and Political Condition of Germany a
Century Ago, 17 ; The Stein and Hardenberg Lavrs, 18 ; The Old
Absolutism Restored, 19 ; The July Revolution of 1830, 20 ;
Movements in Germany, 20 ; The Federal Diet Fans the Re-
volutionary Flame, 21 ; A Policy of Repression Adopted, 21 ;
The Insurrections of 1848 and 1849, 22; The Berlin Revolution,
25'; Movements in Baden, 30 ; Results of the Struggle, 32 ;
Dissatisfaction of the Labouring Classes, 33 ; Weavers' Rising
in Silesia, 34 ; Wages of Labour Forty Years Ago, 35 ; Dura-
tion of Life Amongst Various Classes Compared, 36; Prince
Bismarck on Socialism, 37.
II. Early Socialistic and Communistic Theories ... 39
Socialism of Fichte, 39 ;— Johann Heinrich von Thiinen, 40 ;
Sympathy with the Working Classes, 40; The Relation of
Wages to Produce, 41 ;— Wilhelm Weitling, 42 ; Life in
France, 43 ; Literary Activity, 43 ; Communistic Agitation and
Imprisonment in Switzerland, 44 ; Expulsion from Switzerland
and Germany, 44 ; Weitling's Communistic Doctrines, 45 ; —
Karl Mario (Winkelblech), 48 ; His Youth, 48 ; Travels in
Norway, 49 ; Devotion to the Popular Cause, 49 ; Socialistic
vin Contents.
Chap. P*o"
Theories, 50; The Oppression of Labour by Capital, 51 ; "ths
Question of Population, %2 ;— Friedrich Engels, 52 ; His As-
sociation with Karl Marx, 52; Travels in England, 53;
Literary Work, 53 ; Views on Socia 1 Questions, 54 ; Ex-
propriation of the Capitalists, 58 ;— Kad Griin, 59.
III. Karl Rodbertus and the Wages Principle ... 61
Historical Position of Rodbertus, 61 ; His Political Life, 62 j
Withdrawal to the Study, 63; Investigations in Political
Economy, 64 ; Last Years, 64 ; His Theories, 66 ; Labour the
Principle of Value, 67 -, How Wages may be Increased, 69 ;
Rent and Profit, 69 ; The Share of Wages in the Produce, 70 ;
Progress and Poverty, 72 ; Commercial Crises and Pauperism,
73 ; Political Liberty Incompatible with Economic Servitude,
74 ; Danger of the Social Question, 75 ; Remedies Proposed,
76 ; The Normal Work-Day, 77 ; Development of the State,
77 ; Property in Income, 78 ; The Distribution of the Produce,
I 79 J Socialism the Ideal of the Future, 86 j Rodbertus and Karl
Marx, 86.
IV. Karl Marx and Surplus-Value ... ... ... 91
Youth and Entrance into Public Life, 91 ; Editorial Work and
Troubles, 91 ; Residence in Paris, 92 ; A Communistic Coterie,
92 ; Intercourse with Proudhon and Friedrich Engels, 93 ; Ex-
pulsion from France, 93 ; Communistic Agitation in Belgium,
93 ; The Communist M anifesto, 94 ; the February Revolution,
94 ; Another Expulsion, 94 ; A Manifesto Issued from Paris,
94 ; Return to Germany, 95 ; Editorial Difficulties and Prose-
cution for Treason, 95 ; Exile from Germany and Residence in
London, 96 j " Das Kapital," 96 ; Character and Death, 98 ;
Doctrines of Marx, 99 ; Theory of Value and Surplus- Value, 99;
The Produce for the Producer, 11 1 ; Expropriation of the Ex-
propriator, 112.
V. Ferdinand Lassalle ... ... ... ... 114
Parentage and Youth, 114; Precocity as a Child, 115; His
Studies, 116; Visit to Paris, 116; Friendship with Heinrich
Heine, 116 ;| Literary Activity, 116; The Affairs of Countess
Hatzfeldt, 117; A New Social Reformer, 117 ; Eight Years of
Law, 119; Participation in Revolutionary Movements, 120;
Contents. Ix
Crap. Page
Imprisonment and Trial, 121 ; The Doctrine of Non-Resistance,
122 ; First Literary Production, 123 ; Writes a Tragedy, 124 ;
Residence in Berlin, 125; A Lion of Society, 126; Declines a
Duel and Thrashes his Opponent, 126 ; Further Literary Activ-
ity, 127 ; Entrance into Public LiiFe, 127 ; Attitude During the
Conflict Time, 127 ; Theory of the Constitution, 128 ; Prosecu-
tions, 129.
VI. Organisation of the Working Classes ... ... 133
Influence of the Constitutional Struggles of 1848-1850 and the
Reaction, 133; The Arbaterbiidungsvereine, 133; Repression of
Democratic Movements, 134; The Press Coerced, 134; Schulze-
Delitzsch and the Co-operative Movement, 135 ; Rivalry of
Lassalle, 138; Organisation of the Labour Party, 139; Lassalle
becomes its Champion, 139 ; Formation of the Universal Ger-
man Working Men's Association, 144.
VII. The Productive Association ... ... ... 145
Lassalle's Agitation, 145 ; Negociations with Rodbertus, 145 ;
■Why Rodbertus Kept Aloof from the Movement, I46; Ambitious
Designs, 147 ; The Bourgeoisie, 150; Literary Helpers, 151 ; Dis-
couraging Results, 153 : A Crusade on the Rhine, 155 ; Endeav-
ours to Win Berlin Over, 156 ; Arrest and Indictment for High
Treason, 156.
viii. Failure of Lassalle's Agitation ... ... 158
Further Agitation, 158 ; Mental Worry and Physical Suffering,
158; The Working Classes not Ready, 159; Lassalle in the Law
Court, 160 ; Acquittal and New Prosecutions, 162 ; Triumphal
Progress on the Rhine, 164 ; the Ronsdorf Meeting, 164 ; The
King of Prussia and the Bishop of Mayence, 165 ; Relations
with the Prussian Minister President, 167; Prince Bismarck's
Confession in the Reichstag, 168 ; Trial and Conviction, 170 ;
Disaffection in the Association, 171 ; Travels in Switzerland, 172 ;
Two Lassalles, 172.
IX. Lassalle's Death ... .. ... ... i74
Visit to the Rigi, 174 ; A FataUstic Meeting, 174 ; Helene von
Donniges, 174 ; Disappointed Love, 179 ; Lassalle's Duel and
Death, l8o ; Burial at Breslau, 181 ; Effect of His Death in
Germany. 181 i Results of His Agitation, 183.
Contents.
Chap. Fag»
X. Characteristics of Lassalle, the Man and the
Agitator ... ... ... ... ... 184
Lassalle's Combative Nature, 184; Early Republican Tenden-
cies, 184 ; Strength and Weakness, 185 ; Extremes of Passion,
185 ; His " Daimonic Presence " and His Intellectual Powers,
186; Public and Private Morality, 187; The Exoteric and the
Esoteric Lassalle, 187 ; Sincerity of His Democratic Sympathies,
188 ; His Ambition and Vanity, 189; His Power and Success as
an Agitator, 191 ; Lassalle as an Orator, 191 ; Style is the Man,
194 ; a Law-Court Oration, 196 ; Lassalle's Historical Posi-
tion, 198.
XI. Lassalle's Socialism ... ... ... ... 199
Social Evolution, 199 ; Reform and Revolution, 200 ; Might
and Right, 201 ; Economic Views, 202 ; The Servitude of the
Labourer, 203 ; The Iron Law of Wages, 203 ; The Productive
Association, 205; The Duty of the State, 205; Universal Suffrage,
207 ; Lassalle's Socialistic State, 208 ; The Mission of a F'ree
Press, Z09 ; Protest against Laissez-faire, 210 ; the Origin of
Lassalle's Theories, 211 ; Influence upon Him of his Contempor-
aries, 211 ; Ricardo's Wages Law, 211 ; Ateliers Sociaux and
Nationaux, 212; Theory of Acquired Rights, 214 j Views on
Inheritance and Succession, 217 ; Logical Deduction from the
Sfime, 217.
xn. Development of Social-Democracy ... ... 219
Later History of the Working Men's Association, 219 ; Bernhard
Becker, 219 ; Establishment of the Social-Democrat, 226;
Schweitzer's Presidency, 222 ; Growth of the Radical Elements,
223 ; Wilhelm Liebknecht, August Babel, and the International
Association, 224 ; The Chemnitz Democratic Programme, 224 ;
The Eisenach Congress and Programme, 226 ; The Social-
Democratic Working Men's Party, 226; The Effect of the
French War upon the Socialist Movement, 229 j Fusion of the
German Socialist Parties, 231 ; Programme of the New Federa-
tion, 231.
xin. The International Association 234
Early Attempts to form an International Labour Party, 234; the
Communist Manifesto, ajs ; Formation of the Internationa!
Contents. xi
Chap Pacb
Working Men's Association in London, 238 ; Rivalry of Karl
Marx and Mazzini, 238; Marx becomes President, 238; The
Geneva Congress and Social Reform, 240 ; What is the Proleta-
riat ? 240 ; Congress of Lausanne and the Property Question,
240; The Brussels Congress and the Nationalisation of the Land,
241 ; Michael Bakunin and the International Social-Democratic
Alliance, 241 ; The Basel Congress, 242; Influence of the French
War, 242; Congress at the Hague, 243; Marx proclaims Revolu-
tion, 243 ; The Geneva Congress and the Jura Federation, 244 ;
A Rival International, 245 ; Congress at Ghent, 245 ; Later
History of the International, 246.
XIV. The Era of Repression ... ... ... ... 247
The Government Tries Coercion, 247 ; Why Prince Bismarck
Turned Against the Socialists, 247 ; Socialism in the Reichstag,
248 ; How to Get at the International Association, 248 ; Failure
to Secure International Action, 249 ; The German Pr^ss Laws
Sharpened, 249 ; Hodel's Attempt on the Emperor William's
Life, 249 ; Rejection of the First Coercion Bill, 250 ; Nobiling's
Attempt, 250 ; A Measure of Repression Adopted, 254 ; Prince
Bismarck's Views on Socialism, 254 ; Provisions of the Socialist
Law, 255 ; Reorganisation of the Party, 2S7 ; Abuse of Free
Debate in the Reichstag, 258 ; The Government Attempts to
Restrict the Privileges of Members, 259 ; Most, Hasselmann, and
the Revolutionary School, 260 ; The Assassination of the R|Usgian
Emperor Leads to Renewed International Negociatioqs/ -262 ;
The Administration of the Socialist Law, 263 ; State Socialism,
265; The Niederwald Plot, 267; Liebknecht's Criticism of Prince
Bismarck's Social Reforms, 268 ; The " Right to Work," 269 ;
Bebel Charged in the Reichstag with Advocating Regicide, 272 ;
The 1887 Elections, 274 ; Numerical Strength of Socialism in
Germany, 275.
XV. Present Aspect of the Socialist Movement ... 279
The Election of 1^90, 279; The Repeal of the Social-
ist Law, 280; The Elections of 1893 and 1898,
381 } Socialist Propagandism in Rural Districts, 282 ;
xii Contents.
Chat. ^ Pagk
August Bebel, 284 ; His Literary Activity, 286 ; " Republican-
ism, Socialism, Atheism," 286 ; Bebel's Socialistic State, 28? ;
Organisation and Agitation of the Social-Democratic Party, 290 ;
The Socialist Press, 291 ; Dissemination of Socialistic Litera-
ture, 291 ; Police Measures, 291 ; State Socialism, 292.
Index. 393
INTRODUCTION.
In the election to the German Reichstag which took place early last
year, nearly eight hundred thousand votes were cast for Socialist
candidates, and the Social-Democratic party claimed, not without
reason, that altogether nearly a million SociaUsts took part in the
election. That is a stupendous fact. What is its significance ? At
the time of the election the number of men qualified, by the comple-
tion of the twenty-fifth year, to vote was estimated at nine and three
quarter millions. Thus one in ten could be regarded as a Socialist,
it is, however, a well-known fact that a large proportion of the
Socialist army is made up of young artisans, operatives, and labourers
from the age of eighteen upward, so that the figures given by n''
means represent the full strength of the party in Germany. These
are facts which will bear a good deal of careful pondering. Let us
think of Socialism as we will, it is not to be pooh-poohed out of exist-
ence. Here it is, a great power in our civilisation, a momentous
factor in national life.
It can hardly be called an idle task to trace the growth of this vast
social force in Germany, for not only may Germany be regarded as
the classic land of modern Socialism, but other countries, both Con-
tinental and Transatlantic, are fed with SociaUstic doctrines from
this copious fountain. Further, England bears a certain amount of
responsibility for the German Socialist movement. Apart altogether
from the influence exerted by English political economists and
Socialists upon the representatives of scientific Socialism in Ger-
many, it must not be forgotten, that many of the active leaders of
militant Communism, Socialism, and Social-Democracy — ^for example,
German Socialism.
Marx, Engels, and Liebknecht — spent years upon English soil, and
made England a base of operations, much to the disgust of the
German authorities. The works and agitation of these men prove
that their experience of England's free institutions only served to
increase their dissatisfaction with the state of things prevailing at
home, so that it is not too much to say that England has, innocently
and indirectly, contributed very largely to the success of Socialistic
propagandism in Germany. Now, however,'the influence is reacting,
as the study of the nomenclature of Socialists in England will plainly
show.
Nowadays few subjects excite more controversy than does this* of
SociaUsm, and yet it seems still impossible to treat it in an impartial
and strictly scientific spirit. Too many writers on Socialism show a
disposition to use their pens as though they were broadswords' rather
than lancets. A great deal has been said and written in defence of
Socialism and quite as much against it, but while the extremes have
been followed times without number, the golden mean has far too
seldom been found. It seems so natural to the average mind to
•regard a thing as either good or wholly bad, as either true or quite
false, as either meriting full acceptance or complete rejection. This
dogmatic spirit inevitably does great harm, and not the least serious
result is that pubUc judgment is warped and weighty questions do not
receive the attention which they deserve. Yet another reason, how-
ever, why Socialism has not had justice done to it is the confusion of
ideas that prevails on the subject. Nor is this confusion confined to
the least informed part of the community. The fact that a leading
London journal could a short time ago insist that " Socialism under
whatever guise it presents itself must be crushed with a heavy hand,"
proves that very curious notions exist even in educated circles. It
may, indeed, be allowed that it is not altogether possible to draw a
clear dividing-line between conventional and Socialistic economic
principles. Social systems may be said to grow into one another as
do barbarism and civilisation, and, moreover, it is nearly always
easier to say what a thing is not than what it is ; Dr. JohnSon recog-
nised thjg when ^sHed tg define poetry,
Introduction.
Still, it should not be difficult to determine the main character-
istics of Socialism, those characteristics which cause it to differ
from orthodox economy. True Socialism, as the word implies,
is the antithesis of economic Individualism. The true Socialist
seeks to realise the principle of co-operation in labour and com-
munity in the instruments and produce of labour. Association
is to take the place of competition. Labour is to be the prin-
ciple of society, and to labour both capital and property are to be
made subordinate. Every member of this new society will be
expected to work, and his share in the produce of labour will be
proportionate to his deserts. Socialism — however paradoxical it may
seem — may thus be said to involve as a corollary the highest form of
Individualism, the highest form because it is founded on the principle
of equality. The present individualistic rdgime is based on the prin-
ciples of complete personal freedom, private property in land and
capital, and free contract in the adjustment of economic relationships.
Socialism, on the other hand, while maintaining the principle of,
personal liberty, makes land and capital collective — whether in the
hands of the State or of communities is a subordinate question— it ■
rejects the system of private undertakership, abolishes rent-income in
all forms, supplants the wages-contract, and regulates both production
and distribution according to plan and method.
While, however, this is Socialism carried to its full Iqgical limits, a
great number of more or less modified forms of Socialism exist, or
the English statesman who recently declared that " We are all
Socialists now," would have been guilty of a misapplication of terms.
It is undoubtedly true that everybody is, if he only knew it, more or
less of a Socialistic turn of mind. Jourdain did not know until someone
told him that he had been speaking prose all his life ; and a parallel
might well be drawn between the bourgeois gentilhomme and the un-
conscious Socialist of modern times. Indeed, no more singular
inconsistency exists than that of subjects of a civilised State declaring
against the Communistic and Socialistic principle. For this principle
has been extensively adopted in all the most progressive countries, and
gome of our most highly esteemed institutions are based upon it. The
German Socialism.
State post, telegraph, railway, and bank, the free school, the poor law
system, the factory laws, sanitary legislation — these are all institutions
which must be unconditionally condemned if Communism and
Socialism are evil in theory. The fact is, that it is all a question of
degree ; it is not a matter of rejecting a principle but of determining
how far it should be carried.
It can hardly be necessary, however, to say that the Socialism con-
sidered in the following pages is not a modified form. In Germany
to-day, the schools of Socialists are more numerous than Liberal
factions here. In addition to the Social-Democrats there are Inter-
national, State, Academic, Christian, Catholic, and Conservative
Socialists. Of the chrysalides it is, however, impossible to take
account here. Attention must rather -be directed to the development
of the Socialism which has latterly taken the character and name of
Social-Democracy — its why and wherefore, its whence and whither.
This Socialism we shall find to be something more than a
scientific system. In Social-Democracy not alone the economic,
but the political element comes into play, though the political
demands are only means to the attainment of economic ends. The
political character of the German Socialistic movement will be recog-
nised at every step in the course of our review. Indeed, with one
conspicuous exception all the modem leaders of German Socialism
have recognised the insufficiency of a purely scientific programme.
In undertaking this task I went upon the well-grounded supposition,
that Socialism was no exploded theory, no page of ancient and
forgotten history. I held rather that it was a power to be reckoned
with, a power which if of error must be grappled and fought with out-
right, if of truth must be allowed ungrudgingly the success which has
attended it in the past, and may attend it in the future. Men never
commit a greater mistake than when they refuse to acknowledge facts.
[ Let us treat theories as we will, facts must be recognised, and it is in
the highest degree unwise to close our eyes to them. Militant
Socialism is to-day a great fact. Even the most zealous of anti-
Socialists should and must grant this. For the sake of his convictions
he ought to admit the folly of trying to persuade himself that there is
tntroductton. %
no antagonist to meet, for while he is doing this the foe is strengthen-
ing his position. Only two attitudes can be taken up on this question.
(«.) It is possible to refuse to enter into argument, on the principle
that there is no disputing with fools. It is hardly necessary to say
that this is pure petitio principii. When such a standpoint is adopted
it is probably because of unfamiliarity with the facts. Those who
hold that Socialism is mere folly and nothing else must remember in
what a sweeping assertion the contention involves them.
"If Social- Democracy," says one of the most thoughtful critics
of the Socialist movement in Germany — " If Social-Democracy were
really ' absurdity itself,' and ' evident nonsense,' the fact that perhaps
a million of our citizens [these words were written ten years ago]
adhere to it would be a reproach to our civiUsation, our nation, and
our age, a reproach so severe and oppressive that it could not be borne
any longer." What holds good of Germany is equally applicable to
other countries. By ridicule and denunciation no valuable purpose
can be served. They are weapons which never scar an antagonist,
but always injure those who bear them.
(^.) The other attitude is that of toleration combined with scrutiny.
This is a reasonable attitude, and is, moreover, the only one which can
to-day be of any avail. Let Socialistic doctrines be fairly met, let
them be faced in the impartial arena of scientific combat — let them
be vanquished if we will, but in any case let them be faced. It is idle
to rest content with the assumption that Socialism is identical with
error, and, as a consequence, does not deserve serious notice. Battles
are never won by the mere consciousness of superior strength.
Achilles overpowered Hector, but he had first to don his armour, and
quit the tent. Until he awoke from lethargy, the Trojan chief was in-
vincible.
What has just been said, refers to the critics of Socialism. On the
other hand, it is not too much to ask that our advanced Socialist
writers should exercise moderation in the treatment of those who,
th6ugh unable to see with them eye to eye, are not less desirous than
themselves of improving the condition of the poorer classes. They
may be certain that alone they cannot expect to fight the battle of
6 German Socialism,
social reform and win. Let it be granted that the well-abused
baurgeoisit, of which so much is said, has not done its duty in the past.
Can there, however, be no indemnity, no amnesty, even for that part of
the class which recognises the resporisibilities of the present, the
claims of the future? Is it for ever to be "war and implacable
hatred ? " If so, the hope of a beneficent social revolution is a vain
delusion, and all that is certain in the future is the development of in-
equality into class feuds similar to those which often showed themselves
during the long struggle of the Roman patricians and plebeians. It is
not necessary or desirable to minimise the criminal iniquities of our
social system, but it is a duty imposed alike by patriotism and regard
for morality and progress to work out the reformation of society by
means which will not more than is absolutely unavoidable conduce to
friction and heartburning. Conciliation is called for on both sides —
moderation on the one hand, and willing sacrifice on the other — but
this shown, it were a reproach upon our generation, nay, upon man-
kind, if, after so many centuries of civilisation and progress, after so
long cultivation of arts and institutions which, rightly employed, should
make for social peace and happiness, we should have to acknowledge
the impossibility of readjusting society by methods that humanise and
elevate rather than degrade.
Here I must take care to say tjiat as these pages have been written
for English readers, innumerable matters of detail, both in history and
biography, as well as unnecessary local colour, have been omitted.
The peculiar character of the task added certainly to its difficulty, but
it is hoped that there will be little cause for complaint on the score
of too great succinctness. The twofold danger of over-conciseness on
the one hand, and prolixity on the other, was always present. If
failure should have attended the author's efforts in this respect, it is
not because his leading purpose has ever been forgotten,, that of re-
ducing an almost infinite amount of literary material to such compass
that the patience of an English reader of average forbearance might
not be unreasonably tried. It seemed t)ften, indeed, an ill-paid task,
that of wading through the flood of German literature which has been
called forth by the Socialist movement. A German writer has well
tntroductioH.
said that "The traces of German Social-Democracy are buried be-
neath a deluge of wastepaper." No one who has not devoted attention
to this subject on the spot, can conceive of the magnitude of the biblio-
graphy of German Socialism. Even now books and panjphlets con-
tinue to pour from the press, and there is no sign of exhaustion in the
supply. What made the task of research less agreeable than it would
have been was the character of the literature that had to be consulted.
Unfortunately, the Socialist movement has not yet reached, even in
Germany, the stage at which impartiality and fairness or even decent
toleration can be looked for, and, judging from present appearance, it
will be long before the subject is treated in a truly scientific and his-
torical spirit. Of course, the earlier works err more than the later,
but even these often leave much to be desired. Invective, abuse, and
misrepresentation are frequently found to be the stock arguments of
both friend and foe of the Socialist movement, and the reader be-
comes at last wearied and aggravated. Strange to say, writers who
begin by urging the importance of calm inquiry, often end by being
as hot-tempered as the rest. At the same time, it must not be for-
gotten that there are very distinguished exceptions, and it is only
necessary to mention the names of Wagner and Schaffle, of Von
Scheel and Held, of Lange, jager, Meyer, and let me add Prince
Bismarck, as those of men who have brought broad and unbiassed
minds to the consideration of Socialistic theories. On the whole,
however, agreeable exceptions like these are like rare oases in the
midst of interminable desert. I have not thought it advisable under
the circumstances to publish a list of the works used, for even if there
were no objection on the ground of unequal importance, the extent of
such a list — which would comprise some three hundred works, not to
speak of Parliamentary, pamphlet, and periodical literature^would
rule it out of court. As a substitute, I have here and there mentioned
the leading works on special branches of the subject, and the writings
of all the important Socialistic and Communistic authors referred to
are invariably named.
Special prominence has been given, and I venture to think with full
right, to the personality and work of Ferdinand Lassalle. Lassalle
8 German Socialism.
deserves the distinction accorded to him both by reason of his service
to the Socialist cause in Germany and of his most remarkable char-
acter. I have elsewhere spoken of Lassalle as having been a product
of his age, but this does not exclude the likelihood that without him
German Socialism, as we now know it, would have been kept back a
generation. Franz Mehring contends that Social-Democracy was
not a result of the spirit of the time, but was called forth by the "ener-
getic will of one autocratic man." Such a view I believe to be wrong,
and based upon a misinterpretation of history, yet all the same must
we allow that Lassalle gave to the Socialistic tendencies of his day an
impetus which none but he could have given. This is not the place
to speak of the character of one whom Alexander von Humboldt
called in his youth a prodigy and regarded in his manhood as a friend ;
one of whom Heine spoke as the Messiah of the nineteenth century ;
whom Prince Bismarck was glad to meet on terms of familiarity and
intellectual equality, and to listen to with something like Boswellian
zeal ; and whom hundreds of thousands of German working-men have
regarded or still regard as a heaven-sent champion of their cause.
This much may, however, be said here, that a man of this sort was no
ordinary man, and that no one who takes the trouble to obtain his
evidence at first hand, and to form an original opinion deliberately
and impartially — regardless of the hatred of enemies and the adula-
tion of friends — will be able to resist the conclusion that he stands in
■ the towering presence of an intellectual giant. If I may be thought to
betray admiration for some sides of Lassalle's character, it is because
search reveals much grain amongst the husks, much gold beneath the
dross. At present justice is seldom done to Lassalle by his country-
men, for public judgment still sways from extreme to extreme. Ii is,
however, refreshing to come across such an unbiassed verdict as that
of Professor Adolph Wagner, who has never ceased to preach the duty
of judging Socialism upon its merits, and has recorded the following
estimate of Lassalle : " There can no longer be any difference of
opinion," he says, " with either friend or enemy of the great Socialist
agitator as to the fact that, by reason of his activity, he has become
a great historical personage." Hitherto comparatively little has been
Introduction.
known of Lassalle and his work in England. Indeed, the entire ten-
cur of his social aims has at times been completely misunderstood, or
the late Mr. Fawcett could never have spoken of this passionate
Nationalist as the founder of the International Association. In view,
therefore, of the inadequacy of encyclopedic biographies, and of the
fact that Lassalle's historical position is higher now than ever it was,
the biographical chapters devoted to this part of my subject will not,
perhaps, be thought superfluous. In order to understand the German
Socialist movement aright it is absolutely necessary to know the part
played in it by Ferdinand Lassalle, and this part cannot be properly
understood unless we also inquire what manner of man Lassalle
was.
It will soon be seen that this work in no way pretends to be critical.
Criticism lay beyond the province of my task, which was purely his-
torical. To have interpolated opinions would have been taking sides,
and thus the standpoint of disinterestedness from which it is desirable
to approach a work of this kind would have been departed from, and
that without benefit to the thinking reader. I had only to chronicle
tlie views and acts of others ; it was not my business to pass judg-
ment, but merely to assemble evidence, so as to enable the reader to
pronounce his own verdict. It may be said that a somewhat colour-
less narrative is the result. Whether that be the case or not, I am
persuaded that any other course than the one pursued would have
been wrong. As to terminology little need be said. In explaining
the doctrines of men like Rodheitus and Marx, a number of more or
less unfamiliar expressions have necessarily had to be used, but few,
if any, will be objected to on the ground of obscurity. Expressions
like land-rent and capital-rent, capital-property and income-property,
bourgeois society and bourgeois economy, labour-power and labour-
faculty, surplus-value, capitalistic production, and the Uke, may at
first appear odd to some, but the oddness will soon wear off. The
German Unternehmer\tsA been rendered undertaker, ' a word whose
value Mill recognised, and Arbeiter^ when used in a general sense,
appears under the variable forms of workman, working-man, and
labourer. The term Social-Democracy is of comparatively recent
ro Qermdn SociaUsni.
origin, and in the later chapters the term Socialism is frequently used
for the sake of variety.
One of the most interesting questions to which the study of German
Socialism gives rise is — whither is it leading ? That question no one
can confidently presume to answer, for speculation .must necessarily
be based upon supposition. The replies which are, however, hazarded
may be grouped into two classes.
(a) The prophets of the one school hold that Social-Democracyis head-
ing for Anarchism, and they point to the declaration of the party
leaders for proof. But it should not be forgotten that there is such
a thing as appeal to fear even when no intention to use violence exists.
Probably no great body of men made more noise, and did less damage
in proportion to the magnitude of their professions, than the Char-
tists. I am not prepared to say that German Social-Democracy will
ultimately go the way of English Chartism, but we have here at any
rate a striking historical parallel, where two great movements have"
arisen from causes very similar and have developed by very similar
means. Whether the parallel will hold good throughout, the future
can alone show. Those who look upon the German Social-Democrats
as exclusively or largely friends of violence do so from unacquaint-
ance with the facts. Tlyis is what a Conservative writer, who is one
of the chief authorities on this question, says :
" I recommend influential men to attend Socialist meetings, so that,
they may get rid of the preconceived opinion that the Socialists are
as a rule sluggards, rowdies, and coarse fellows. Nothing of the sort.
The majority of them are honest working-men, to whom the warlike,"!
attitude in which they stand towards society is painful enough." ^
" Oh," it is objected, "the Socialists are propagating their doctrines
in the army: what does that mean?" Of course, with universal
military service, there must be a large number of Socialists in the
army, but it does not follow that a man is unpatriotic because he is a
SociaUst. It is possible that the SociaUsts regard themselves as the
true patriots, and all other men as enemies of their country, for here
the judgment is apt to be wholly subjective. The subject of Socialism
1 R. Msyer, "Die bedrohliche Entwickelung des Socialismus."
Introduction. it
in the army was discussed several years ago by a German So'cialist
Tjrho wrote in La Nouvelle Rivue^ and in the course of a remarkable
article it was hinted that the presence of political malcontents in the army
might one day prove disastrous for Germany. After contending that
the control of the rank and file on the field of battle tends in modern
warfare to become increasingly lax and imperfect, and that the soldier,
provided with as many cartridges as he can carry, is now his own
officer and acts according to inspiration, this writer continued :
"Prince Bismarck, after having gagged the working-men, believes
he has obtained their votes ; but the working-men have not given
them to him. If he entrusts them with arms for the fighting of his
enemies or the realisation of his projects, what use will the working-
men make of those arms ? Will they abide by the logic of their votes ?
Upon the answer which the future will give to this question depends
the existence of the German Empire."
Against the views here indicated rather than expressed we have to
place the in general pacific character of the cool-blooded German ;
the hitherto quiet development of Social-Democracy; the fact that on
several occasions the doctrine of violence has been repudiated, even
to the extent of expelling its advocates, as Most and Hasselmann, from
the ranks of the party ; and the reiteration only last year by the St.
Gallen congress of firm adherence to legitimate and peaceful means of
agitation. During the French campaign not a few prominent Social-
ists did yeoman's service under Prussian colours, and both during and
after the war the Socialist movement suffered seriously, a proof clearly
tihat if Socialists have taken up arms against the Government it is
not because they love their country the less. It is, moreover, signifi-
cant that when during a debate on the Army Bill in January, 1887,
Prince Bismarck remarked that the French Socialists would stand by
their country in case of war, a voice cried from the Social-Democratic
benches, "And so will we ! " To the incendiary speeches which are
occasionally made, too much importance should not be attached. At
any rate we English people ought not to act as censors in such a
1 La NmvelU Rimie, March, 1882 ; article on "Le Socialisme en Allemagne," by "Un
Socialiste Allenias4."
1 2 German Sociakstk.
matter. It cannot be forgotten that most of the important political
and social reforms won in this country during the past century — to go
no further back— have been accelerated by popular irritation and
threat.
(5.) The other school of prophets trusts that the social legislation of
Prince Bismarck will ultimately succeed in removing the roots of
Socialism, and that the movement will thus in process of time die out
for want of aliment. It must be admitted that this prediction is the
more likely of the two. It is too soon to pass any but a theoretical
judgment upon the German Chancellor's social reforms, which are still
far from complete. Only after a number of years will it be possible to
arrive at a verdict based upon adequate evidence. The departure is
an altogether new one, and thus Prince Bismarck may be compared to
a mariner sailing in unknown seas. While, however, we must defer
our judgment upon his policy, we may at once admit that he is the
first German statesman who has really tried during the last sixty or
seventy years to do anything to improve the lot of the labouring popu-
lation. More than that, he is the first European statesman who has
dared to take the social problem in hand with the determination, not
indeed to solve it — for that is a task which he himself has admitted
will require generations, but to pave the way for solution. It is im-
possible to say whether the Accident and Sickness Insurance Laws al-
ready passed, and the Old Age and Indigence Insurance Law whicTi is
now under consideration, will accomplish all that is desired, but there
can be little doubt that Prince Bismarck has discovered where the
roots of the social evil He. He has declared, in words that burn, that
it is the duty of the State to give heed, above all, to the welfare of its
weaker members ; he has vowed that no opposition and no obloquy
shall ever deter him from giving practical proof of that conviction ;
and he has already advanced a good step on the way of State
Socialism, in which he and thousands of thinking men with him alone
see hope for the future of society and civilisation, whether in Germany
or elsewhere. The task of pacifying the working classes will not be
accomplished in a short time. The roots of the evils existing goj too
deep for that. Even if success ultimately attend the Chancellor's
Introduction. 1 3
efforts, it can only be expected after many years, and, it may be added,
after the policy of coercion has been abandoned. For the Socialist
Law must be pronounced an absolute failure if the vast growth of the
Social-Democratic party since 1878 can be regarded as a proof of
failure. But the worst of coercion is that when it is once begun, it is
diflScult to stop, since stopping would be to admit defeat, and to give
to those from whom the pressure is relaxed, direct encouragement to
persist in their aims. And yet it is questionable whether Prince Bis-
marck could make a wiser move than to gradually relinquish excep-
tional legislation and to try to meet the SociaUsts with the telling
argument of social reform. The Begriindung to the Socialist Law
said, " Thought cannot be repressed by external compulsion," a,nd the
history of nearly ten years of coercion has proved the truth of this.
Whatever opinion we may after full consideration form of the
Chancellor's internal policy, we must allow to the man himself the
virtue of sincerity, a virtue not always characteristic in these days of
the public acts of statesmen. Further, philanthropy and charity de-
mand that we shall wish him success in the great undertaking upon
which he has embarked, an undertaking whose objects are none less
than the removal of the wrongs of a vast and ever-increasing class,
and the restoration of social peace to a great country.
" Holder Friede,
Susse Eintracht,
Weilet, weilet
FreundUch uber diesem Land,"
W. H. D.
February, iS
GERMAN SOCIALISM.
CHAPTER I,
HISTORICAL BASIS OF THE GERMAn
SOCIALIST MOVEMENT.
Grkat national movements never attain maturity in a day or a year.
Their progress is avalanche-like, gradual, steady, and often impercept-
ible, "without haste yet without rest," like the march of the stars.
Now and then, indeed, strong currents of national feeling carry vast
bodies of men and women along with irresistible force, but movements
of this kind generally succumb to their own vehemence and passion,
and in ninety-nine cases out of a hundred they are short-lived, and
fail wholly or in part to fulfil their purposes. Movements which ap-
pear and disappear in this abrupt fashion cannot be said to be national
in the fullest sense of the word. They indicate a nation's moods
rather than its real character ; they may even belie its real character,
as the foam the colour of the stream. On the other hand, movements
which go right to the heart of a people, which remould its mind, and
become part of its very life and being, are slow of growth, yet the
slowness of maturity is itself a sign of vigour and an earnest of long
life. Such movements alone deserve to be re'garded as really national,
and in this category falls the Sociali st movement in Germa ny, as well
as the Democratic movement in England. Movements of this kiiid
create new eras. But before a new era can dawn countless events
must have led up to it ; various forces must have been at play, whose
work, often done unseen and in quiet, could have had no other result
than the inauguration of a fresh order of things. One social system
has its day and is followed by another — which, however, is not neces-
sarily an improvement upon the past — but the new system is bom of
the old and is not an independent, unconnected growth, In social
1 6 German Socialism.
evolution as in nature, nothing is done per saltum. These considerar
tions should be carefully borne in mind in investigating a subject like
that of Socialism.
How, then, did Socialism originate in Germany ? The causes may
be grouped into three classes according as they are philosophical,
political, and economical. Though, however, the influence of men
like Fichte and Hegel was of great importance during the first half of
the century in determining the views of many leading German Socia-
lists now dead — and notably those of Karl Marx and Ferdinand Las-
salle — the principal impetus came from political and economic factors,
whose operation may be said to have begun with this century. Yet,
again, purely economical movements played a part quite secondary to
that played by political. Indeed, it will be safe to say that German
SociaUsm owes its existence above all to the political movements
which fell to the period between the Napoleonic conquest and the
constitutional struggles of 1848 to 1850. From first to last the econo-
mic phase of the question has been secondary to the political, for
poUtical demands have been constantly kept in the foreground. That
this is the case will be clearly seen as we trace the progress of the
Socialistic idea. It is customary to look upon the French Revolution
of last century as the starting point of modem developments in politi-
cal and civil liberty. How far this is just to the influence wrought
upon the European mind by the -English Revolution of the seventeenth
century and the American Revolution of 1775 is a question foreign to
our purpose. But at the time a new gospel was being preached in
France amid thunder, lightning, and tempest, Germany was not
ready for the reception of doctrines intended to revolutionise society.
Generations of absolute rule, strife within and without, absolute chaos
in territorial arrangements, had taken much of the spirit out of her
peoples. The States were like the disjointed links of a shattered
chain. Even Prussia, if strong as a military power, was weak in so
far as her population lacked ttie qualifications essential to a robust
and intelligent national life. Thus political principles which in-
spired the ardent French mind with passion did not arouse in the
German mind the barest enthusiasm. Allowance must, of course, be
made for national characteristics. With all his love for the mystical
and the theoretical, the Teuton is no wild visionary, and much less is
he by nature revolutionary. This fact goes far to account for the
Historical Basis. 17
meagre success which incendiary doctrines and violent movements
have always enjoyed in Germany, and for the shortness of their
ascendency even when they may have gained the upper hand. To
the thoughtful student of German social questions, perhaps the most
remarkable feature of the present Socialist movement is the fact that
an earnest agitation in which a million men are concerned is carried
on in absolute peace and almost without a hint at violence — making
exception for casual rhetorical vapourings, which mean nothing —
and that in spite of circumstances which would not fail to incite
less phlegmatic natures to acts of fierce retaliation. The pacific
progress of Socialism in Germany is not only a fact of importance
historically, but it is one encouraging to all who hope for a satis-
factory settlement of diflSculties which may now appear to defy
solution.
Yet another factor must be considered in explaining the slight direct
effect produced in Germany by the French convulsions of last century,
and that is the social condition of the people. The extremes of wealth
and poverty were not then what the development of industry has since
made them. Germany was behindhand as an industrial country.
While England had been revolutionising industry, Germany had been ■
revolutionising philosophy. The capitalistic system, to use a favourite
expression of the Socialists, did not properly exist. Paternal govern-
ment, with its guilds and legal institutions for restricting individual
action, and for adjusting the relationships of man with man,'had done
a great deal to delay the era of the "great industry" in Germany,
and the class of small independent handicraftsmen continued numer-
ous there, after it had dwindled into insignificant proportions in
England. The standard of life was altogether lower than now, andf
the labouring classes were on the whole worse off, but on the otherl
hand the distance between the social status of the employer andt
that of the dependent workman was far less than to-day. The
industrial workman was miserably situated, but he was fairly satis-
fied with his condition, which he had learned to regard as suited
to his class. All the aspiration he cared to indulge was centred in
the hope that he might end his days as he had begun them, and that
his children might not fare worse than himself. Similarly, the rural
labourers, living in serfdom, were in an unhappy state, but here agaiii
there was no memory of happier days to gall them and to put salt
B
1 8 German Socialism.
into their wounds, and their social condition was at least not worse
than their political.^
Even if Germany had offered a fertile soil for the doctrines which
were proclaimed in 1789, events soon followed which were for a time
discouraging to the growth of a free spirit. The new century brought
to Germany misfortune after misfortune, until at last she lay at the
feet of a relentless conqueror, exhausted and bleeding at every pore.
But the darkest hour is that which precedes the dawn. The year
after Prussia was vanquished and trodden to the dust at Jena, there
was inaugurated in that country a series of legislative reforms which
did more than all succeeding military successes to regenerate the
nation and create a new and higher spirit of patriotism and independ-
ence. The Stein* and Hardenberg* laws — emancipating the rural
population, granting modified freedom in the choice of crafts,
introducing peasant proprietorship and a form of self-govern-
ment, abolishing freedom from taxation, and in short sweeping
away feudal rights and privileges — did all their authors expected
of them, for they put Prussia upon a new footing and gave her
a new lease of life.^ In a peaceful way these radical reforms did
1 Baron vom Stein writes in a letter to Frau von Berg, April 22nd, 1802 : " I have travelled
through Mecklenburg. The appearance of the country displeased me as much as the cloudy
northern climate : great fields, of which a considerable part lies in pasture and fallow, ex-
tremely few people, the whole labouring class under the pressure of serfdom^ the fields
attached to single farms seldom well-built ; in one word a uniformity, a deadly stillness, a
want of life and activity diffused over the whole, which oppressed and soured me much. The
abode of the Mecklenburg nobleman, who keeps down his peasants instead of itnproving their
cOTiditioH^ strikes me as the lair of a wild beast, who desolates everything around him and
surrounds himself with the silence of the grave." Seeley's " Life and Times of Stein," vol.
i., p. 13a (Cambridge, 1B78).
3 Baron Hbinrich Friedrich Karl vom Stein, one of Germany's greatest statesmen and
patriots, bom October 26th, 1757, at Nassau. He entered the service of the Prussian State
in 1780 and helped more than anyone else to rekindle the national spirit during the time
Prussia lay at the feet of Napoleon I. On the signing of the Peace of Paris he withdrew to
his estates and died July 29th, 1831, at his castle of Kappenberg, in Westphalia. A statue
of Stein, erected by a " grateful fatherland," stands in one of Berlin's squares.
8 Karl August Prince von Hardenberg, a worthy colleague of Stein in the regeneration of
Prussia, was bom at Essenrode, May 31st, 1730. As a diplomat and statesman he played a
prominent part in the history of Germany during the years 1791 to 1815. He died on the
way to Genoa, November 26th, 1822
4 Theodor von Schon, who travelled in England in 1798, found our agricultural population
infinitely superior to the Prussian land-serfs. He writes : " It was through England that 1
Jiecaine f. statesman. Where the labourer, busy among the cabbages, called out tp me in
Historical Basis. 19
for Prussia what the Revolution of 1789 did for France ; they sounded
the knell of a feudalism which had for centuries kept a large part of
the population in servitude.'- At last the Liberation Wars ended
triumphantly, and the French yoke was thrown off. During these ex-
hausting wars the German princes had repeatedly promised to their
subjects a wide extension of civil liberty, but few of them redeemed
the promise. Some of the South German States, like Bavaria and
Baden, received all they had bargained for, 'but the rest — including
Prussia, whose King, Frederick William III,, had solemnly undertaken
to give his people a constitution'' — were more or less bitterly deceived.
The old police regime was continued, the printing press was subjected
to stringent control, and popular liberty was gradually hemmed into
the old limits ; the disturbed absolute State was, in fact, irevived. In
some places the press censorship was so severe that even visiting
cards could not be printed until the signature of the censor had been
obtained. The citizens of Berlin were not allowed to smoke in the
streetSj and when one of the newspapers ventured to suggest that
the prohibition might be removed from the adjoining Thiergarten, it
exultation that be had read that my King (Frederick William lil.) was about to join the
coalition against France along with England — there you have, in the truest sense of the
word, public life." Seeley's " Life and Times of Stein," vol. i., p. 376.
1 " It is impossible not to see that the legislation begun by Stein and afterwards continued
by Hardenberg waa similar in its durable results to the work of the French Revolution. It
accomplished changes of the same kind and comparable in extent, though by a perfectly
regular process," Ihid,^ vol. ii. p. 173.
The events of this period did not fail to produce popular literature applauding the emanci-
pating measures. A curious little work was published early in i8o3 — of course anonymously
— with the sufficiently explanatory title, " Der Adel, was er urspriinglich war, was er jetzt ist,
und was er kunftig seyn soil ; Ein Angebinde zum Geburtstage aller Hchtadlicken Herren
und Damen, insbesondere auch ftir die Herren von Jena und AuerstSdt." {" The nobility,
what it was origins^Uy, what it is now, and what it should be in future. A birthday present
for all really noble gentlemen and ladies, and particularly for the gentlemen of Jena and
Auerstadt."} The motto is :
** When Adam delved anti Eve span
Where was then the nobleman % "
3 On May 2and, 1815, King Frederick William published an ordinance decreeing that a
National Assembly should be formed out ot the Provincial Estates, to which end a cammission
"composed of intelligent public officials and residents of the Provinces" should "without loss
of time " be appointed to undertake " the organisation of the Provincial Estates, the organisa-
tion of the Representatives of the Country, the elaboration of a written Constitution according
to the principles laid down." Seeley doubts the wisdom of Kardenberg in pledging the king
to so much at a time inauspicious to constitutional reform. At any rate the scheme fell to the
ground. §e? Seeley's " Life and Times of Stein," vol. iii., part ii., chapter 1,
20 German Socialism.
received orders to preserve silence upon the subject for the future. In-
dependence had been won for the nation, but the individual was still
unfree. But worse days than ever came for the democratic cause after
the poUtical murder of Kotzebue^ by Karl Sand's jn igig. The
Prussian Minister-President is said to have exclaimed, when he heard
of the Mannheim assassination, "Now a constitution is impossible."
The Governments hardened their hearts, and a perfect crusade against
democratic movements took place, the starting-point being the
Karlsbad resolutions of August and September, which marked the
high-water level of the reaction. And yet, in spite of coercion and
repression, the aspiration for deliverance grew. One of the " sweet
uses " of adversity was to give the oppressed a higher estimate of firee
citizenship. But there was no organisation, no concerted action-r-
this was out of the question — and for want of union the growing
democratic tendencies required long years to their fructification.
Thus it was that the Paris revolution of July, 1830, found the German
democracy with lamps out and with cruses dry. The suddenness and
violence of the storm, however, did not fail to produce a considerable
impression. Baden, Wurtemberg, Bavaria, Hanover, Brunswick —
where the reigning duke was deposed — Saxony, and Hesse showed
signs of uneasiness. Prussia, however, remained quiet. Here a
succession of peaceful years, good if illiberal government, moderate
taxation, and a popular king had brought the people into such a frame
of mind that hazardous experiments were thought unwise, and the
general feeling was one of tolerant satisfaction with the existing state
of affairs. At one time it appeared as though Germany would escape
serious convulsion. The demands advanced in the States aflfected by
the revolutionary spirit were as a rule very moderate, extending merely
to the requirement that constitutions should be granted where they
did not exist and be observed where they did. The Federal Diet,
however, fanned what had only been smouldering embers into alarm-
1 August P. F. von Kotzebue, a fertile writer of comedies, born May 3rd, 1761, at
Weimar. He was for years in the Russian service, first as administrator and then as political
spy, in which latter capacity he lived at Weimar and Mannheim 1817 to i8ig. He was
stabbed at Mannheim by Sand on March 23rd, i8ig, as an enemy of Germany,
2 Karl Ludwig Sand, born October sth, 1795, at Wunsiedel, a theological student and a
fanatical patriot. After assassinating Kotzebue he tried to take his own life, but did not
succeed. He was executed at Mannheim, May 20th, 1820. That Sand was prompted to his
murderous deed by religious and patriotic zefd canj^ot be doubted, but murder is murder, and
1^^ died on (he sc^£Eul4.
Historical Basis. 21
ing flames. Meeting at Frankfort-on-Main on November 2Sth, 1830,
it adopted resolutions declaring it to be the duty o^ every Government
to give military help to its neighbours when called upon, restricting the
freedom of the Press further than before, and urging the various
executives to be chary of surrendering to the revolutionary elements
in the population. The measures taken on the- strength of these
resolutions worked well for a time, and the hour of danger seemed to
have passed away, when the Polish revolution broke out, and it was
found necessary to adopt a still sharper coercive policy. On October
27th, 1831, the Diet by resolution refused to receive petitions in the
future, and prohibited the collection of signatures for the same. Hav-
ing thus guarded itself against the possibility of popular appeal, it
followed a fortnight later with a series of stringent measures, including
the complete crippling of the Press. These measures aroused
earnest opposition in some of the Diets of South Germany — those
of Bavaria, Baden, and Wurtemberg in particular — but the Bundestag
looked on with perfect indifference. Finally the dissatisfaction of the
disaffected Houses expressed itself in a threat to refuse taxes, and
then a course still more extreme was taken. The Federal Diet issued
on June 28th, 1832, six ordinances declaring the inability of the
estates to withhold the granting of taxes, and upholding the integrity of
the Federation, the Bundestag, and the federal sovereigns. The
effect oftheordinanceswas to restrict the authority of the Diets very con-
siderably and to proportionately increase the power of the Bundestag.
Popular liberties were entirely destroyed. Protests rose in all parts of
the country, but they were without result, for the Governments at once
proceeded to give effect to the federal decisions. It was a conspiracy
between the Bundestag and the Governments to manacle the elected
Chambers and to prevent agitation and the free expression of objec-
tionable views. In some parts of Germany harsh measures were
adopted against not alone revolutionary, but advanced Liberal leaders,
and the Press was treated with scant courtesy, suppression, confisca-
tion and menace becoming the order of the day.
There is no doubt that the Bundestag and the Federal Governments
were themselves responsible for the revolutionary flame which now
blazed in various parts of the country. Had a policy of moderation
and concession been adopted at the first, it is probable that all difficul-
ties would have been tided over, but temperate counsels were unfortu*
ii2 ' German SociatisrH.
riately unheeded, and when once the hand had been placed to the
plough there was no looking back. At last the more fiery menibers
of the revolutionary party determined to make a final effort to kindle
insurrection. Confiding in the readiness of the nation to turn upon
its unconstitutional rulers, they, founded the Vaterlandsverein at
Frankfort as a centre of agitation and secret conspiracy. The associa-
tion was joined by South German Radicals, North German students,
German refugees living in France, and Polish emigrants, and the end
in view was a general revolution in which the Bundestag should be
overturned and a German Republic should be proclaimed. The great
scheme miscarried ; all that came of it was an outbreak of insignifi-
cant proportions at Frankfort on April 3rd, 1833, followed by the
wholesale punishment of participants and suspected conspirators,
many of whom, however, fled the country. It was evident that past
measures had been insuf5cient to grapple with the revolutionary spirit
that was rife, and now, at the convocafion of Prince Metternich, a
congress of Ministers was held at Vienna during the winter of 1833-
1834, and a series of still harsher measures was resolved upon. The
Press was placed under stricter censorship, the universities were
subjected to control, freedom of speech and publicity of debates were
restricted in the Chambers, and the ordinances of the Governments
were given the force of law. Repression of this kind may curb men
in their acts and the outward expression of the convictions which are
in them, but it is seldom successful in curbing the spirit that prompts
to action. It was so in this case. The coercive policy was diligently
pursued and quieter tinies followed, but the democratic movement
won a moral victory, even though its practical ends were apparently
defeated.
What is known as-t be G erma n Socialist i 7invprppr)t- rlati^c^ t'OWftHg;;)
— JCi^S^S^"^' ^^ ^'^'^ — from the year 1848. All that preceded was
preparatory, but in 1848 GSrinariylnay be saia"To" hav'e'Torffisny^
opened her doors to Socialism. It was then that the working classes,
— the great proletariat which was henceforth to play such an inport-
ant part in the country's political and social history — first learned their
power. Until then they had been like an untried Samson, having
giant strength, but strength potential and not yet displayed. They
were at last to discover what could be done by union. The results*
achieved by the popular party during the struggles of 1848 to i8sor_
tfistorical JSasis. i^
fell, it is true, far short of expectations, but the significance of wh?i^
occurred in these years consisted less in the positive successes won
by the democracy than in the important lesson learned by the
rulers, that the democracy was a power which could no longer be un-
derrated, and much less be overlooked. The effects of this lesson
can be traced in all the subsequent political history of Germany
and above all of Prussia. It would obviously be out of place to
follow all the events which filled the momentous period in Germany's
history which extended from 1848 to 1850, and yet the chronicles of
the time cannot be altogether passed over. Prussia took the lead in
the popular movements which now excited the nation. King Frederick
William III. died in June, 1840, and when his son Frederick William
IV. came to the throne universal hopes of better days for liberty were
entertained. These hopes were strengthened when the king declared
that, having as Crown Prince been the first nobleman in the land, he
intended as king to be the first citizen ; and moreover gave a definite
promise of various reforms. But it was not long before these pleasant
expectations were dispelled. As a man, Frederick William IV. had
many very good points ; as a king, he had many bad ones. He early
displayed a vacillation and a love of mysticism and unpractical theoris-
ing in the art of government which boded ill for the aspirations of his
subjects. No one doubts that the king meant well when he sought to
realise a Christian State, a sort of civitas Dei adapted to modern re-
quirements, but all the same his experiments were mischievous.
Seven years after his accession the king, in his own way, redeemed
the promise of his father to grant a constitution. " Am I not bound
as an honourable man,' he wrote to one of his Ministers in 1845, "to
fulfil what my father promised ? " But the views of the king and of
the nation on constitutional questions were very different. A charter
of February 3rd, 1847, made out of the Provincial Estates a United
Diet but its powers were only nominal, and the king let it be known
that he had no intention of relinquishing his claim to divine right.
" I feel bound," he said in a speech of the following April, "to make
the solemn declaration that no power on earth shall move me to con-
vert the natural relationship between sovereign and people— with us
especially so powerful because cf its inner truth— into a conventional,
constitutional relationship, and that I will neither now nor ever allow
a written paper to interpose like a second providence between ouf
24 German Socialism.
Lord God in heaven and this land, in order by its paragraphs to
govern us and to replace the sacred fidehty of old." A declaration
like this was not likely to give satisfaction to those who had for years
been striving after constitutional government, and had hitherto re-
mained quiet in the belief that royal pledges, if long in fulfilment, would
eventually be redeemed in full. Nor was such a declaration of the
divine authority of absolutism at all calculated to have a pacifying
effect if times of ferment came again.
Ten months later, such times came. In February 1848, the City
of Insurrection, as Carlyle has called Paris, gave once more to the
friends of revolution a signal for activity. The barricades were
thrown up, the Tuileries fell into the hands of the populace, the gaols
were opened, the city was given over to anarchy, Louis Philippe, the
Citizen King, abdicated, and a Republic was proclaimed. The effect
of this new outburst of insurrection was felt all over Europe. Thrones
tottered or tumbled, and kings trembled or fled. In Germany hardly
one person in a hundred had any inclination to take part in re-
volutionary designs, but a powerful influence was produced on all
political parties, extreme and moderate alike. The first thought of
many of the lesser sovereigns was that of escaping with a whole skin,
and so in some of the minor States terms were speedily concluded
with the revolutionary agitators, whose demands, after all, were not
inordinate. In Prussia, however, blood was shed, and a settlement
y^^far more diffigult. Here the Government was called on to grant
akYrfte constitut^n and liberty of the Press. There wasaxSLdegiand-^s
' ; for a [Republic ; all that was required in the German States
'/Or^s MonarcKjTTiftnfy establishgd—uppn a constitutional basis. There
yrere, indeea7"^^uBlicans7but their number was small, and their
'voice was hardly heard. The Paris Revolution was followed by a
week of perfect calm in Germany. Had the princes used that precious
time wisely, very much of the succeeding trouble might have been
averted,- but the opportunity for compromise was frittered away, and
only when the voice of discontent became angry and menacing, was
the gravity of the situation recognised. On March 1st, the Bundestag
issued a proclamation to the German people in which it spoke glibly
of national unity, pretended to sympathise with the aspirations of- the
party of consolidation, and promised to promote national interests
with greater zeal than in the past. The proclamation fell flat ; people
Historical Basis. 25
only smiled satirically, for they had heard the same thing before.
Petitions and addresses began to pour down upon sovereigns and
Governments. The principal demands were . constitutional govern-
ment, freedom of religion and the Press, public administration of jus-
tice, right of meeting and of coalition, and universal military service with
free choice of leaders. Nor were demands wanting on the part of the
Prussian iiroUtariat. A cry rose for the organisation of labour, for
State guarantee of work for the unemployed masses, and fiar a Labour
Ministry. All sorts of social reforms were spoken of. Some people
wished for co-operative associations ; some desired organisations for
shortening the hours of labour, for raising wages, and for the emanci-
pation of women ; and yet others only saw salvation in savings banks
and loan associations. Demands of this kind, however, were innocent ;
it was the political movement which caused the Governments most
alarm. The sovereigns of Bavaria, Baden, Brunswick, Hanover,
Nassau, Saxony, Wurtemberg, and Prussia all yielded sooner or later
to the force of circumstances, and granted or promised reforms, some
far-going and all conceived in a liberal and democratic spirit. In
Bavaria and the Grand Duchy of Hesse, however, there was a change
of rulers. The Bavarian king had, indeed, alienated his subjects by
his mad amours, and Louis I. was glad to give place to his son
Maximilian IL^ Saxony and Baden were also seriously affected,
but the brunt of the revolutionary storm fell upon Prussia.
It soon became manifest that King Frederick William IV. was not
a man capable of dealing with a severe national crisis. When a Ber-
lin deputation waited upon him, he answered quite frankly, " When
»11 around everything is boiling, I certainly cannot expect that in
Prussia alone the popular temper will remain under freezing point."
Nor did it, for the Berlin street fights, which have since borne the
name of the March Revolution, formed one of the chief events of that
troublous period. The Rhine Provinces gave the signal for insurrec-
tion, for there an agitation arose for connection with France in case
great constitutional reforms were not adopted in Prussia. This move-
I Louis (Ludwig) I. of Bavaria, bom August zstli, 1786, ascended tlie throne in 1823,
He was a patron of art and science, and was favourably known as a poet, but his wea(!-
minded devotion to the notorious Lola Montez turned the fidelity of his people into disgust.
He died at Nice, February agth, 1868. Maximilian II. reigned until 1864. He was born
November 28th, i8ii. His successor was the unhappy Louis II., his son, who met a tragic
death in i886
26 German SociatisfH.
ment encouraged the party of discontent in Berlin. The Press was
loud in its demand for constitutional changes and greater civil liberty.
It was a time of popular meetings, demonstrations, deputations, ad-
dresses and petitions, but these were shortly to give place to bloody
conflicts between the iiiiob and the military. The king at last broke
silence. Pressed on all sides, and heartily desirous to see the peace
preserved, he issued, on March lith, a Cabinet Ordinance in which he
announced his desire to aid in the re-organisation of the confederation
and to rule in a liberal spirit, and he also convened the United Diet
for April 27th. Unfortunately for the king's designs, the Austrian
help upon which he had relied was not to be had, for the day before
the issue of the ordinance Metternich had fallen. But apart from this,
the royal proclamation did not give pleasure to the democratic party.
It required the nation to wait a while longer in patience, and the
nation was already tired of waiting. The excitement in Berlin grew
intenser than before, and the king was compelled to make further con-
cessions. On March i8th, he published the famous proclamation in
which he promised a constitution and freedom of the Press, convened
the Diet for April 2nd, and proposed the re-organisation of Germany
and the federation of the States on a new and more national basis.
The populace became enthusiastic, and in the afternoon of this day a
great assembly gathered before the Royal Castle, for the purpose of
acknowledging the king's munificence. King Frederick William re-
peated his assurances, and the people answered with frantic cheering.
All went well until the presence of a body of military was observed in
the courtyard. Why was it there ? Soldiers were out of place when
a king was amongst his people. And so suspicion was excited, and
while one part of the crowd called for the removal of the soldiers,
another made them a butt for sarcasm and affront. This treatment
enraged the infantry, and, accidentally or purposely, several shots left
their ranks. No one was injured, but the scene soon became one of
confusion and uproar. The cavalry stationed in the adjoining Lust'
garten regarded the shots as a signal for action, and approached with
the intention oi clearing the streets. The people now believed that
they were the victims of a pre-arranged plot, and while one set of
voices loudly spoke of treachery, another cried, " To arms I The
barricades I "
A time of anarchy and carnage was at hand, and it lasted until ^
Historical Basis^ 27
dawn of ihe following day. The king passed the dreadful night of
Saturday, March i8th, in close deliberation with his Ministers, most of
whom were opposed to a policy of surrender, and strove to nerve the
irresolute monarch to determined resistance. But the king insisted
upon taking his own way, and on the morrow he issued a proclama-
tion "To my dear Berliners," in which he prayed for the cessation
■of hostihties. " Hear the paternal voice of your king, inhabitants of
my faithful and beautiful Berlin," said the flesperate monarch, "for-
get what has happened, as I will from my heart forget it, for the sake
of the great future which will, with God's blessing of peace, open up
for Prussia, and through Prussia, for Germany. Your loving queen
and truly faithful mother and friend, who lies very ill, unites her sin-
cere and tearful entreaties with mine." A deputation of citizens
waited on the king in the forenoon, carrying the ultimatimi of the popu-
lace, which was that the barricades would not be removed or arms be
laid down until the troops hiad been withdrawn from the city. The
monarch hesitated, but finally yielded to the popular demand, much to
the disgust of both his advisers and the military. Three hundred
persons had fallen to the fire of the troops during the struggles around
the barricades, and in order to humiliate the king still more the
popular leaders resolved to give distinguished burial honours to these
" heroes of the Revolution." The bodies, garlanded with flowers, but
with wounds displayed, were conveyed on cars or biers into the court-
yard of the castle, and there the attendant mourners sang a dirge and
demanded the appearance of the king. Frederick William came for-
ward as required, his consort on his arm, and baring his head before
the ghastly scene repeated all his promises once more, after which
the corpses were removed. Revolution had conquered in Berlin, and
both king and military lay prostrate before it. The Prince of Prussia,
who had been wrongly suspected of having commanded the guards in
the attacks on the populace, had meanwhile left Berlin on a " secret
mission " to London. When this became known the mob formed the
resolution of burning down his palace, with' which the Royal Library
would have been destroyed. This idea was, however, abandoned,
and the more harmless one of declaring the building to be national
property was conceived. Accordingly " Nationaleigenthum " was
painted in large letters on the front of the palace^ and everybody was
satisfied.
28 (rertttan Socialism.
On the 2oth, panic spread over Berlin again. Nothing had been seen
of the guards, which had been withdrawn the previous day, and their
absence gave rise to the fear that the king was meditating another
surprise. People talked of a plan which had been detected of falling
on Berlin; and supposition soon passed into conviction. No one
slept in Berlin that night. The cry "To arms," was raised anew,
the barricades appeared once more, and when the sun rose on the
morning of the 21st, it looked down upon a city armed and arrayed as
for conflict. A very small matter would have sufficed to rekindle the
smouldering embers of anarchy, but no soldiers came upon the scene,
and the alarm passed gradually away. A strange scene was witnessed
in Berlin that day, when Prussia declared herself to be the leader in
the movement for the regeneration of Germany. In the forenoon,
King Frederick William, accompanied by his Ministers, and a vast
following of citizens and students, marched from the castle, and carry-
ing German national colours^which adorned the castle, palace, and
houses on the route — passed along the Linden. Here and there the
king stopped and addressed the assembled populace on the purpose of
the singular demonstration. Before the nationalised palace of the
Crown Prince he said : " I bear colours which are not mine, but I
usurp nothing thereby. I seek no crown, no dominion, and only de-
sire Germany's unity, Germany's freedom, and order^-that I swear to
God. I have only done what has already often happened in German
history ; when order has been trodden under foot, powerful princes
and dukes have seized the banner, and placed themselves at the head
of the entire nation ; and I believe that the hearts of the princes will
beat in unison with mine, and that the will of the nation will support
me." There were voices which greeted this declaration with cries of
" Long live the German Emperor 1 " but the king rebuked all such
ebullition of feeling. On the same day the king issued an " Appeal
to my people and to the German nation," wherein he justified the
step he had taken and laid down principles for a Prussian and a Ger-
man constitution. " I have to-day assumed the old German colours,"
he said at the close of this interesting composition, " and have placed
myself and my people under the venerable banner of the German
Empire. Prussia is henceforth absorbed in Germany ! "
The burial of the victims of the street fights took place on March
22nd, and the procession to Friedrichshain was made up of members
Historical Basis. 20
of the governing authorities, trades unions, guilds, the civic guard,
municipal ofiScials, students, and citizens, while half Berlin lined the
road to the burial ground. The two hundred coffins had the day
before been exhibited before the churches on the Gendarmenmarkt,
and they were now conveyed with solemn pomp, and amid the Strains
of (uneral inarches and the flutter of innumerable banners, to the
woody knoll which had been chosen as the last resting-place of Berlin's
revolutionary martyrs. The procession passed the Royal Castle, from
which, as from private houses, black banners hung, and the king with
bared head looked down upon the weird scene from a balcony, giving,
as it were, to the March Revolution a final mark of royal sanction.
For several months Berlin continued in a state of extreme excitement.
When' the political demands were no longer thought to be in danger,
the social aspect of the revolution became more conspicuous. The
condition of the working classes was miserable to begin with^ and the
period of anarchy had made it still worse. In order to provide work
for the unemployed the municipal authorities began undertakings in-
volving large expenditure, though their value to the city was small.
All sorts of excesses were committed, and for a time the Ministry felt
powerless to grapple energetically with the forces of disorder. It was
feared that any attempt to unduly curb the populace would lead to a
renewal of the March horrors, and so small evils were tolerated in the
hope of staving off great ones. At times rank mob-law prevailed.
One day towards the end of May a crowd of some thousands of
labourers flocked to the residence of the Labour Minister and de-
manded work. The bewildered Minister could not give an answer
on the spur of the moment, and offered a gift of money, but this acted
like oil upon flames. "We are not beggars," cried the excited mob,
"we are free working-men; we do not want alms, but work," and
they refused to accept the gift. The difficulty was tided over by a
compromise ; work was promised in three days' time, and as the
unemployed were meanwhile without means they were lent money
sufficient for the purchase of food. Events like this were of frequent
occurrence. It was emphatically a time of ferment and insecurity, for
none knew what the following day might bring forth. And still with
the exception of a rude civil affray in October, the crisis passed away
without further appeal to arms. The fire of insurrection gradually
burnt itself out.
30 German Socialism.
It is manifestly impossible to refer here to the efforts made at this
time to reorganise Germany — to the proceedings of the National
Assembly at Frankfort, which led to the election of the King of Prussia
as " hereditary Emperor of the Germans," an honour declined, or to
the measures taken by Prussia and Austria, separately and jointly,
with a view to a new, if not a better federation — ^for these solely
concern German constitutional history. Notice must, however, be
taken of the several further risings which make up the revolutionary
record of the time. On April 12th, 1848, Friedrich Hecker,'^ the chief
member of the Opposition in the Baden Second Chamber, and a
jurist held in high esteem, proclaimed a German Republic at Constance.
The town was enthusiastic, but only twelve hundred persons were so
zealous in their Republicanism that they were prepared to appeal to arms.
Hecker led his followers forth, and on the 20th there was a collision
with the Government troops at Kandem. The commander of the
latter. General von Gagern, was shot dead, but the insurgents were
compelled to take flight. Hecker escaped to Basel, and abandoned
his ambitious scheme in disgust and despair. The struggle was,
however, continued by Gustav von Struve,^ who, supported by a
handful of ill-armed men, boldly proclaimed the Republic at Freiburg
on April 22nd. Two days later General Hoffmann fell on the town
and drove the insurgents out with great loss. Meantime, Georg
Herwegh,8 a lyrical poet and an ardent Republican, had been en-
deavouring to raise reinforcements, but when his men had been dis-
persed at Dossenbach on the 27th by a party of Wurtemberg soldiers,
the insurrection collapsed. The same month a Polish rising occurred
f 1 Friedrich Karl Franz Hecker. bom at Eichtersheim, in Baden, September 28th, x8zz,
studied law at Heidelberg, and became an eminent jurist. As a member of the Second!
Chamber of Baden he acquired through his eloquence and popular sympathies a leading
position, and on the revolution breaking out in 1848, he plunged into insurrectionary schemes.
He took part in the American War Of Secession.
2 Gustav von Struve, bom October nth, 180S, at Munich. He was first envoy's secretary
at Franlcfort, and later advocate at Mannheim. He early gave in adherence to the Re-
publican party. When his attempts in Baden failed, he went to Switzerland and afterwards
to America. In 1863 he returned to Germany, and he died in Vienna, August 2ist, 1870.
S Georg F. Herwegh, lyrical poet, bom at Stuttgart, May 31st, 1817, and studied at
Tubingen. He early joined the revolutionary movements in Germany and Switzeriand, and
for years lived in the latter country and in France as a political refugee. His last years were
spent in Paris, South France, and Baden-Baden, where he died April 7th, 1875. He was a
friend of Heine, IJeranger, ^d George Sand. Hefwegh was a German William Morris.
Histot ical Basis. 3 1
in Posen, but it was suppressed by Prussian troops. A second
attempt to overturn the Government was made in Baden by Struve —
Hecker had in the meantime gone to America — ^in September. During
the night of the 2oth-2ist of that month Struve with five hundred
men occupied the village of Lorrach and issued thence proclamations
" in the name of the Provisional Government of Germany," one of
which, beginning " German Republic ! Prosperity, education, Uberty
for all ! " declared the abolition of all military burdens and feudal
services, personal and monetary ; the forfeiting of all property in the
hands of the State, the Church, and citizens taking the side of the
princes, which property was provisionally to pass into the hands of
the parishes in which it was situated ; and furthermore announced
that a progressive income-tax would take the place of all existing
imposts, and that military service would be compulsory between the
ages of eighteen and forty. At the head of three thousand adherents
Struve left his village retirement in order to take possession of his new
dominion, but General Hoffmann, now Minister of War, hurried with
troops from Karlsruhe, and the insurgent leader withdrew to Staufen,
which he prepared to barricade. On the 24th the Government troops
were before the town, which was in a few hours reduced, and the
rebels had to escape as best they could. Struve left Staufen when he
saw that all was lost, and tried to raise a fresh band of followers.
Arrived at Wehr, where the news of his defeat had preceded him,
he was betrayed by men tempted by the reward offered by the
Government, and was handed over to General Hoffmann.
An unimportant rising also took place at Dresden on May 3rd, 1849,
the causes being the reaction and the arbitrary dissolution of the
Chambers. The few troops which formed the garrison were over-
powered, and King Frederick August was compelled to retire to Konig-
stein. The revolutionary party formed a Provisional Government, at the
head of which were Heubner,Todt, and Tschirner, Republican Deputies,
but their incapacity spoiled any slight chance of success which the move-
ment might have had. The king despatched troops to Dresden, and
these being seconded by a small Prussian force, the rising was speedily
put down. In the same month of 1849, Struve, released from prison,
made a final attempt to bring Baden over to his side. At one time his
prospects looked more fevourable than before. The king's troops were
jjefeated, a new Ministry was formed with the title of Executive Coin-
32 German Socialism.
mittee, and a treaty was concluded with the Palatinate — itself at the
time convulsed — for unity. Hecker, the author of the first rising, was
invited to return from America and take part in the Governnlent, and
he at once set out, but before he could arrive in Germany the revolu-
tion had been suppressed, and he, therefore, recrossed the ocean
without delay. Prussian troops crushed the insurgents in the Palatinate
by the end of June, though only after severe fighting, and the Baden
revolution was quelled in the following month. The Prussian forces
had suffered a total loss of over six hundred men and several officers.
Many of the revolutionary leaders illustrated in their fate the saying of
Mirabeau, " Ceux qui font les revolutions k moitid creusent leur tombe,"
for they were summarily tried by court martial, and shot for high
treason.
What, then, were the results of this appeal to revolution ? The
immediate results were everywhere very small. In Prussia the
promises, made by King Frederick William IV. were not fulfilled, for
directly popular passion subsided, the king's enthusiasm for constitu-
tional reform disappeared. The insurrectionary outburst spent itself
like the eruption of a recurrent volcano, yet all the same rulers and
ruled had learned to know, if not to love, each other better for the
struggle in which they had been engaged. The Prussian Diet met on
April 2nd, 1848, and the Camphausen^ Ministry laid before it proposals
for a new constitution, the alleviation of Press restrictions, the granting
of the right of meeting and full religious freedom, and the reform of
the legal courts. These proposals were accepted, but after sitting a
week the Diet was dissolved and a fresh assembly was called for May
22nd, for the revision of the constitution. A draft constitution was
introduced, but it was rejected as being too aristocratic. The dispute
between the king and the Diet was prolonged until the end of the year,
and finally under the Brandenburg^ Ministry, a constitution was
promulgated on December 5th. •
This constitution was liberal enough as it was introduced — provid-
1 Ludolf Camphausen, bom January 3rd, 1803, near Aix-la-ChapeUe ; he withdrew from
public life in 1849.
2 Count Friedrich Wilhelm von Brandenburg, bom in Berlin, January 24th, 179a, son of
King Frederick William 11., from his morganatic union with the Countess von DSnhoff. Died
vember 6th, 1850. His Ministry was called the Galgen-MinisteriuTn (Gallows Ministry),
ecause the final letters of the members' names together form the word Gal^en : Brandenburg,
^trotba, Manteuffel, Ladenber^, Fomi^ier-Esche, at)4 ^ntel^tl'
Historical Basis. 33
ing for two elective chambers ; responsibility of Ministers to the Diet ;
personal, religious, and Press freedom ; right of association ; equity
before the law ; and independence and publicity in the administration
of justice ; but the Government had no sooner made the offer than,
like Pharaoh, it rued it. The constitution was again revised and
expurgated until when finally promulgated on January 31st, 1850, it
bore no resemblance to the original draft. To make matters worse
for the democratic party, the king in taking the oath, six days later,
declared that the constitution was not a right but a favour bestowed
by the crown ; that the oath-taking — which was likewise an act of free
will and not a royal duty — did not preclude the possibility of future
revision ; and that all royal privileges, the divine office of the king,
and the allegiance of the people remained unaltered ; while the con-
stitution would necessarily have to give way if it were found to be in-
compatible with government. It was the same nearly everywhere.
The pledges given were not redeemed in full, but in spite of this a
tremendous impulse had been given to the advanced democratic move-
ment, and Republicanism, Communism, and Sociahsm were no longej
empty phrases only havinga meaning for the few. Not even the powerfu\
reaction which followed was able to efface the impression made upon
the mind of Germany by the momentous events of 1848 and 1849.
It may be said that what has preceded is a chronicle of Anarchy
and not of the growth of Socialism. But the truth is that revolution
has throughout all history been a handmaid of great political and
social developments. Socialism emerged from the convulsions and
the ferment of these years as a fresh goal of popular aspirations. It
was SociaUsm which remained after the earthquake, the tempest, and
the fire had passed away. Succeeding events greatly stimulated the
new movement. P olitically t he working-man became_free, for the
^quality of all_ citjzgns Jnjhe_eyes of the lawpassed from the jegrdh '
of tl^eorv to that of fact. The develppment orindustry, however^^
^^erted quite a contrary effect, fw it perpjetuated and 'increaseTl the
__ecoi},Qi^ and social subjection of 4he labouring classes. The mpre
„4^ capitalist system was extended, the more social inequalities multi-
pliel-'TThe law made equal and capitahsm made unequal. Thus the
«.^j2sition of the labourer became ambiguous. As a citizeii and a sub-
ject"bfthe State h^ was perfectly free, sharing the civil rights of the
wealthiest, but as a member of the community of industry he occupied
34 German Socialism.
a position in realit y dependent and wifree. It was inevitable that this
anomalous conditioiTortEmgs'should conduce to social discontent and
class antagonism. The labourer saw his employer fiUing his money-
bags, while he, the producer of wealth, was seldom able to earn more
than covered his every-day needs. Before this time the working
classes had in one part of the country expressed their dissatisfaction
by serious riots and the destruction of industrial property. This was
in Silesia, where in 1844 a rising of weavers took place, the immediate
cause being want and misery. For many generations linen-weaving
had been a prosperous industry in the Silesian mountain districts,
and thousands of hand weavers were engaged until far into the second
quarter of this century. Gradually, however, the power machine
changed the whole character of the industry ; manufactories sprang
up, and the house-weavers like Demetrius saw their craft taken away
from them, or if they were able still to compete with the power-loom
it was only by the acceptance of wages which scarcely procured them
food. By the year 1844 the Silesian weavers were reduced to a con-
dition of absolute despair. The wretched inhabitants of the mountain
parts were only able to earn eighteen shillings for work which occu-
pied them five or six weeks, each of ninety or a hundred hours' labour.
At last they could bear their suffering no longer, and in the desperate
hope of improving matters they rose against those whom they re-
garded as oppressors. As Carlyle wrote :
'* Hungry guts and empty purse
May be better, can't be worse."
Factories were stormed, and in several places both buildings and
machinery were utterly wrecked by enraged mobs. This violence
might not have taken place had the manufacturers shown a more
humane spirit, but many of them simply laughed at the misery of the
supplanted weavers, and these men were singled out for exemplary
punishment. The rising failed to accomplish any good result. A
handful of military quelled the disturbances and a number of rioters
were killed or wounded.
The industrial revolution which was effected in Silesia during the
early part of the century took place in other parts of Germany, but
the want suffered by the victims was not so intense eis, there. N?vei^
Historical Basis. 35
theless, the wages of labour were everywhere miserably low.* To
take a few instances, the ordinary rates paid at Breslau up to 1850
were for textile factory operatives, is. for men, and 6d. to 7d. for
women daily ; for work-people in tobacco manufactories, 6s. to 7s.
weekly for men, and 5s. 7d. to 6s. 7d. for women ; in paper manufac- '
tories, 6s. 6d. to 7s. 6d. weekly for men ; mechanics, ids. 6d. to 12s.
per week ; day labourers, lod. in summer and 7d. in winter daily ;
while printers earned as much as mechanics. The factory operatives
had not, however, continuous employment, and they were only paid
according to the time worked. In 1845 railway labourers received in
Lower Silesia 3s. 7d. per week. It was found that a poor rural family,
consisting of five persons, was only able to expend i6s. monthly on rent,
food, local taxes, and school-money. A labourer of Eilenburg, in the
province of Saxony, with wife and two children, had weekly receipts
of 6s. 9d., and food alone cost 6s. jd. On the Lower Rhine in the
same year an operative could earn gd. to is. 6d. per day, with irre-
gular work, and a day labourer 8d. to gd. In Bavaria wages were
often still lower. In 1847 tailors, shoemakers, linen weavers, bakers,
tmd joiners received is. 7d. to 2s. weekly, besides food and lodging,
while butchers, glaziers, plasterers, and millers were better off with 2s.
(0 4s. Labourers received from £,\o 8s. to ;£l3 yearly, and their
household expenses amounted on a minimum calculation to more
than the latter sum. On the land labourers could earn 8d or lod. a
day without food and lodging, and 6d. or 8d with. A herdsboy was
worth i6s. to £1 a year with food and lodging, a maid £1 r6s. to £1
I2S., a hind £7. 8s. to £(i with the same perquisites. A similar con-
dition of things prevailed in Saxony, the I'alatinate, Baden, and other
States. Even in Berlin in 1857 skilled mechanics and artisans only
received 12s. to l8s weekly, while masons received 2s. 3d. to 2s. gd. a
day, day labourers is. 2d. to is. 6d., though with piece work as much as
I2S. and 1 8s. a week. Children up to sixteen years old were worth in
the manufactories 7s. 6d. with long hours. The work done was gene-
rally exhausting, and the food which the wages allowed so insufficient
that the life of the labourer was far shorter than that of more favoured
people Statistics of the years 1829 to 1839 for Dresden show that
only 17 out of 100 members of the higher classes died before the age
1 See appendix to " Pie Arteiterfrage und das Christenthum," by Bishop von Ketteler
(Mayence, j864)
36
German Socialism.
of 50 years, while 28 died amongst lower officials, 38 amongst day
labourers, 47 amongst tailors and shoemakers, 5° amongst cabmen,
55 amongst bookbinders, weavers, printers, and watchmakers, 58
' amongst carpenters, 66 amongst joiners and glaziers, aiid 88 amongst
masons. Statistics of the years 1820 to 1852 prove that in the same
place the average duration of life was as follows amongst various
classes : clergy, 65 years 11 months ; teachers, 56 years 10 months ;
tradesmen, 56 years 9 months ; carpenters, 49 years 2 months ;
masons, 48 years 8 months ; coopers, 47 years 6 months ; shoemakers,
47 years 3 months ; joiners, 46 years 4 months ; smiths and lock-
smiths, 46 years 3 months ; tailors, 45 years 4 months ; stone-cutters,
compositors, type-founders, and pewterers, 41 years 9 months ; and
lithographers and engravers, 40 years 10 mbnths. The mortality
of Prussians was in general very high at this time compared with that
of the inhabitants of England or France. Statistics for the years
1844 to 1853 show the following to have been the comparative
death rates : ^
Prussia.
England.
France.
One in '
One in
One in
1844
38-85
47-86
43-55
'^il
3673
43-36 , '
45-29
1846
34-05
40-47
41-39
1847
3159
43-37
40'22
1848
30'12
39-82
40-82
1849
3274
38-15 '
35-25
1850
36-31
45-48
4471
1851
37-82
44-72
42-77
1852
30-39
43-70
42-25,
i8S3
32-76
42-52
43-02
Average
33-85
43-79
41-73
Living under such conditions it is not surprising that the working
classes became dissatisfied with their lot. But what made this lot
still harder to bear was the fact that the capitalists were becoming
wealthier. As the labourer compared the present with the past state
of society, he found that the rich had grown richer and the poor
relatively poorer. How was this, and was.it right.? B^ing an un-
lettered man he knew nothing of political economy, and was not
1 " Bevolkeruogsstatistikt" Wa^jcaus CLeijpzijt. 1&39.)
Historical Basis. yj
aware that the principle of free competition, which made his labour a
pure commodity purchasable for the cost of its production, claimed
divine origin and might not be impugned. Ignorant of this, and only
knoffiin g tha t the capitalist>^gew^--wealthieiL»luIeJie-himsel£jnade_o.o
progress, the labourer willingly heard of projects of social regeneration
"whiclT^onSsed to place _die^ producer _ojrwsiJ'5i on a hlgBerlevel '3i
OTrnforir" Many o f the assurances heldoutto_2uni_wej&.£SttaYagaBtj
and he knew Jtt. butlhere was. aX^teaSlSfejiassIbilitj of gSJJnJHg, some-
thing. In any case Jie had no{hing,tolose by . folio wing this prophetj
the social re fbrmertgii[ji.§eJife. became .a.4ey.Qted.beji.iej^r,
The development of industry and the increase of national wealth in >
Germany have thus been accompanied by the spread of Socialistic
and Communistic doctrines. These are moments which must be
placed alongside the influence of French thought and of German philo-
sophical speculation, the convulsions of the first half of the century,
the democratising of political institutions, and — ^with Safety it may be
said — the decline of religious belief.^ All have gone together, all
1 Speaking in the debate on the Socialist Bill in October, 1878, and alluding to the atheism
prevalent amongst Sodalists, Prince Bismarck declared that he would not desire to live a
day longer if he had not what Schiller calls the " belief in God and a better future." " Rob
the poor of that, for which you cannot compensate them," he added, " and you prepare them
forthe weariness of life which shows itself in acts like those we have experienced" (;>., the
murderous attempts of Hodel and Nobiling upon the life of the Emperor William). Less
(ear the mark, however, was the Chancellor when he attempted to explain away the spread of
Socialism in the following manner (Reichstag, October 9th, 1878) :—
" I do not wonder at it at all," he said. " A country .with such mild laws, with such good-
natured judges ; a country in which there is a conspicuous love for criticism — especially when
it concerns the Government ; a country in which an attack on a Minister and the censure of a
Minister are acts regarded in the same way as if we lived in the year 30 ; a country where the
recognition of anything which the Government does brings a man immediately under suspicion
of servility ; a country in which the bases of operations chosen by Socialism— the great towns
—were very carefully prepared by the work of the Progressists, and in which the discrediting
of our authorities and institutions had already reached a high point, owing to the Progressist
agitation :— such a country' was attractive. In short the Socialists found here a country in
which they could say, ' Let us build tents here.' The Germans have a great inclination to
discontent. I do not know whether anyone of us has known a contented fellow-countryman.
I know very many Frenchmen who are completely satisfied with their lot and with theii
vicissitudes. When they take up a craft they set before themselves the task of attaining, if
possible, by the age of forty-five or fifty, a certain competence, and if they succeed their only
ambition is to retire and live independent for the remainder of their days as rentiers. But
compare the GermanvHthjheJPrenchihis.3ffifeition^
a""^5^'^JiE-J5j5Sie|^SCT|wr^Shj^ariJiis^ ambition is boundless. The baker^jviU^ not
merei7r^riSm3t.;i!Kj}::fiWloJlriSStLoihe^S^^
his«^Sr§eriin ideal to be eventually a banker and a millionaire^ This is a chafactifiStie'
38
German Socialism,
\ have played their parts, and contributed to the great Socialist move-
^ment which to-day agitates Germany.
Tj^iidihas its good side : it is theGwmM^MiduitjjgtJygli, its goal too near ; but
5g_far as contentment in the State is concerned^ it ]ias^^,j;fiiy^anflpacaiic ^.^p^Cpf^j^pi^pij^^]^; as
regarcStneTower claSses of officials. Where is the official who does not wish^ in the education
of hls^ildren, to take tKem a step higher than he lias gone'KimseRT" The consequence-aL
■ofl. . «Mr.™Hw» -..,-. .„ ^ ,. . ^ -■ "i rBpiliim jm -mni »Sl»i wiiniTTrir— — "■ " ■ ■' ■ ■■**»■"■'■' "-Ji '^ " ' '"'
this (^gg^tent IS that a large part of our suDordmafe offi ^ afeareinfected with th e disea se
of Socialism." ■"•'»-- v^'«^-'-«'-"- «--.-«-«*r-««.i,T.iiiri >, ""■-.
CHAPTER II.
EARLY SOCIALISTIC AND COMMUNISTIC
THEORISTS.
Much of the Communistic and Socialistic literature which was pub-
lished in Germany during the first half of this century has been lost
sight of and forgotten, owing to the perfect inundation of works which
has followed since Socialism became a great power in the State. In
order, however, to a proper comprehension of this subject, and to
a right estimation of latter-day Socialists, it is necessary to learn
something of the theories advanced and the work done by the early
champions of Socialism in Germany. Passing over Fichte, who,
though a philosophical Socialist of revolutionary views, can hardly be
said to have exerted great influence as such upon the thought of his
day,^ the leading authors of this school during the first half of the
century are found to be Karl Rodbertus, Karl Marx, Friedrich Engels,
Heinrich von Thiinen, and Karl Mario (Professor Winkelblech), to
whom may be added one of the early captains in the camp of Com-
munism, Wilhelm Weitling, a German refugee, who lived long in
Switzerland. As the first two of these writers will require extensive
notice, it will be convenient to overlook them for the present.
1 In 1793 Fichte wrote in ** BeitrSge zur Berichtigung des Urtheils Tiber die franzosisclie
Revolution"; " He who will not work may, indeed, eat if J choose to give him something,
but he has no legally valid claim to eat. He should not employ the powers of another for
himself. Every man possessed originally the right of appropriating raw material, and thus the
right of possession was introduced." In his work " Der geschlossene Handelsstaat," (Tiibin-
gen, z8oo), Fichte develops a complete Socialistic State system. This small work Fichte be-
gins with the remark that while the opinion that the State should be the ab$f)lute guardian of
man, making him " happy, rich, healthy, orthodox, virtuous, and, if God will, eternally
blessed," has been sufficiently controverted, on the other hand the new version of the State's
duties and rights is too limited. Fichte delines the province of the State to be the allotment
to its members of the property they may call their own and the protection of all in their pos-
sessions. He takes the standpoint of equal rights. Every member of society claims to live
as comfortably as possible, and as no man is more a man than his fellows, all have equal rights
in making this claim. Fichte knew as well as anyone that his Socialist State was ideal and
could never be realised. In his dedication to Herr von Struensee, a Prussian Minister of
State, he admits the likelihood thathis scheme will be " without result in the .practical world,"
and says he will be contented if his work only leads others to reflect upon tbesubject it handles.
40 German Socialism.
JOHANN HEINRICH VON THtNEN.
, Taking the other authors in chronological sequence, the first to be
noticed is Johann Heinrich von Thiinen, of Jeverland, who lived 1783-
1850. He was the son of a landed proprietor, and became himself
the owner of a large estate near Rostock. He was early intended for
the pursuit of agriculture, and his studies at home and at Gottingen
University were directed to that end. Political economy became his
favourite study, and in 1826 he published the first volume of his clas-
sical work, "Der isolirte Staat."'^ It is still a matter of debate how
far Von Thiinen was a Socialist, but many of the opinions to which
he gives expression are of a decidedly advanced nature. Thus, over
sixty years ago, he complains that the remuneration of every indus-
trial undertaker is far too high in proportion to the share of profits
which falls to the labourer ; and writing at a time when constitutional
government could not be said to exist in Germany, he pleads earnestly
for the representation of the working-classes in the Legislature.
In a letter written to a relative in 1830 Von Thiinen tells how,
during a recent conversation on social questions, the future seemed
suddenly to open out to him, and " I saw in the coming centuries
smother frightful struggle begin, which required for its completion
perhaps five hundred years of ruin and misery. I mean the struggle
between the educated middle-class and the common people, or more
properly between the capitalist and the artisan. In the present crisis
all is certainly done through the people, but nothing_/»r the people.
Only the middle-class has acquired rights, and can defend these
rights in the future, while the artisan has nowhere obtained admission
to the Legislature, and thus he cannot even maintain his present
degree of culture."^ An interesting passage in one of his private
letters shows, too, how earnestly he studied social questions. Writing
in 1830 he says :
" All writers on political economy are agreed that the sum of the
means of subsistence necessary to the maintenance of life is the
natural wages of labour. Science necessarily governs the opinion of
all men, and so we find that all Governments and all legislative re-
l"Der isolirte Staat in Bezug auf Landwirthscliaft und Nationalakonomie," (vol. i.,
Hamburg, 1826, Rostock, 1842 : vol, ii., 1850.)
a "Johann Heinrich von Thunen : ein Forscherleben,' by H. Schumacher (Rostock, 1868.)
Socialistic and Communistic Theorists. 4 1
ptesentatives embrace this principle, and every endeavour after higher
wages is regarded and punished as sedition. Man is never more
terrible than when he is in error : he can then be unjust and cruel,
and his conscience is quiet because he believes he is doing his duty.
But will the people ever share the view of the political economists ?
Will they become convinced that the frightful inequality in the re-
muneration of mental and physical work, and of the services of capital,
is founded in the nature of the case ? Excited by such considerations,
and regarding the subject as from this point of view one of the greatest
importance, I was driven with such force back to my former investi-
gations, continued for some years, into the relation between interest
and wages, that for four weeks I could think of nothing else, though
my health suffered seriously as a consequence. At last the longed-
for light broke on me, and great was the reward of my exertions."
Writing on August 20th, 1846, he tells how he endeavoured to do
something practical for the working class : " On August 4th we left
Marienbad. The afternoon previously we paid a visit to Privy
Councillor of Justice von Voss. I felt it a sacred duty to lay my
views on the lot of the working class before this opulent man. At
first it was impossible to give the conversation this turn, and when
Minister von Uhden and a Privy Councillor entered the room every
prospect seemed to have disappeared. I then felt suddenly filled
with a holy anger : putting modesty aside I spoke up and said what I
had to say."
More than all, Von Thiinen proved his own faith in his precepts by
adopting upon his Tellow estate the system of profit-sharing, which
was a great benefit to his labourers. He died September 22nd,
1850.
Von Thiinen's inquiries led him to the conclusion that the wages of
a labourer only cover the costs of his maintenance, and the interest
on the capital employed in his bringing up : for his labour, his exer-
tion, he receives nothing but his life, i.e., his necessary subsistence.
"For this price," he writes, "the capitalists can always maintain
labourers, and enjoy the fruits of their labour. As the labour of the
slave only costs the master his support and the interest on his cost-
price ; as the work of a machine only costs the manufacturer the cost
of maintenance and the interest on its cost-price, so the labour of the
free man only costs the capitalist the man's food and the interest on
42 German Socialism.
the capital which his bringing-up has required."'- This state of
things Von Thunen regards as revolting, and he explains it by the
supremacy of capital, which makes the labourer a tool in the hands
of the employer. For twenty-five years this thoughtful student in-
vestigated the problems of rent and wages, and he regarded it as the
great achievement of his life that he found what he termed the natur-
gemasser (as opposed to the naturlicher) Arbeitslohn (wages) to be
the square of wages and production so long as there is still land which
can be occupied and cultivated." He writes : " If the maintenance
of a labouring family during a year = A bushels of rye, and the
yearly produce of the family's labour = P bushels of rye, then the
naturgemdsser Arbeitslohn (the wages that are according to nature) ==
Kap. Here man appears as the lord of creation : what he can win
from nature by his labour is his property. Capital itself is a product
of labour, and the remuneration which the capitalist receives is only
wages firom earlier performed labour."^ Von Thiinen thinks that the
only way to raise the wages of labour is to increase the cost of bring-
ing up the labourer, and thus he advocates the better education and
training of the workman's children, the requisite cost being regarded
as an indispensable need. At the same time he imposes the condition
that the .labourer shall not marry until he possesses the means of
bringing up a family. The result of this arrangement will be a dimi-
nished supply of labourers and higher wages. He seeks, in fact, to
hasten the era of reason. The labouring classes must learn that the
remedy for their unfortunate condition lies largely with themselves,
for it is at bottom a question of population. " The Isolated State "
was greatly valued by Karl Rodbertus, who wrote on September 29th,
1840, that the oftener he read it the more invaluable it became to him.
The work continues to be regarded as a classical hand-book to the
study of questions connected with the cultivation of the land.
WILHELM WEITLING.
A very noteworthy figure in the early history of German Communism
was that of Wilhelm Weitling, born in 1808 at Magdeburg, the son of
1 " Der isolirte Staat," part ii., p. 415, (edit. 1863).
2 Von Thiinen's definition of rent is as follows : " What remains from the revenues of an
estate after deduction of the interest on the value of the buildings, stock of timber, enclosures,
and all objects of value which can be separated from the soil, I call land-rent."
' " Der isolirte Staat," vol. ii., p. -.;. " KaP " is engraved on Von Thiinen's gravestone.
Socialistic and Communistic Theorists. 43
a soldier. Weitling, who was poorly educated, but possessed con-
siderable natural gifts, was apprenticed to a tailor, and as a journey-
man he travelled through Germany during six or seven years. Living
at Leipzig in 1830 he entered heartily into the political movements of
the tin>e, and attempted to gain entrance for his advanced views in a
local newspaper, but his advances were generally '•eceived with
coldness. He next went to Vienna, and finally removed in 1837 to
Paris, Germany having become too warm for him. Before this he
had once visited the French capital for a short time, and he now
remained in France nearly four years. At this time the theories and
systems of Fourier and Cabet were exciting much interest, and it is
only natural that the current controversies should have set Weitling
thinking. His thinking led to writing, and in 1838 he published his
firstworkwiththetitle,"DieMenschheit wie sieistundwiesie seinsollte"
(" Mankind as it is and as it should be "), the cost being borne by
.he German Socialists in Paris. In the summer of 1841 Weitling
proceeded to Geneva for the purpose of carrying on an agitation which
might produce more results than any efforts exerted in Paris could do,
and in the September following he issued the first number of a Com-
munistic magazine, " Hiilferuf der deutschen Jjugend " (" Cry for
help of German youth"). The motto of this monthly print was
" Against the interest of individuals in so far as it injures the interest of
,aU, and for the interest of all without excluding one individual," and
the theories advanced were, as might be expected, very far-going.
Not only did Weitling agitate by means of the Press, but he formed
Communist Associations in various parts of Switzerland, in spite of
the opposition of the Government, which from the first kept a vigilant
eye upon him. In 1842 appeared his " Garantien der Harmonie und
Freiheit "(" Guarantees of Harmony and Freedom"), the tone of which
is revolutionary, and three years later he published " Das Evangelium
eines armen Siinders," ("The Gospel of a Poor Sinner"). Inthelatter
work no fewer than a hundred passages are quoted from Scripture
as furnishing justification for radipal proposals of social reform.
Before this time, however, Weitling had taxed the patience of the
authorities to the utmost, and early in June, 1843, his house was
searched with a view to the discovery of compromising documents.
The police found copies of "Guarantees," and also a portion of the
manuscript of the still unpublished " Gospel." He was imprisoned.
44 German Socialism.
and in September was brought before the Zurich Criminal Court.
The charges against him were that he had, in the works referred to,
made himself guilty of blasphemy and attacks on property, and
that he had founded. associations for the propagation of Communistic
doctrines. Weitling did not deny any of his principles ; on the
contrary, he freely admitted that he was a Communist, and added
that he had been made so by the study of the New Testament. The
sentence of the court was six months' imprisonment — less two months
already suffered, though the Crown Solicitor proposed a year and a
half— and lifelong expulsion from Switzerland. The result of an appeal
against this sentence was the addition of four months to the term of
imprisonment and the reduction of the term of expulsion to five years.'-
/ Weitling's agitation in Switzerland was at an end. He tried residence
in Berlin and Hamburg, and agitated zealously in both places until
the police ' compelled him to take flight. Eventually he left the
country in 1849 ^"^ ^ixsi a brief residence in England crossed the
Atlantic. Following the example of Cabet, he endeavoured to give
practical effect to his. Communistic theories, and indeed succeeded in
founding a colony with the name Communia in Wisconsin. Its exist-
ence was, however, short and inglorious. Proceeding to New York he
secured a situation as clerk, and for years pursued a more or less
uneventful career, dividing his leisure time between political agitation
and the study of astronomy. He died in New York on January 25th,
1871, three days after having taken part in a reunion of German^
English, and French members of the International Association in
that city. Wilhelm Weitling may rightly be called the Father of
German Communism.*
Weitling,, whose Communism is mainly based on the theories of
Fourier and Cabet, looks for social harmony to a labour society,
having no State, no church, no personal property, no distinction of
nationality or class. In this society all men are to be labourers, and
* While in prison Weitling wrote a collection of poems published at Hamburg in 1844 with
the title, " Kerkerpoesien." The poems were written, he says, " partly in order to comfort,
and partly in order to occupy myself." As might be expected, the tone of many is fierce and
warlike, though others show a despondent frame of mind.
" Marx wrote in the Paris VorwHrts in 1844 : — " Where could the tourgeoisie (of Germany)
— their- philosophers and theologians included — point to a work similar to Weitling's.
'Guarantees of harmony and freedom,' in regard to the political emancipation of the
bourgeoisie ? Let the jejune and feeble mediocrity of German political literature be com.
pared with this incomparable and brilliant d6but of the German working-men."
Socialistic and Communistic Theorists. 45
all are to share equally in the produce of labour. Every member of
society will be secured a comfortable existence, and none will have
power to injure the welfare of another. Knowledge will be the
supreme authority, and progress will be the vital principle of this society.
Complete harmony will reign, and both police and laws will be super-
fluous. "A perfect society," he says, "has no government but an ad-
ministration, no laws but duties, no punishments but remedies." He is
opposed to the appropriation of land, because it is only to be morally
justified so long as every man has full freedom and is in a position to
acquire land. When these conditions are no longer fulfilled, property
is not a right but an injustice, because it is the cause of want and misery
to thousands. " This truth," he says, " is as clear as the sun. Open
your gaols and penitentiaries, I tell you, for they contain many honest
people. Open them and tell these, ' You did not know what propertj
was, and we did not know ; let us together tear down these walls and
hedges and rails, let us fill up these ditches, so that the cause of our
division may disappear, and let us be friends.' " Weitling declaims
violently against a system of distribution which gives to those who
have " by the sweat of their brows won the produce of the earth " only
a niggardly share of the produce, and he is convinced that the time will
come when the labourers will reap all the fruits of their exertions.
Yet he cannot understand the passiveness of the working classes.
"When the deer injure your fields," he exclaims, "you make war
against them in order that you and your cattle may have the necessary
subsistence, and none of you would be so cowardly as to diminish the
food of his cattle or suffer want himself ; then why do you not resist
the deer which make ravages on the produce of your labour ? You
always seek the cause of your want in your surroundings, while it is
in palaces, resting on thrones and soft carpets." Weitling was no
poHtical economist by study, but he saw that, with the prevailing
system of production, the multiplication of mechanical contrivances
tends to reduce the value of labour, and thus to lower the position of
a large part of the labouring class, and that the poorer a working-man
becomes the more impotent he is in the hands of the capitaUst.
This is why he advocates pure Communism, which, he says, is " the
common right of society to be able to live without care in uninter-
rupted prosperity." Yet Weitling despairs of seeing his plans realised
by the pursuance of argumentative naeans. He therefore preaches
46 German Socialism.
the sacredness of revolution. He is hardly in favour of transitional
measures ; he would like society to swallow his reforms all at once.
It never does, he tell us, to scotch a serpent . it must be killed out-
right. He allows that the first two years of the new order of things
will be irksome for the dispossessed classes : still, that should not
prevent the immediate carrying out of the principle of equality which
is the very foundation of the reformed society. " The duke who leads
the army to war, the dictator who organises the working-men, both
must be treated in regard to their needs just like the youngest
drummer or the stonebreaker on the highway." Weitling goes so far
as to draw up a legislative programme for the first Government which
shall succeed the revolution. The poor are first to be cared for.
Houses unfit for habitation are to be burnt or otherwise destroyed,
with all delapidated furniture, and the poor are to be lodged tempor-
arily in public buildings or with the rich, not, however, before their
rags have been exchanged for new clothes. All bonds, promissory
notes, and bills are, with rights of inheritance and titles of nobility,
to be declared null and void. Labour is to be organised. All
members of administrative bodies, officers, and soldiers, and all per-
sons maintained by the State are to live in community, and differ-
ences of rank are to cease The gold and silver in stock will be ex-
pended in the purchase of food and war material abroad, and the
internal administration will be carried on without money, taxes being
raised in natural products. The goods of emigrants and all land
lying unused, but capable of being cultivated, will be confiscated.
State and church lands will be employed for the benefit of the com-
munity, and the clergy in future will be maintained by the parishes
requiring their services. After caring for agriculture and the army,
the administration must devote especial attention to the erection and
improvement of schools.
It is impossible to follow Weitling farther into Dreamland. The
verdict which he pronounces upon his own scheme is as follows : " If
these ideas were put into execution we should find only brothers and
sisters everywhere, and nowhere an enemy." Weitling's most remark-
able book is " Das Evangelium eines armen Sunders.'' In this work
he makes Christ's Christianity the basis of his Communistic doctrines.
" Poor sinners," he says, "this gospel is for you ;— make it a gospel
of freedom." He shows the levelling tendency of Christ's teaching,
as seen iu the proclam^tioti of liberty, equality, and community of
Socialistic and Communistic Theorists. 47
goods, and in the denunciation of money-grabbing and usury ; and
while many of his interpretations and applications are palpable ex-
aggerations, there is no mistaking the downright earnestness and
honesty of this singular man. He fiercely denounces the modern
" Christian propertied classes," and the " Christian jurists,'' as he"
calls them in irony, for departing from the doctrines preached by the
founder of Christianity. His opinion of Christ is shown in the follow-
ing passage : — " But this Christ, if we are to love him, must be a
friend and brother to us poor sinners (the proletariat') ; he must be
no supernatural, inconceivable being, but like ourselves must be sub-
ject to frailties. That he was, as we shall find in this gospel, and
therefore we love him.'' Weitling anticipates the teaching of later
German Socialists as well as Communists of the Bebel school when
he says :
" Imagine a future in which there is no longer money ; in which the
administration of the people superintends the distribution of its labour
and its enjoyments ; in which all useless labour is abolished, and no
one could be intentionally idle, because he would not have the oppor-
tunity, or as now have nothing to eat ; imagine education training our
youth into honest men and women, and men having only to work a
short time daily in order to secure the means of existence ; imagine
the care of the sick being provided for far better than can be conceived
nowadays ; imagine no labour and no labourers being despised, but
everyone being equally respected ; yes, picture to yourselves such a
state of things, which Christ and the Communists of to-day regard as
possible, and it will be seen that no act can then be called robbery,
that robbery will become an impossibility, that brutality, intemper-
ance, idleness, &c., will naturally disappear from a society so con-
stituted."
Robbery would not be robbery, says Weitling, for if a man were to
take his neighbour's coat and shoes, all the owner would have to do
would be to go to the warehouse and procure others.^ " Conse-
quently," he adds, " the Christian has no right to punish a thief, be-
cause so long as there are thieves Christianity has not become prac-
tical amongst us." Every attack by the poor upon property should be
justified and not condemned. In the same way he defends revolution,
1 An argument which he justifies by the passage in St. Luke vi., 30: " Give to every m^n
t^a( ftsketh of thee, and of him th^t taketh away thy goods ask them qut agiiiil."
48 German Socialism.
though he will only have recourse to force as a last remedy ; so long
as freedom of thought and speech, and freedom of press, are not
interfered with, revolution will be unnecessary.
It is hard or impossible to judge a man like Weitling harshly. Wild
as his theories for the most part are, he wrote in the full conviction of
their justice. His rugged, outspoken utterances, interspersed with
passages of Scripture and injunctions upon the rich to mend their
ways, carry the mind irresistibly to the burning declamations of Piers
the Ploughman. " Property is the source of all evil," he exclaims iti
one place, " deliver us, O Lord, from the evil ! " So thoroughly
devoted to Communism was he, that the very idea of personal property
was abhorrent to him, while money and the love of it were alike in-
tolerable evils. "Do you hear how they cry for money from one
corner of the earth to the other?" he asks. "The prince and the
robber, the merchant and the thief, the advocate and the swindler, the
priest and the charlatan, all cry ' Money ! ' And dost thou, beggar,
cry for money, too ? Knowest thou and rememberest thou not that
the hour is coming when it will be a shame to cry for money, and a
sin to wish to extort it ? " Weitling holds a unique position as a Re-
ligions Communist.
KARL MARLQ (WINKELBLECH).
Karl Mario is the name under which a little-known but highly-
readable German Socialist, Professor Winkelblech, wrote, prior to and
after the year 1850, a large work bearing the title " Untersuchungen
iiber die Organisation der Arbeit, oder System der Weltokonomie."
Karl Georg Winkelblech was born, the only son of a Protestant
clergyman, at Ensheim, April nth, iSio. From both his parents he
received scrupulous care, and the instruction bestowed upon him by
his mother appears to have exercised great influence upon his thought
and life. Winkelblech used, indeed, to say that his mother was the
only preceptor from whom he learned anything.^ After completing
his school education at Mayence, Karl Georg was sent by his parents
to an apothecary, who was requested to make a man of him. That
he had little taste for this avocation may be judged from the fact that
he always carried a volume of Goethe, Schiller, or Lessing in his
1 Preface to the and edition, " Untersuchungea liber die Organisation der Arbeit," (Tu-
bingen, 1885;. based on family notices.
Socialistic and Communistic Theorists. 49
pocket. Winkelblech appears to have wakened from his ycJlith's
reveries when, in 1828, his father died. He now, at the age of eighteen,
determined to take life more seriously, and to make his way in the
world. Quitting the apothecary's shop, he went to Giessert, and mat-
riculated there as a student of philosophy, hearing lectures on chemistry
by Liebig.i who took a great liking to the plodding Ensheim youth.
Tke study of antique philosophy also engaged his attention. After
remaining at Giessen for several" years, Winkelblech succeeded in
securing the position of assistant lecturer on chemistry at Marburg,
whose chemical chair was filled by an old and sickly professor, and his
success was such as to warrant his early promotion to an extraordinary
professorship. In the course of the year 1838, Winkelblech visited
Paris, and during a stay of three months made many friendships
amongst professors there. In the following year he accepted a pro-
fessorship at the Higher Industrial College at Cassel {Hohere Gewerbe-
schule). It was some time, however, before he devoted himself to the
economic studies in which he was to achieve his chief success. Only
after travelling in Norway was he induced to make the study of eco-
nomic and social questions the work of his life. In the preface with
which he introduces his ''History and Critique of Economic Systems,"
Winkelblech tells us that a casual meeting with a German workman in
that country led to this change in the course of his career. The man
had vividly described the sufferings of the labouring population, and
his words caused the peripatetic philosopher to ask himself if these
things need be. Hitherto in visiting the seats of industry he had, as he
says, allowed furnaces and machines to monopolise his attention, and
had not thought of men ; he had been taken up with the products of
human industry, and had overlooked the producers ; and thus he had
no idea of the misery which underlay our vaunted civilisation. " The
convincing words of the workman caused me to see to the full the
vanity of my scientific endeavours, and in a few moments I had formed
the determination to investigate the sufferings of our race, their causes
and remedies." Winkelblech prosecuted his inquiries for a long time,
and the result was the conviction that the evils of society were caused
by its institutions, which rested on a false basis, and that the prevailing
1 Baron Justus von Liebigi the *(unous chemist and naturalist, bom May 8th, 1803, at
Darmstadt, filled chairs at Giessen (1842-1852) and Munich, dying at the latter place April
iSth, i8f3.
50 German Sociahsm.
economic principles were largely founded on error. Thus a new
system was necessary,, and to the development of this he resolved
to devote his remaining years. Winkelblech died January loth, 1865.
He married, in 1840, a daughter of the astronomer Professor Gerling,
of Marburg.
Winkelblech proceeds from the view that political economy is not
merely a science of material wealth, but has to do, first of all, with
the interests of industry. He sees in the decay of guilds, and the un-
limited sway of great capitalists, two great evils. Formerly the position
of the journeyman was transitional, leading to the goal of mastership.
Now, however, there are no longer m.asters and assistants, but under-
takers and labourers, and the number of independent employers tends
to become ever smaller. Thus the wages received by the labourers
depend upon their number relatively to that of the undertaker class.
If the supply of labour exceed the demand, wages fall to such an ex-
tent that the labourer is barely left the means of obtaining the neces-
saries of life. If the demand exceed the supply, wages may rise above
the limit of indispensable needs, though the surplus will not continue
long. The industrial revolution which has followed the introduction
of machinery, and the massing of capital in few hands, has led to the
creation of an extensive proletariat, which has no chance of attaining
social independence. The employment of ^\i proletariat is uncertain,
and always severe. Labour is seldom a matter of choice, for the la-
bourer must be content with the industrial circumstances of his locality,
and thus it is impossible to expect that work can be a pleasure. Work
tends, too, to become more and more monotonous as the division of
labour becomes greater, and the daily duration of work depends largely
on the will of the employer. But this unenviable position might be
tolerable if the workmen were certain of an assured existence. This,
however, is not the case. The caprice of the undertaker, or a change
in the demand of consumers, may, in an instant, deprive a workman of
his employiiient, and thus of his means of subsistence, for he is unable
lO provide for the future, the needs of the day being barely met by
the day's earnings. The position of labourers is still worse in large
industrial towns, where they are huddled together in hundreds of
thousands, for there, wealth, splendour, and extravagance are seen on
every side, while the working population is poorly housed and poorly
fed. The family life of the proletariat does' not deserve the name.
Socialistic and Communistic Theorists. 51
"What care and training can the children enjoy, when their parents
are employed twelve hours or more in the factory ; and what domestic
life can there be, when all the members of the family are kept by their
work from home all day, and almost solely assemble in the dwelling
for sleep ? " The mother is prevented from giving to her children the
attention they should receive, and girls are imable to learn domestic
arts. Worse than this, the dissolution of the family leads to
immorality, and the female sex is degraded. As girls receive their
training in workshops, they learn unchastity, and finally their wages
are based on the presupposition that prostitution is carried on as a
supplementary vocation. Not only does morahty suffer, but the physical
well-being of the /w/tfAm'a/ is ruined, owing to crowded habitations,
overwork, and insufficient food. Winkelblech does not attempt to con-
ceal the vices which are to be found amongst the proletariat — such
as drunkenness, improvidence, and hostility against the higher
classes — but he holds that they are inseparable from the conditions
under which the poor live. " After all," he says, "if the bourgeoisie i&
not guilty of these vices it is guilty of others, as dishonesty, selfishness,
an inordinate desire for gain, indulgence, and disregard of social and
other duties." His conclusion is that the dependence of the modem
proletariat upon the undertaker class is only another form of the
serfage of the Middle Ages and the slavery of antiquity. The position
of the ^proletariat is, in many respects, less favourable than that of the
slave or serf, for these had, at any rate, an assured existence, and the
proletariat has not. The serf was bound to the soil : but does not the
workshop of the undertaker keep modern labourers similarly bound ?
The slave might only acquire property in so far as the will of his lord
allowed, but though the modem labourer is free to possess what he has
the means of acquiring, the right is only an apparent one, for it cannot
be used. Finally, it is questionable whether the serf had to work half
as hard for his living as the free labourer of an industrial town.
Winkelblech would heal the ills of society, and improve the condition
of the working classes, by the adoption of a compromise between
Liberalism and Communism. Among his demands are collective
property in land, side by side with private ownership, co-operative
production, the handing over of means of communication to public
bodies, and State participation in mining, forestry, fishing, and even
trading and banking. But he would also restrict private undertakership
52 German Socialism.
and speculation wherever the interests of society require it, and he
would grant to the labourer the right to work and to the incapable
adequate means of subsistence. Like Malthus, he regards the question
of population as the kernel of the social problem. Thus he advocates
marriage restrictions — only those shall be allowed to marry who can
show the possession of adequate means, a requirement which shall be
reinforced on the birth of the fourth child— and he is prepared to
punish with hard labour the man who brings into the world mouths
which he cannot feed. He would also encourage religious orders,
nunneries, and all institutions in which celibacy is fostered. Winkel-
blech's work fell flat — Germany was not ready for it — and for years
it was entirely neglected. Schaffle^ was one of the first authors to
redirect attention to this ingenious writer, to whom, in " Kapitalismus
und Socialismiis," he pays a high tribute.
FRIEDRICH ENGELS.
No mean place in the history of the Socialist movement is taken by
Friedrich Engels, though he is in reahty a Communist of the most
pronounced stamp, and as such has done yeoman's service for his
cause. Engels, who was born in 1822 at Barmen, was for forty years
the inseparable associate of Karl Marx, whom he first met in Paris
after his expulsion from Germany. Marx, not less than Engels, highly
valued from the very first day the friendship thus formed, and if Engels
appears to shine but as a lesser star in comparison with the great light
which Marx undoubtedly was in the Communistic firmament, it is
quite certain that this lifelong companionship was mutually beneficial,
Engels may be called the alter ego of his friend, whose opinions on all
political and social questions were his own. Rarely have two minds
represented such union as was seen throughout the entire intercourse
of these true comrades in arms. When Marx died, in 1883, he left, in
a very unprepared state, a host of manuscripts, forming a continuation
of the first volume of " Capital," which was published in 1867. It
1 Albert SchSffle, political economist, born February 24th, 1831, in Wurremberg. Originally
a. journalist, he turned his attention to political economy, and became professor of the science
at Tiibingen in 1861, and Vienna in 1868. For a time he filled the office of Austrian Minister
of Trade, but on his retirement, because of a ministerial change, he withdrew to Stuttgart,
and resumed literary work. His chief work is " Bau und Leben des sozialen Korpers,"
(4 volumes, 1875-8), and hext in importance is " Kapitalismus and Socialismus " (Z870),
Socialistic and Communistic Theorists. 53
was, therefore, fortunate that a man was to be found who had been so
schooled in the ideas of Marx that he could undertake the formidable
task of editing the posthumous works. This is certainly not the least
of Engels' achievements in the cause of Socialism. Engels under-
went his baptism of fire as a political agitator at the time of the Elber-
feld rising of 1849. For his share in causing this trouble he was
ordered to leave Prussian territory, a fate which came to Marx as
well. Before this he had come into prominence through the publica-
tion, in 1845, of a volume on the condition of the English working
classes, ^ the result of nearly two years' study on the spot. In this work
he advances the outspoken Socialistic opinions which have ever sinp e
been associated with his name. The work is dedicated to the working
classes of Great Britain and Ireland, and in the dedication the author
pays a high compliment to the British workman, not the least of
whose good qualities are said to be sympathy with every progressive
movement and freedom from " that blasting curse, national prejudice
and pride." "I found you to be more than mere Englishmen, members
of a single isolated nation," says Engels, "I found you to be »z^«,
members of the great and universal family of mankind, who know
their interests and those of all the human race to be the same."
We here see the cosmopolitan sympathies shared by Engels in
common with the Communist party, and they are further shown by
his ceaseless endeavours on behalf of international co-operation
amongst working-men. Besides associating with Marx in the establish-
ment of a German Working-men's Association in Brussels in 1845, and
in its later direction, Engels was joint-author of the Communist Mani-
festo, published early in 1848, and was one of the founders of the
League of Communists formed in the preceding winter. He has
written a number of works, large and small, on different phases of the
social problem. Besides that on the English working classes may be
named "Herr Eugen Diihring's Umwalzung der Wissenschaft: Philo-
sophie, Politische Okonomie, Socialismus," ^ a criticism of Diihring's
scientific works; "Die Entwickelung des Sozialismus von der Utopie
zur Wissenschaft," ^ and " Der Ursprung der Familie, des Privat-
1 " Die Lage der arbeitenden Klasse in England." (Leipzig, 1845.)
2 Leipzig, 1878. The works criticised are "Cursusder Pliilosophie," "Cursus der National-
und Sozialdkonomie," and " Kritische Geschichte der National5kononiie and des Sozial'
ismus."
< Hottingen Zurich, 1883. (Dated London, September sist, US:.)
54 German Socialism.
eigenthums, und des Staats : •- Im Anschluss an Lewis H. Morgan's
Forschungen," * and he was joint-author with Marx of " Die heilige
Familie, oder Kritik der kritischen Kritik. Gegen Bruno Bauer &
Consorten." * He has further contributed largely to Socialistic publi-
cations. From his pen, too, appeared the noteworthy " Outlines for
a critiqueof political economy," in the " Deutsch-Franzosische Jahr-
biicher," (Paris, 1844), wherein Engels claims to have first maintained
the proposition that " the natural, that is, the normal price of labour-
power coincides with the minimum of wages, that is, with the value-
equivalent of the means of subsistence absolutely necessary to the life
and propagation of the labourer. " *■
As to theory, Engels may be said to hold precisely the same views as
Marx, but as he has gone out of the purely scientific track, and has
given to his theories a practical application, it is advisable to glance
briefly at the teachings of his social works. Modern Socialism,
Engels tells us in his critique of Duhring, is the result of the opposi-
tion of classes, the propertied and the unpropertied, the bourgeoise
and the wage-earners, and of the anarchy which prevails in produc-
tion, though theoretically it owes its origin to the French movements
of last century. " Socialism is the expression of absolute truth, reason
and justice, and needs only to be discovered in order biy its own
power to conquer the world." He dates the scientific development of
Socialism from Marx's discovery of Mehrwerth or surplus-value. It
was then shown that the appropriation of labour which is not paid for
is the primal form of the capitalistic mode of production, and the ex-
ploitation of the labourer entailed by it ; that the capitalist, even
when he buys the labour of his workmen at the full market value,
derives more value from it than he pays for; and that this surplus-
value forms the basis and substance of the capital now in the hands of
the propertied class. Engels accepts all the conclusions which follow
from the theory of an appropriated surplus-value, for while he shows the
effects of this appropriation, he advocates measures which will put an
end to it. He is thoroughly antagonistic to the present mode of pro-
1 Hotdngen, Zurich, 1884. Engek says the work was unflertalcen by Marx, but was after-
wards placed in his hands.
S" Ancient .Society, or Researches in the Lines of Human Progress from Savagery through
Barbarism to Civilisation," by Lewis H. Morgan. London : Macmillan & Co., 1877.
8 Paris, September, 1844, and Frankfort-on-Maine, 1845.
4 " Dai Elend der Philosophie, by Marx, (Stuttgart, 1885, pp, 26, 27, note.)
Socialistic and Communistic Theorists. 55
duction, and not less so to the prevailing system of competition. In
competition expression is given to the state of war which prevails
throughout modem society — bellum omnium contra omms. For this
war, which is one of life and death, exists not only between class and
class, but between the individual members of classes, for everybody is
in the way oi everybody else ; working-men compete amongst them-
selves just as the bourgeois classes do. Even the associations to which
the labouring classes have recourse are unable to save them. The
proletariat is, in fact, helpless, for the bourgeoisie keeps a firm hand
on all the means of existence and the Executive Power supports this
monopoly. The relationship of the proletariat to the bourgeoisie js
that of slavery. The proletariat seeks subsistence from the bour-
geoisie, and offers in return its labour, thus giving itself over ab-
solutely into the hands of the enemy. 1 he labourer is nominally free,
but in reality he is not, for he is compelled to accept whatever con-
ditions the employer chooses to enforce. The competition which
goes on amongst the labourers themselves makes matters worse for
them, but better for the capitalists. This competition has only one
check, and it is that no labourer will work for less than he requires
for his existence, for if he has to hunger, he might as well hungei
idling as working. Still, even this check is relative rather than ab-
solute, for the standard of life varies amongst labourers, and accord-
ing to this standard of life will the mininmm wages be determined.
Then, again, where every member of the family works, the individua!
is able to subsist on less wages than would be necessary were he
isolated, for a saving of cost is effected by community. While the
minimum wages depend on the competition of labourers amongst them-
selves, the maximum wages are fixed by the competition which goes
on amongst the capitalists. The proletariat produces commodities
for the bourgeoisie, which sells them at a profit. If the demand is so
large that it cannot be met, all disposable labour is employed, and
thus the competition of labourer with labourer ceases and gives place
to a competition amongst the capitalists for the required labour-power.
Average wages, or wages just exceeding the minimum, exist when
neither capitalists nor labourers have any reason to compete against
each other : when just as many labourers are employed as can pro-
duce the commodities required. The extem to which the minimum is
exceeded will depend on the average needs and the deiTce of culture
So German Socialism.
reached by the labourers. The labourer is, in fact, a commodity, the
price of which varies according to the demand for it and the cost of
producing it. If'there is a large inquiry for labourers their price rises,
and if the demand falls, so, too, the labourers fall in price, while a
superfluity of labourers causes a part of them to " remain in stock,''
just as ordinary commodities, which are not saleable, remain on the
shop shelves. Population is thus influenced by the economic position
occupied by labour. If the price of labour (that is, the labourer's
wages) rises, marriages increase, and more children are produced, un-
til the demand for labour is met. When the supply is excessive,
prices fall again, and the consequence is that hunger and disease sweep
away the superfluous population. One of the evils of the system
which makes the labourer a commodity, is the position of absolute de-
pendence in which the working classes are placed. If a manufacturer
employs labourers for nine hours a day, there is nothing to prevent
him, at a time when the offer of labour is large, from compelling them
to work another hour on pain of dismissal. Thus he has the benefit
of an hour's extra labour daily, without the necessity of paying for it.
In proportion as the condition of the labourer is less independent does
the power of the capitalist to exploit him increase. Thus the weaker
the members of society are, the less hope of help have they.
The labourer is both legally and in fact the slave of the capitalist
class. " All the difference from the old, out-spoken slavery is that
the present labourer appears to be free, because he is not sold all at
once but piecemeal — per day, week, or year — and because one owner
does not sell him to another, but he must sell himself in this way, as
he is not the slave of a single person but of the entire propertied
class. But for the labourer it is in reality all the same, and if this
appearance of freedom secures him on the ore hand a certain degree
of real freedom, he suffers on the other hand from the disadvantage
that no man guarantees him support, that he may be cast away at any
moment by his master, the bourgeoisie, and be left to die of hunger
if the bourgeoisie has no longer any interest in his employment, that
is, in his existence. The bourgeoisie, however, is far better off with
this arrangement than with the old slavery, for it can turn away its
people when it likes without losing invested capital, and, moreover, it
gets la]3our done far more cheaply than is the case with slaves." ^
^ " Die Lage der arbeitenden Klasse," pp. 103, X04.
Socialistic and Communistic Theorists. 57
What, then, will Socialism do for the working classes ? Engels
answers that it will do away with the class differences which are a
consequence of the unequal distribution of the produce. Society is
at present split up into opposing camps — the privileged and the pre-
judiced, the exploiting and the exploited, the ruling and the ruled —
and the State, whose duty it should be to give protection within and
without to the community at large, merely props up the dominant
classes by forcibly maintaining the conditions of their supremacy.
The existence of a ruling class is now as much an anachronism as
slavery is. Both have become superfluous, though they had formerly full
justification. "We should never forget that our entire economical,
political, and intellectual development presupposes a condition of things
in which slavery was neqessarily and universally recognised. In this
sense we are justified in saying ' Without the slavery of antiquity no
modern Socialism.' It is very easy to inveigh in general terms against
slavery, and to pour out highly moral anger at such enormities. But
uiifortunately all that is said by this is, what everybody knows, that these
ancient institutions are no longer in accord with present conditions,
and the feelings which these conditions have produced."'
So long as the really productive part of the community — the labour-
ing classes — could secure no leisure, owing to excess of labour, for
the common affairs of society, as State affairs, sciences, and art, a
special class must attend to these things, and, adds Engels, this class
has never failed to heap heavier and yet heavier burdens upon the
working classes. But now there is no need for this ceaseless physical
strain ; there might be sufficient leisure for all to take part in social -
affairs ; and for that reason the ruling class has become unnecessary
—nay, more, a perfect hindrance to social progress, and should, there-
fore, he abolished. He says : " A surplus in the produce of labour
over the cost of maintaining the labour, and the formation and increase
of a social productive and reserve fund out of this surplus, were and
are the basis of all social, political, and intellectual progress. In past
history this fund has been the possession of a privileged class, which
with this possession acquired also political supremacy and intellectual
leadership. The impending social revolution will make this social
productive and reserve fund— that is, the whole mass of raw material,
instruments of production, and food— in reality social, when it takes
I Sue Engels' " Herr Eugen Duhrlng's Umwalzung der Wissenschasfu"
S8 German Socialism.
it from the privileged class and assigns it to society as a whole as
common property." On purely economic grounds Engels holds that
a revolution in the present mode of production is imperative. One of
the natural and inevitable results of this system is the recurrence of
commercial crises, which are especially injurious to the working
classes. As the production and distribution of the means of existence
follow no rule, and do not take place for the immediate purpose of
satisfying social needs, but of making the capitalists rich, a crisis may
occur at any time. Chance governs the actions of the individual
producer, whose dealings are quite independent of the dealings of
■ others. Everybody is ignorant of what is being done by everybody
else, and the result is confusion. This anarchy in production compels
industrial capitalists to perfect their machinery more and more on
pain of being superseded, and this perfection of machinery makes
human labour increasingly superfluous. As Marx says, machinery is
the most powerful instrument of war which capital possesses against
labour, for the labourer's own product is made a means of his bond-
age. Though, however, production increases, the, sale does not
expand correspondingly, so that trade in time comes to a standstill,
the markets are surfeited, produce lies unsaleable, manufactories are
stopped, public credit is shaken, bankruptcy follows bankruptcy, and
the labouring classes suffer the greatest want. AH these evils will dis-
appear with the abolition of the capitalistic system of production and
the consequent extinction of the capitalist class. Nor does Engels
regard this consummation as inr.possible. The proletariat has only
to become strong ienough and the means of production will be social-
ised. When this is done, however, xht proletariat as such will exist
no longer, for all class distinctions will cease, and therewith the State
as it now is. A society which is based upon the existence of mutually
opposed classes needs the State in order that privilege and monopoly
and power — the threefold principle of class — may be maintained.
When the State is no longer the representative of one favoured sec-
tion, but represents in reality society as a whole, it becomes superflu-
ous, for so long as there is no class to prop up, and none to keep
down, repressive power is not needed. Production will then be carried
on according to rule and plan, and all the needs of society will be
provided for. "The first act wherein the State appears as really
representative of all society — the taking possession of the means of
Socialistic and Communistic Theorists. 59
production in the name of society — will be its last act as a State.
Government over persons will be succeeded by the management of
I hings and the direction of processes of production. A free society
cannot need or tolerate the existence of a State between itself and its
members." ^ Thus will be realised the Free People's State. Society
possessing the means of production, the producer will no longer be at
the mercy of the produce, but will enjoy the full fruit of his labour.
The struggle for existence will end, and in this respect man will for
the first time be distinguished from the lower animals, for the first
time will be really Lord of Nature, for the first time really free. It is
the high mission of the proletariat to effect this emancipation of man-
kind, and scientific Socialism is the instrument it will employ.
KARL GRtJN.
Another eminent Socialist, who both as author and agitator exer-
cised great influence during the first half of the century and later, is
Karl Grtin. Griin was born September 30th, 1817, at Liidenscheid,
in Westphalia. He was, hke Lassalle and Marx, a follower of Hegel,
whose philosophy he endeavoured while resident in Paris to implant
in the mind of his friend Proudhon, though with very qualified success.
He relates, indeed, in the charming collection of letters and studies
which goes by the name of " Die soziale Bewegung in Frankreich
und Belgien,"* how Proudhon, who did not understand German well,
would answer an unwelcome argument with " I do not comprehend
you." "And yet," adds Griin naively, "I was plain enough."
Griin was very early drawn into the arena of politics. Early in 1842
he became the editor of a Mannheim journal, and as such succeeded
—though the task was not a difficult one — in winning the dislike of
the Baden Government. The result was that before many months
had expired he unexpectedly received notice to quit the Grand Duchy.
This expulsion was, however, an act of doubtful legaUty, for Griin had
never once given the Press censor occasion for dissatisfaction. * All
the explanation to be had was that his political views were objection-
able. For several years Griin devoted himself to literary work, but
1 " Herr Eugen Diihring's UmwSlzung der Wissenschaft."
2 Darmstadt, 1845 ; a more interesting work on the French Socialists and Communists could
not be imagined.
s " Meine Ausweisung aos Baden," Zurich and Wintettliut, 18+3.
6o German Socialism.
when the stormy days of 1848 came he threw himself into the thickest
of the fray. He took part in the rising in the Palatinate in 1849, and
being captured was put into prison. On regaining freedom he re-
moved to Belgium, and later he resided in Vienna, where his death
occurred in 1887. Griin has written a number of works on social and
literary subjects. His " Sociale Bewegung," already mentioned, was
not without influence in stimulating the Socialist movement in
Germany. Monographs on Goethe and Schiller have also been
written by him. A few years before his death he withdrew from
active work on behalf of the Socialist cause, but he remained faithful
to his principles to thfe last. The name of Karl Griin is held in
high respect by the younger generation of Socialists in Germany,
CHAPTER III.
KARL RODBERTUS AND THE WAGES
PRINCIPLE.
Fame is often very fickle in the distribution of honours. While the
less deserving is favoured, the more deserving is very frequently
passed over. Karl Johann Rodbertus is a singular instance of the
caprice of fame. There are, it may be said, four men who by common
consent are regarded as the founders of modem scientific Socialism
in Germany. These men are, Karl Marx, Rodbertus, Ferdinand
Lassalle, and Frederick Engels. Of these Marx is almost universally
chosen for the distinctive title of Father of the Socialistic movement,
so far as scientific theory is concerned, while Rodbertus, his senior in
age and in literature, is with great injustice passed by. Only within
recent years has even the attempt been made in Germany to give to
this deep thinker his proper place in science, and even now an amouni
of neglect is visible which speaks ill for the fairness of writers on
Socialism. Some of the German historians of the Socialistic move-
ment pass Rodbertus by in silence, and others only deign to give him
bare mention. To Adolph Wagner,^ the leading representative of the
State Socialistic school, is due the credit of having discovered the im ■
portance of Rodbertus as an economic writer. Wagner generously
speaks of him as " the first, the most original, and the boldest repre-
sentative of scientific Socialism in Germany,"^ and as " the most dis-
tinguished theorist of the purely economic side of scientific Socialism."^
Rudolph Meyer goes further and contends that Marx " has, as caii be
proved, built up the greater part of his critique" from the publications of
^ Adolph Wagner, born March 2Sth, 1835, at Erlangen, has since 1870 been professor of
political economy at Berlin. He has, however, taught at Vienna, Hamburg, Dorpat, and
Freiburg. Wagner is the leading representative of State Socialism in Germany, and
naturally a zealous supporter of Prince Bismarck's social policy, which he is even prepared to
place upon a still broader basis.
2 Introduction to " Briefe von Ferdinand Lassalle an Karl Rodbertus- Jagetzow," (Berlin,
1878 ), also " Tiibinger Zeitschrift fiir Staatswissenscbaft," 1878, pp, 199-237.
* Jbid.
62 German Socialism.
Rodbertus which appeared before 1835, and that Lassalle has done
the same, the only new thing being the positive proposals of these two
imitators.!
As only a small part of the life of Rodbertus — the "Ricardo of
Economic Socialism," as Wagner has called him — was passed in
public activity, we know comparatively little about the person of the
man. He was born on August 12th, 1805, at Greifswald, in old
Swedish Pomerania, where his father was a Swedish Councillor of Jus-
tice and professor of Roman law at the university. In 1808 Professor,
Rodbertus retired from his chair and removed to Beseritz, in Mecklen- '
burg-Strelitz, the estate of his wife, and here he continued for the
remainder of his life. His son Karl passed through the Gymnasium ,
of Mecklenburgisch-Friedland, then went to Gottingen University,
where he studied from 1823 to 1825, going in the latter year to Berlin
to study law, and remaining there till 1826. His term as auscultator
was passed in the provincial and municipal court at Alt-Brandenburg,
and passing the necessary examinations he became referendary at
Breslau in 1829 and the following year at Oppeln, where he studied
political economy, afterwards to become the science after his own
heart. He prosecuted his studies further at Heidelberg, where he
divided attention between political economy, history, and philosophy.
Meanwhile, he had travelled in Switzerland, France, and Holland, and
when in 1834, at the age of twenty-nme, he returned home, it was as a
studied man who had also seen a good deal of the world and its ways.
Purchasing the estate of Jagetzow, in Pomerania, he removed thither
from the paternal estate of Beseritz in 1836. He took part in provin-
cial administration, and at one time was elected a member of an
agricultural commission appointed to consider the question of taxation.
In 1847 he was returned to the Provincial Landstag. The independ-
ence which was always a characteristic of Rodbertus was shown at
this time by his declining the offer of King Frederick William IV. to
advance him to the nobility. He satisfied himself with taking the
name of his estate, and signing himself as " Rodbertus-Jagetzow."
Rodbertus was a member of the commission appointed to draw up
electoral laws for the Prussian National Assembly, and in May, 1848,
1 " Der Emancipationskampf des vterten Standes," Berlin, 1874, vol. i, pp. 43, 44. TIiis,is ;
an excellent work of reference, which may well be consulted by those who desire a close*
knowledge of the practical development of Socialism in Germany.
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. 63
he was returned to the new Assembly, the election being by universal
franchise. His part in the proceedings of that body is of purely
national interest, and need not detain us. Suffice it to say that
lie was an active figure in the political history of 1848 and 1849
in Prussia. Rodbertus did not regard the movement of the former
year as political but as social, just as at a later time he refused to
believe that Lassalle's political agitation would find sympathy amongst
the people. In June, 1848, Rodbertus took office in the Auerswald-
Hansemann Cabinet as Minister for Public Worship and Education,
but differences caused him to resign in a fortnight. He was thrice
elected in 1849, once for the First Chamber and twice for the Second.
On April 13th he introduced a motion for recognising the Frankfort
Imperial constitution and he carried it on the 21st, but the Second
Chamber was a few days later dissolved, and the end of his political
career soon followed. Though a democrat of the first water in early
life, he was able to support much in Prince Bismarck's policy during
his later years.
It was a good thing for science that Rodbertus was defeated when
he tried to enter the North German Reichstag, for the result was a
resolution to devote himself closely to the study of political economy
in its bearing upon social questions. Thus for the remainder of his
long life he wrote almost incessantly on economic subjects. He was
able to bring to the consideration of these subjects the qualifica-
tions, rarely combined to such a degree as with him, of wide and
generous sympathies and deep learning. For though Rodbertus was
a true student — ^he never read without a pencil in his hand, and his
fondness for exchanging views is proved by a voluminous correspond-
ence — ^he was also thoroughly practical. The sincerity of his efforts on
behalf of the working classes is nowhere better shown than by his
refusal to co-operate with Lassalle in agitation. Like Owen, he held
that the social problem was not a question of politics but solely of
economics, and he would not hear of a combination of the two. J- Re-
sisting all attempts to draw — it may rather be said to thrust— him into
the political arena, he remained in the study, believing rightly that
he could there do better and more lasting service to the cause dear to
1 He writes to his friend Rudolpli Meyer, August i6th, 1872 : " That I hold the socia]
question to be a purely economic question, with which those having in view only the secon.
dary aims of Sabbath-hallowing and soul-catching (Seelenfnng) should have nothing to do
.... this you have long knotvn better than anyone from myself."
64 German Socialism.
him. In 1873 his health gave way, though he had been ailing for
some years. But physical weakness and pain troubled him far less
than did his failing sight, which prevented him from pursuing study
and literary work as he wished. The winter of 1873-1874 he passed he
Italy, and he returned, to all appearance, much better in health. The
following winter tried him severely and it was with diflSculty that he
struggled through. The end came in December, 1875, being hastened
by exposure to the weather. On the 2nd of the month he was out of
doors superintending the beautifying of his estate, and oh the 5th he died.
Rodbertus was a man of lofty character, a man of whom any
science and any country might be proud. He held what are known
as advanced views on some of the deeper questions of life, and we
find him writing on one occasion that he has worked himself into
an entirely new contemplation of the world, and that though he is
" anything but a Materialist," he is not an adherent of the Christi-
anity of the day. It would, however, be unsafe to attribute to thesa
last words a far-reaching significance, for the letters of Rodbertus
would not allow of it. As a political economist he stood upon de-
cidedly Socialistic gpround, as an examination of his theories will show,
But he took up this position only after deep study of political economy,
history, and philosophy, and after gaining wide experience in practical
agriculture ; and although he was a SociaUst when Socialism was
not common amongst men of science, he never deserted his guns 01
even sought to apolclgise for his heterodoxy. When a friend once
recognised his great service to science he replied, indulging in a
little banter at his own expense, " In your kind opinion of me you
quite forget what a wicked heretic I am in our science — ^what a black
economic soul I really am." But odium did not affect him and he
could say in the last year of his life : " I swear yet with few exceptions
to every word which I have written on political economy, and I am
firnily convinced that when I shall have published 'Capital ' and 'The
Social Question ' my theory will be preached in fifty years from the
roofs, and then practice will soon follow. Unfortunately," he adds,
" I began the elaboration of the social question too early, when no
one believed in it, and thus I was quite disregarded, which is not
encouraging to a writer who by dint of great exertion is enabled to
establish and create something new."^
1 Letter to J. Zeller, March 14th, 187S.
Rodhertus and the Wages Principle. 6%
The last years of the scholar's life were taken up, as were the last
years of Kant, with preparations for a great and final work, which
should worthily crown his labours. He wished to collect all the
scattered fragments of his social theories into a complete system,
and to the very last he did not despair of completing the task. In
the letter from which a passage has just been taken he says that
though he is old and sick, and has lost the sight of one eye, " which
is a great obstacle to work," he trusts in " God and my good constitu-
tion." But though his face was turned to this goal, the journey thither
was slow and death overtook him on the way. His widow wrote to a
tejend shortly after his death : " My heart longs for the recognition
whrdi he deserves, not only, however, as a man of science, for I should
like t\see his rare and amiable qualities appreciated. The years in
which he abstained from taking part in public affairs vastly increased
his stores, of learning, and it pains me beyond measure that they
should havfe been laid in the grave with him." Even yet Rodbertus
has not received the recognition he deserves, but posterity certainly
promises to o^ more discriminating than were his contemporaries.
In seeking to understand the economic theories of Rodbertus in so
far as they bear directly on Socialism, it will serve no good purpose to
follow his wdrks in chronological sequence, for this would only lead to
confusion. /Nor will it be wise to attempt an analysis of the works in-
dividuallv/ The plan adopted disregards the disjointed character of
Rodbeftus' writings, and contemplates his system as though it had
bgen^onnectedly worked out. In order to a better comprehension of
the system, quotations will be freely given, and the author's own lan-
guage be often followed pretty closely, even when extracts are not
,made.^ Rodbertus speaks of his economic theories as a "logical de-
1 Kozak in his " Rodbertus- Jagetzow's socialpolitische Ansichten," a work which should be
read by all wishful to learn in greater detail the economic views of this gifted author, enumer-
ates some thirty writings from the pen of Rodbertus, ranging from systematic works down to
essays and correspondence. The importance of Rodbertus as a political economist and a
social reformer will j ustify the giving of as complete a list as possible of his works ;
"Zur Erkenntniss unsrer staatswirthschaftlichen Zustande," (Neubrandenburg, 1842).
*' Fiir den Kredit der Grundbesitzer : eine Bitte an die ReichsstSnde," (1847).
" Die neuesten Grundtaxen des Herrn v. Biilow-Cummerow," (1847).
" Die preussische Geldkrisis," (1848).
" Mein Verhalten in dem Conflict zwischen Krone und Volk : an meine W^hler," (Berlin,
1849).
" Sociale Briefe an von Kirchmann," (two letters appeared 5n 1850 and a third in iSji).
E
66 German Socialism,
velopment of the proposition introduced into science by Smith, and
estabUshed more firmly by Ricardo's school, that all commodities can
only be considered economically as the product of labour, and cost
nothing but labour." This proposition he places at the beginning of
his first great work, " Zur Erkenntniss unsrer staatswirthschaftHchen
Zustande," published in 1842. It will thus be expected that Rodber-
tus looks for the solution of the social problem to some reform which
will place labour in a fair and just position as against capital. He de-
scribes his purpose as follows :
" The chief aim of my investigations will be to increase the share of
the working classes in the national income, and that on solid grounds
taken from the influences of the vicissitudes of trade. I wish to allow
" Die Handelskrisen und die Hypothekennoth der Grundbesitzer," (Berlin, 1858).
" OfFener Brief an das Comitfe des deutschen Arbeitervereins zu Leipzig," (1863).
"Zur Frage des Realkredits," (first published in the Norddeutsch& AllgeTneine Zeitung^
1868).
" Zur ErklSrung und Abhiilfe der heutigen Kreditnoth des Grundbesitzes," (Berlin, i868-
i869).
" Fiir das Rentenprineip," {Norddeuiscke Landwirthschafiliche Zeitung, 1870).
" Der normale Arbeitstag," {Berliner Revue, 1871.)
" Briefwechsel zwischen Rodbertus und dem Architekten H, Peters," (published in 1878 :
it had reference to the operation of the normal workday).
" Ein Brief von Rodbertus an Rudolph Meyer," (September i8th, 1873, published in Meyer's
*' Emancipationskampf des vierten Standes," 1874 ; giving his/ mature views on the property
question).
" Rodbertus' Antwort an einen Kathedersocialisten," (published in the same work and re-
lating to the same question).
"Briefwechsel zwischen Rodbertus und dem Minister fiir die landwirthschaftlichen An-
gelegenheiten Dr. Friedenthal," (in O. Beta's " Die wirthschaftliche Nothwendigkeit und
politische Bedeutung einer Deutschen Agrarvarfassung," 1878).
" Briefe und social politische Aufsatze von Dr. Rodbertus- Jagetzow," (Berlin, 1882).
*'Ausdem literarischen Nachlass von Karl Rodbertus- Jagetzow, herausgegeben von H,
Schumacher-Zarchlin und Adolph Wagner" : i- " Briefe von Ferdinand Lassalle an K^l
Rodbertus- Jagetzow, mit einer Einleitung von Adolph Wagner," (Berlin, 1878) ; 2. " Das
Kapital," (edited by T. Kozak, Berlin, 1884).
"Zwei verschollene staatswirthschaftliche Abhandlungen," (Vienna, 1885, published by
Mftrx Quarck).
Appendix to J. Zeller's edition of "Zur Erkenntniss" — "Die sociale Bedeutung der Staats-
wirthschaft," and " Der normale Arbeitstag," (Berlin, 1885).
In addition a large number of articles and letters have appeared from the pen of Rodbertus
in Hildebrand's yahrbilcker, the TUbinger Zeitsckrift^ and other publications. Of works on
Rodbertus and his theories may be named ;
" Rodbertus- Jagetzow's socialpolitische,Ansichten," T. Kozak, (Jena, 1882).
" Bismarck, Wagner, Rodbertus : drei deutsche Meister," Moritz Wirth, (Leipzig, 1883.)
" Rodbertus der Begriinder des wissenschaftUchen Sozialismus," Georg Adler, (Leipzig, 1884)
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. 67
these classes to share in the increase of productivity, and to abolish
the law — which otherwise might one day become fatal for our social
conditions — that, however the productivity may increase, the labourers
are ever thrown back by the force of trade upon a rate of wages which
does not exceed the necessary subsistence ; a rate which shuts them
out from the culture of the age, since this would take the place of the
servitude which keeps them down, a rate which forms a most flagrant
contradiction to their present legal position, that formal equality with
other classes which is proclaimed by our most important institution?.
By securing for the labourer a larger share in the national income, I
wish at the same time to do away with the frightful industrial crises ,
which occur periodically, and which consist wholly in the dispropor-
tion between purchasing and productive power — but not, as Say and
Ricardo think, because want of purchasing power is want of produc-
tive power, and not, as Malthus and Sismondi think, because the pro-
ductive power may surpass the purchasing power fer se, but because
the purchasing power remains behind the productive power, owing to
the fact that participation in its results is not regulated, for purchasing
power is, differently expressed', nothing but a share in the resiilts of the
productive power or in the national income."-"-
For this argument it is necessary to prove that the wages of labour
are not paid from capital, but, standing on the same level as rents, ^
are with these a share in the produce, and thus in the income of the
period for which they are paid. For if wages are paid out of capital
they cannot be increased beyond the limits of this capital without
striking at the roots of national production and prosperity, but if paid
out of the national income they may be increased without capital
being touched : (i) either wages may be increased at the cost of rents;
or, and this is the proposal of Rodbertus, (2) without rents being re-
duced such precautions may be taken that the labourer shall benefit
by the increased productivity which science causes. In estabhshing
his initial proposition that commodities only cost labour, Rodbertus
excludes the share of nature and of mind in production from the idea
of cost. All the cost to man consists of physical force and time.
1 " Zur Erkenntniss unsrer staatswirthschaftlichen Zustande," pp. 28, 39, not?.
2 It may here be anticipated tliat Rodbertus adopts two kinds of rent, rent from land and
rent from capital (Grund- and Katitalrente). The terms wUl be noticed later. He also
divides property into three kinds, property in land, capital (both of which laU under the head
of tentirendes Sigealhum), and income.
68 German Socialism.
Material is necessary, but this nature supplies ; jnind must also show
labour the way, but here again the element of cost is lacking j tools
are requisite, but tools resolve themselves into labour. The full cost
of a commodity falls into three parts : the labour directly bestowed
upon its manufacture ; the labour bestowed upon the material in its
earlier stages ; and a certain amount of labour corresponding to the
wear of the tools employed. But it is a mistake to regard the food
consumed by the labourer during his work as part of the cost of the
commodity ; it is rather a part of the produce of his work. This error
arises from the habit of reckoning wages to capital in the same way as
material and tools, while they stand in reality on the same level as
rent and profit. Material and tools stand in the relation of capital to
the product, for they are produced in order to serve for future produc-
tion, but food is only produced in order that the labourer may live,
not in order that power of future production may be givtn, and thus it
is the income of the period in which it is produced. When the process
of production begins there exists no natural stock of food out of which
to pay wages. The undertaker has, indeed, to have a fund out of
which to remunerate his workmen, but it is not a food supply whicb
must, like materials and tools, exist before production is begun ; it is
merely a money-fund — a fiind of notes or orders {Anweisungeii) on
any desired commodities, which are handed out to the labourer in re-
ward of his labour. The labourer receives these orders only because
he has supplied a certain product, and the man with whom he ex-
changes them for food recognises in the money a guarantee for its
substitution in the product of the workman's labour. Thus the labourer
is paid not out of capital but out of the produce of his own labour, and
it is only division of labour and exchange that cause confusion. This
brings Rodbertus to his conclusion that wages are, equally with profit
and rent, a share in the produce, in the income ; so that, as he says,
" The bread on which the labourer lives is .certainly worse than that of
the rentier, but it is equally as fresh." To regard wages as part of
capital is to place the labourer on a level with the rriaterial and the
tool ; he is made a mere machine, and his food is like the fodder of
the ox, or the coal which feeds the engine. ,
Having thus placed wages upon the same level as rent and profit,
Rodbertus reaches another stage in his argiunent, viz., the relationship
which this share in the produce bears to the other shares. Here,
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. 69
however, we stumble over his theory of rent. He defines rent as that
income which is derived by virtue of a possession and without labour,
and he divides rent intp rent from land and rent from capital. The
food and means of subsistence paid to the labourers from the produce
of the land are their wages, and the rest of the commodities produced
are the rent retained by the owner of the land : this is land-rent.
Similarly, capital-rent is all the income which remains to the capitalist
after deduction of the wages paid to his labourers. Originally, how-
ever, the land-owner and capitalist were one. " Only with the rise of
the modem towns, with the legal distinction between country and
town, with the exclusive right of the latter to carry on most industries,
with the necessary result that the raw products must change owners,
was a separate capitalist class with the idea of capital formed, and
. therewith the possibility given that where the landowner himself em-
ployed capital he might calculate a part of his income as falling to
this."^ If the capitalist, instead of employing labourers himself, pre-
fers to hand over materials and tools to another in return for a part of
the rent-income, the undertaker appears, and the recompense which
he gives to the capitalist is interest on capital. Thus capital-rent falls
into interest for the capitalist and profit for the undertaker. Conse-
quently, land-rent, interest, and profit form together the overplus
which remains after wages have been deducted from the total national
produce. He draws no distinction between land and capital-rent as
to character or origin, but remarks: "While Zachariae" said that
land-rent is 'a deduction from the wages which, if land had no
owner, would wholly fall to the labourer,' I extend this proposition and
maintain that capital-rent is also a deduction from the wages which, if
capital had no private owner, would wholly fall to the labourer," and
he adds that it is entirely the institution of private property in land
and capital which has given to the owners of land and capital a pro-
perty in the produce of labour, and which now "compels the labourers
to be satisfied with a small share in their own produce."
How, then, is the produce divided ? Rodbertus lays it down that (i)
"With a g^iven value of produce, or with the. produce of a given
quantity of labour, or with a given national produce, the height of rent
is in inverse proportion to the height of wages, and in direct propor-
1 "Zur Erkenntniss," pp. 77i 78.
3 Heinrich Albert Zachariae, bom NoTcmber 30th, 1806, at Herbsleben, Gotha, became
professor at Giittingen in 183s, and died April ajlh, 187s, at Canstatt.
70 German Socialism.
tion to the height of the productivity of labour in general. The
lower wages are, the higher rent; the higher the productivity of
labour, the lower wages and the higher rent. (2) Let the height
of rent be given with a certain value of produce, and the height
of land-rent and that of prbfit on capital stand in inverse pro-
portion to each other, and to the height of the productivity of
the labour expended on raw product and manufacture respectively.
According as the land-rent is higher or lower will profit be lower or
higher, and conversely ; the higher or lower the productivity of the
labour expended on raw product or manufacture, the lower or higher
land-rent or profit, and conversely the higher or lower profit or land-
rent. (3) The height of profit on capital is entirely determined by the
height of the value of the produce in general, and that of the raw pro-
duct and manufactured product in particular, or by the relationship of
the productivity of labour in general, and of the labour bestowed on
raw production and manufacture in particular ; in addition, the height
of land-rent depends on the magnitude of the value of the produce or
the quantity of labour or productive power which is employed with a
given relationship of productivity to production."'^ Thus the higher
the value of the raw product, the greater its share in the return, and
vice versa J but as value decreases with the increase of productivity, a
higher productivity in agricultural than in industrial labour will cause
^ fall in land-rent as compared with capital-rent, and conversely. It
follows from what has been said that so far as the division of the rent
is concerned, the landowner can only benefit at the expense of the
capitalist and vice versa. But all produce is the produce of labour,
and with free competition the value of every commodity gravitates to-
wards the value of the labour expended upon it ; so that the relation-
ship between the values of the raw and manufactured products is, on
the whole, only regulated by the amount of labour expended upon each.
Rodbertus points out that a change in the sum of a nation's productive
forces, in other words, a change in the number of labourers — apart, of
course, from an alteration in productivity, or in the division of the pro-
duce — only changes the sum of the national produce and the amounts
(not the proportions) which fall to rent and wages. According as the
sum of the productive forces employed increases or decreases, will
more or less rent be received by the land-owners, and more or less
I Third "Social Leuer," (1&51), edition 1875, pp. 123, 224,
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. 71
profit by tlie capitalists. Wages will not be higher with increased pro-
duction, because, productivity and division being supposed the same,
the increased produce falling to the labourers will be shared by the
larger popiulation. Yet an increase of rent in consequence of the in-
crease of productive forces does not influence land-rent and profit on
capital in the same way. It increases the former, but does not in-
crease the rate of profit. This is because the increased land-rent must
be reckoned on the same area, since land does not grow, while in-
creased profit falls to an increased capital. Land-rent is thus in the
fortuiiate position of being able to increase in three ways, at the cost of
wages, by the diminution of the labourers' share in the produce ; at the
cost of profit on capital, by encroachment upon the capitalists' share ;
and by the increase of rent as a whole. There is, however, a way in
which both kinds of rent may increase without one of them suffering,
and it is by the depression of the wages share in the produce.
Whether wages fall simultaneously below the level of necessary sub
sistence depends upon the productivity of labour. They may form a ,
less share of the produce, and still be sufficient to maintain the
labourer. The reason why wages are at the mercy of land-rent and
capital, is that labour is made an ordinary article of merchandise,
which it should not be. The workman gives his labour to the underi
taker accor^ng to the law of supply and demand, and receives,
■according to the same law, the exchange equivalent in wages. This
distribution of the national produce according to the " natural " laws of
exchange, entails the consequence that with the increasing productivity
of labour, the wages of the labourer form an ever-decreasing propor-
tion of the produce. Labour is bought and sold for its cost price, viz.,
food. " As if the employer gave the labour," says Rodbertus, " and
did not receive it." The labourer when he receives, in his day's wages,
the food necessary for the day, does not receive the produce of his
day's labour : he has to be satisfied with less than the day is worth.
The slave is compelled to do this by force, and the free labourer
by hunger. He complains that the shares of the landowner, the
capitahst, and the labourer in the produce are not regulated by social
foresight, by a rational social law, but are left to the arbitrary working
of so-called " natural " laws. " It depends on the chances of the
market how great the share of each class in the national produce
,will be."
72 German Socialism.
Rent being, according to the theory of Rodbertus, all income which
is received without labour and entirely by virtue of a possession, it
follows that this category of income includes the landowner's rent, the
capitalist's interest, and the undertaker's profit. Since there is no in-
come which is not produced by labour, rent rests upon two inevitable
provisoes. (l) There can be no rent unless (he labour produce more
than is necessary in order that the labourer may continue his labour,
, for without this surplus it is not possible that a person can draw an in-
come, unless he work himself. (2) There can be no rent unless insti-
tutions exist for depriving the labourer of this surplus, wholly or in
part, and giving it to others, who do not themselves work, since the
labourer is primarily in possession of the produce of his labour.
Economic grounds, the same grounds which account for the increased
productivity of labour, prove that labour gives this surplus, and it is law
which takes it from the labourer and gives it to ariother. This is
especially seen in the case of slave-labour, where the labourer is
allowed just so much of the produce as is necessary to the continuation
of his labour. Nowadays, the arbitrary measures of the slave-owner have
been replaced by the wages-contract between labourer and employer,
but, says Rodbertus, " this contract is only formally and not actually
free, and hunger fully takes the place of the whip. What used to be
called food, is now called wages." Where and .when this happy-go-
lucky plan of distributing the produce is followed, it is impossible to
expect that satisfactory results will attend the increase of the pro-
ductivity of labour. The wealth of society may increase to such an
extent that all its members might live in abundance, and yet the fact
may be that the majority are plunged into poverty. Rodbertus,
writing nearly forty years ago, calls attention to phenomena which are
to-day attracting great attention. He found that the process of im-
poverishment was then steadily going on amongst a large class of
society. " It has reached such an extent, that a very large part of
the people is no longer able to live upon its own means, but is in some
way or other thrown on the support of the other part of society. . . . This
fact runs parallel with another equally indubitable, and making the
first still more striking : the national wealth has simultaneously in-
creased.. Not only has the national income become greater, because
the population has increased, and the increased population has there-
fore produced more, but if the increased national wealth be divided
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. 73
between the increased population there is a larger sum per head." ^
These remarkable facts go together : (i), the impoverishment in a
nation increases out of proportion to the growth of population, while
simultaneously (2) the national income increases at greater ratio than
the population, and the national wealth also tends to grow.
This phenomenon Rodbertus holds to be unique in history. There
have been times when a universally increasing impoverishment has
taken place — as the time of the decay of the Roman Empire — times,
too, when an individual class has suffered temporarily — this is often
the case with both landed proprietors and;\capitahsts — but never before
have we had a continually increasing partial impoverishment of
society, a steady growth in the impoverishment of one and the same
class of people, while all the time the national wealth has increased.
This brings Rodbertus to a theory of pauperism and commercial
crises. According to the exchange-value possessed by a person is the
extent of his purchasing power, and according to his purchasing power
is the amount of the use-value which he can convert into exchange-
value. There must be in exchange a purchasing power equal to the
use-value produced for society, or else a part of the same cannot
become exchange-value by passing into the hands of consumers. If
every producer received the value of all he produced, increasing pro-
ductivity could not bring about stagnation in trade until more com-
modities had been produced than society needed. For the purchasing
power would be equal to the use-value produced, and until the needs
of all consumers were satisfied there could be no over-production.
But the purchasing power of the labourers is not equal to the use-
value they produce ; it rather decreases with increasing productivity.
The consequence is that over-production enters in before the needs of
society are satisfied. As a matter of fact, the production may not be
excessive, but the purchasing power of the labouring class is exhausted
before its wants are suppUed. Thus commercial crises occur, and
thus pauperism is created. These phenomena he attributes to the
existence of a " cruel law," according to which " When commerce is
left to adjust the distribution of the national produce at will, certain
circumstances connected with the development of society have the
effect that with the increasing productivity of social labour, the wages of
the labouring classes become an ever-decreasing part of that national
1 First " Social Letter, " (Berlin, i85o), p. 9.
74 German Sociatism.
produce.'' Here he does not mean merely tlie amount of nominal
wages— the quantity of food, clothing, &c., purchasable with the' money
received — but the proportionate share which the labourer derives from
the total produce. Two assumptions are necessary to the correctness
of this theory ; the one that the productivity of labour has increased and
is still increasing, the other that the share of the labourer has in reality
not increased proportionately, has remained stationary, or has fallen.
These historical suppositions proved, however, it follows necessarily
that wages as a quota of the national produce have fallen simul-
taneously with an increasing productivity. He holds that both
assumptions are correct, — that agricultural ^ and industrial labour is
increasingly productive, and that wages have in Europe failed in
general to rise much or for a long time above the lipiit of necessary
wants, but form an ever-decreasing part of the produce of society,
with the consequence that rent increases and the recipients of rent
flourish at the expense of the labourers. The labouring classes were
formerly the victims of legal privilege, now they are the prey of a
ruling class. Their toil begins with the rising and ends with the
setting of the sun, but no exertion can alleviate their hard lot. Is it
not a just claim that those who create the wealth should receive a fair
share, and enjoy some of the advantages which it offers to society ?
Rodbertus recognises that we are at present living in an anomalous ,
state of things. The working classes possess full personal freedom,
and are received in the State union with rights and duties similar to
those of the propertied classes. The State is now society, and the
change is pregnant with significance. That system has, he says, been .
abolished in which, as in antiquity, the greater part of society stood
outside the State as aliens or slaves. So, too, has disappeared that
system in which, as in the Middle Ages, all society stood within the
State, but in which the State was a conglomeration of associations
wherein the State rights and duties of members of society were fully
defined. The existing condition of society is one in which all citizens
have equal rights. Thus all the concomitant institutions and arrange-
ments of eariier social orders cease with the disappearance of these
to be longer valid. The working classes can no more be excluded,
I Rodbertus devotes his third " Social Letter " (Berlin, 1851) to a refutation of RicardO's
theory of rent and of his contention that the productivity of agriculture tends to diminish a
contention which he calls a " phantom of Ricardo's, set up for the purpose of supporting
his theory of rent.
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle 75
from the consideration of the State, and they acquire the new right of
being entitled to share in the resources of society. " Incontestably
the free citizen who fulfils his duties to society has a legitimate claim
to a commensurate share in the common produce, unless the idea of a
claim without debtor be conceded." But Rodbertus holds it to be
good policy as well as mere justice to recognise this claim.
"The working classes," he says, "who have hitherto gone so
willingly in the yoke of an unremunerated labour, are now not only
kicking agamst the insupportableness of their suffering, and the
torment of inadequate attempts at a remedy, but are, under a feehng
of their right, about to throw the whole load from their backs. The
imminent danger exists that they will prefer to destroy the civilisation
of society, so that they may no longer have to bear the suffering of this
civilisation. The imminent danger exists that again a storm of
barbarism — this time proceeding from society itself — will lay waste
the seats of culture and wealth. It is madness to think of relying
upon armies for protection against the danger of this second migration
of nations. The barbarians who had served in Rome's armies
conquered Rome."^ And, again, we find him exclaiming, "What
contradictions in the sphere of political economy in particular, and
what contradictions in the social system throughout 1 The social
wealth increases and the companion of this increase is the increase of
poverty." The social condition of the working classes should be
raised to the level of their poUtical condition, but all that has been
done so far, has been to press it lower down. Rodbertus has no
patience with the egoism which, " clothing itself too often in the garb
of morality," says that the vices of the working classes are the causes of
their misery and of pauperism. People call out to the labourer " Ora
et labora" and enjoin upon him the duty of temperance and provi-
dence, but the fact is, says Rodbertus, that thrift is an impossibility,
and to preach thrift where there is no chance of saving is pure cant
and cruelty. Not, indeed, that morality is not to be enjoined on the
working classes. MoraUty should never cease to enforce its Cate-
gorical Imperative everywhere, powerless as the human will is to attain
to perfection, but the policy of merely reiterating the duty of morality
is useless. He who gives bread to the hungry man, he remarks,
protects him far more surely from stealing than he who repeats the
1 1'iist " Social Letter," p. 79.
^6 German Socialism.
command, "Thou shalt not steal." Nor has he much more respect
for the Laissez-faire school of economists. The production of
commodities being a social matter, and depending upon the labour of
all the members of society, an endeavour should be made to find a
proper standard for distribution. He sneers at the argument of
"natural laws." Only in nature do natural laws act of themselves
intelligently. For society, which is not natural, laws must be made.
We thus see that the aim of Rodbertus is to secure the labourer a
larger and fairer share in the produce. He takes care to repudiate
the doctrine of those who would adopt the rough and ready remedy of
giving the labourer all the produce. In his third " Social Letter," he
expresses himself explicitly on this point : — " While I maintain that
land-rent and profit on capital — and therefore farm-rent and under-
takers' profit — are the product of the labour of others than the
recipients, in consequence of their being in possession of land and
capital ; and while I also maintain that the institution of property in
land and capital causes the labourers to be deprived of a part of their
produce, I do not at all mean to contend that those who employ a
number of labourers productively with capital should not be remuner-
ated for their social services. Common-sense will never allow itself to
be deceived. Not only knowledge but also moral power and energy
are needed in order to the successful division of the operations of a
number of labourers engaged in production. The same qualities are
also necessary, in order that the demands of the market may be under-
stood, funds be employed correspondingly, and the requirements of
society be promptly satisfied. It is seldom that a capitalist or a
landowner is not somehow active in this manner. The productive
labourer does not perform services of this kind, nor from the nature of
his employment can he. And yet, these services are absolutely
necessary in natural production. For this reason, no one will doubt,
so long as social services continue to be remunerated, that capitalists
and landowners, undertakers and directors of undertakings, are as
much entitled to reward for the useful and necessary services they
render to society, as is the labourer for his useful services of a differ-
ent kind. They are as much entitled as a Minister of Commerce and
Public Works is — provided he does his duty. Further, these services,
like those of judges, schoolmasters, physicians, &c., can only be
remunerated from the produce of the labourers' work, since there is an
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. jy
other source of material wealth." Rodbertus, moreover, does not
desire to do away at once with property in land and capital, though
only admitting the "relative necessity for the present day" of this
institution, and denying an absolute necessity ; what he first seeks to
do is to prevent the increasing stream of social wealth from emptying
itself further in rent.l
Rodbertus proposes to abolish the present wages-contract and to intro-
duce in its place a normal workday with a normal form of wages ; then to
introduce labour-note money, the issue of which should be entirely in the
hands of the State : and finally to establish a system of warehouses for
commodities to be paid as wages. These contrivances would provision-
ally leave property in land and capital as at present, except that for
the future the labouring classes would share in the increasing produc-
tivity; but the ultimate goal is the replacement of this form of property
by a property in income alone, which would inaugurate a new and a
higher State order than any that has gone before. And here a word
in passing as to Rodbertus' idea of the State. In his theory of the
State Rodbertus advances from the elementary organism of the family
to the tribe. This is the era of the hunters of the plain, when men
worked merely to live and did not live to work. All the produce of
labour belonged to the labourer. The vanquished enemy was killed,
for there was no food to support him. Then came the gradual
formation of the State. Agriculture of a primitive kind was introduced
— the cultivation of the land and the rearing of cattle — and now it
was possible to win in one day more food than was needed for the
day's demand. There v/as leisure to spare, and so the dawning ap-
peared of a new era, when mental as well as physical pursuits could
be followed. There was now introduced the institution of slavery.
The conquered were no longer put to death ; they were put to labour,
they were made to produce food for the victors. The slaves were
supplied with food and enjoyed protection, but they and their labour
were the absolute possession of their masters. The State which was
thus based on slavery Rodbertus calls the heathen-antique type, and he
1 Rodbertus holds that the collective properly which the Social-Democrats seek would
lead to far greiter injustice than is caused by individual property, and he says in one of his
letters, " The working-classes here follow Lassalle. But I had by letter brought home to him
the absurdities 4nd injustices to which such a property must, lead and (what was particularly
disagreeable to him) that hi was not the originator of this idea, but that he had taken it from
Proudhoa's ' Idle ginirali de U rivslutioM."
78 German Socialism.
reckons to this group four forms — those of the Pharaohs and the Incas,
the Indians, the Persians, and the Greeks and Romans. But in pro-
cess of time the man became free and only the soil and the tools
remained in the hands of the master. This is the era of the Chris-
tian-Germanic group, comprising the Ecclesiastical State, that of the
Estates, the Bureaucratic State, and the Representative State, the
last being the State of the present. Rodbertus says that we are on
the eve of a new era, and that the coming State >vill differ as much
from the present form, and be as superior to it, as the present differs
from and is superior to its predecessors. This difference and superi-
ority will consist in the institution of a new form of property and a
new relationship between the various classes of society. He, in fact,
imagines a state of society in which the only individual property is
that of income, both land and national produce belonging to the entire
nation in common. With such an ideal order of things, commodities
would only cpst labour, and it would only be possible to express the
value of commodities according to the measure of time, for the length
of time taken to produce a commodity by labour would be its cost.
To deal, first, with the transitional change. Rodbertus would take
nothing directly from property in land and capital. All he desires to
do is to adopt such measures as may prevent the increasing national
productivity from falling in the future exclusively to rent and profit, so
that wages may receive a due share. For this purpose the State must
ascertain the present value of the national produce in metal money,
and the quota which the present national wages fund forms, then
the sum of the wages must be commuted into national produce estima-
ted according to labour, and must for the future be retained at the
proportion thus found. Before going further, we must understand
what Rodbertus means by his normal workday, which is based on his
initial principle that economic commodities cost labour and only
labour. The term normal workday does not mean with him what it
means -with most Socialists, a legally determined number of hours'
work daily. He expressly says in one place that the expectation that
such a normal workday will protect the labourers from the greed of
their employers, and secure them fair wages, is entirely without
foundation. Nor does he regard the legal limitation of the period of
labour in the case of adult males as tenable on practical grounds, or
defensible when regarded from the standpoint of personal right.
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. 79
though he makes an exception with females and children. " As much
as I am for the subordination of the individual to the State," he says, " I
still maintain that the State has no right to say to a free man, ' You
shall work no more than so and so many hours daily ■ ' for this is
virtually what it means — to forbid undertakers to allow work more
than a certain number of hours daily, is to forbid work-people to work
more than a certain number of hours." He recognises, indeed, that too
long labour is an evil, but he asks the reason why the working classes
must labour so long for the satisfaction of their bare needs ; and this
brings him again to the crux of the whole social problem. The law
which makes the share of the labourers in the produce continually
smaller, and the further law which forces wages down to the cost of
necessary subsistence, would work more unjustly than before. Besides,
a normal time-day in the ordinary acceptance of the term would not
be fair, for good and bad labourers would be placed on the same level,
to the total disregard of the rights of employers. The proper thing is
to increase wages, and then if the workman finds that he can earn in
four hours enough to keep him for the day, there will be little fear of
his working twelve. Even if the State were to restrict the hours of
labour to eight, and to decree that wages should not be reduced, the
material position of the working classes would not be improved.
" Legislation which only restricts the hours of labour merely lops the
branches of a poison-tree. Legislation which at once fixes a definite
amount of labour, or rather a definite performance {Leistungsquantum),
lays the axe at its roots, plants in its place a healthy, fruitful tree, which
it can then allow to shoot and blossom as freely as it will." Thus the day
must be normal not only as to time but as to performance. Three points
have to be borne in mind in considering this question : time, perform-
ance, and income. As to time, the Legislature in fixing a normal
workday would probably begin by assuming that in a certain nurriber
of hours — say six or eight, according to the industry — a workman can
and must earn as much as his position as a citizen requires. On the
basis of this standard of time he would fix a standard of performance
or work done, and then on the basis of the latter he would finally fix an
adequate standard of income. In that way the workman would for an
average quantity of work done receive a normal income. A " perfect
normal workday," according to Rodbertus, presumes therefore
" Normal performance in the normal time and normal wages for the
8o German Socialism.
normal performance." According to this rule he would let men work
as long- as they might desire, though the State should contrive that the
normal performance of a workday of eight, nine, or ten hours
gave wages corresponding to the social position of the workman and
the existing state of national productivity. Either the State might fix
this standard of wages itself, or employer? and workmen might agree
upon a scale under the supervision of the State, but the wages-scale
would, like the scale of work, require periodical revision in accordance
with the increasing productivity of labour. Recapitulated the objects
which the normal workday would aim after are : (i) Justice between
employer and employed!, in that an average performance would be re-
quired for the normal day ; (2) justice between workman and workman, in
that the workman would be paid according to his work, the good work-
man receiving more and the bad workman less ; and (3) justice between
the working classes and society, in that the former as a part of society
would benefit by every succeeding increase in the national productivity,
instead of the benefit going solely to the landowners and capitalists. ^
Rodbertus makes his proposal clearer by an example. Let it be
supposed that the labouring population of a countrj- turns out pro-
duce equal in value to 10,000,000 normal hours of labour — normal
labour being now an invariable standard of value — and that of this
amount 3,000,000 fall to wages, 1,000,000 to the State for national
purposes, and 3,000,000 each to rent and profit on capital. Suppose,
too, that the wages represented by 3,000,000 hours of labour are only
equal to the bare cost of subsistence. After twenty years the pro-
ductivity has, perhaps, doubled, so that the same number of labourers
turn out double the former produce. In other words the 3,000,000
hours of labour represent twice the cost of subsistence. Under the
" iron law " of wages the labourer would, however, continue to receive
the amount of wages equal to the cost of living. Thus measured
according to normal labour the wages would only be half what they
were before, for instead of forming j^ths of the whole produce they
would now only be ^ths. If, however, wages formed a fixed quota of
the produce they would still form ^ths of the whole, and the real
wages would be equal to twice the cost of living.
1 Rodbertus had trained a Pomeranian landowner, a tenant, and a farm inspector into liis
normal workday scheme, and they found that it " worked very well." This was before 1848,
but the catastrophe of that year came " raw and cold, and destroyed the life of the young
plant."
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. 8i
A further advantage of the normal workday would, in the opinion oi
Rodbertus, be the discovery of a better measure of value' than is fur-
nished by either gold or silver, viz., labour itself. The retention of metal
money as a measure of value would lead to difficulties, owing to the
fluctuations to which the precious metals are subject, and so Rodbertus
requires not only that the value of all produce shall be reckoned
according to normal work-time ; but that wages in every trade shall
be paid according to normal work-time. The product of a normal
day's work would represent one workday, whatever the time taken to
its production, and thus the product of one trade would be equal to
that of any other : in other words, "products of equal work-time would
be equal to one another in value," labour being in this way the measure
of all value. The workman would now be paid for so much normal
labour performed, and his wages would represent a certain value of
produce.
According to this mode of calculating value, the entire raw products
of a country would have a value equal to the direct labour bestowed
upon them,//KJthe indirect labour represented by the wear and repair
of tools. The half-manufactured products would have a value equal
to the direct and indirect labour expended on them, plus the value of
the raw products. The value of the manufactured commodities, fin-
ally, would be equal to the direct and indirect labour expended on
them, 'plus the value of the half-manufactured products. Thus the
value of the national produce would, in the end, be equal to the sum
of the normal labour directly and indirectly performed. From the
aggregate value would be learned the value of every single category of
production, from this the value of any desired quantity of a product.
The constituted value of a bushel of wheat would be found by dividing
the aggregate value of the wheat by the number of bushels in an
average harvest. But, further, to the proper execution of this plan of a
ncwmal workday, with its corollary of a labour standard of value, it
would be necessary to introduce a new paper money running in hours
and fractions of hours of labour. The labourers would be paid in this
money, for which they would be entitled to purchase, ' in accordance
with its value, any desired commodities. A commodity which had cost
one hour's work would be purchasable with a one-hour ticket or cer-
tificate. This paper money would be an ideal money, inasmuch as it
would be a perfect measure of value, and would ensure absolut?
82 German Socialism.
security, since it would only be issued when the indicated value really
/ existed. 5^ To meet the possibility of the fraudulent use of tickets, the
State should alone issue the new money, and for safety it might rely
upon the difficulty or impossibility of imitation in the manufacture of
the paper, and also upon the penal law. The danger of the State
deceiving the nation, by appropriating commodities without authority,
might be guarded against by the proper organisation of the State
authorities and the control offered by publicity. The State would then
grant loans in the paper money to employers according to the amount
of labour they employed, and these loans would be repaid in produce
calculated according to normal labour. Warehouses would be estab-
lished for the produce thus paid, and the tickets paid to the labourers
would be accepted here in exchange for commodities desired by the
holders of the tickets. It would not, however, be absolutely necessary
that these warehouses should be established ; the labourers might be
paid in labour-money, and the State might merely receive it at bank-
ing houses in exchange for metal money. Either plan would allow of
the labourers receiving their fixed share of the produce, first in money
and then in commodities. If they worked twelve hours a day, and
their share of the produce were a third, they would be paid for four
hours, and the remaining produce and the paper money corresponding
to it would fall to the capitalists and landowners.
Let us now see how the system would work. Keeping to the figures
and proportions taken before, we will suppose a national produce of
10,000 000 hours of labour, of which 1,000,000 fall to the State, while
9,000,000 are divided equally amongst landowners, capitalists (together
to be called the propertied classes), and labourers. This latter amount
thus represents the distributable produce, and with it alone have we
1 In constructing this system, Rodbertus claims to have proceeded upon entirely independent
tines. " In 1842," he writes, " when I explained the idea of a constituted value and a
labour-money in ' Zur Erkenntniss,' I did not know that a practical experiment had ever
been made in France or England. Up to the present time I have been unable to learn any-
thing in detail as to Owen's bank, and the description of Reybaud ["Etudes sur les R^form-
ateurs "] is clearly vague and faulty." (" Das Kapital," p. 156.) He also takes care to pre-
vent confusion with Chitti's " Des crises financifires," a work he never read, and only heard
of through a critique.
In " The Social System," by John Gray (Edinburgh, 1831), and " Lectures on the use of
Money," by the same, (Edinburgh, 1848), we have a somewhat similar scheme to that of Rod-
bertus explained. Compare the following passage : — " Money should be merely a receipt, an
evidence that the holder of it has either contributed a certain value to the national stock of wealth,
or th^t h^ has acquired a right to the same value frofu spme one who has contrib4te4 to it,"
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle.
83
to do. It is evident that the commodities produced cannot all be such
as the labouring classes will require. The propertied and labouring
classes must, therefore, be divided into groups according as they con-
sume, let us say, articles of luxury and useful commodities. Following
the plan adopted by Moritz Wirth in his critique of Rodbertus, a table
may with advantage be drawn up as follows :
Group I.
A Propertied classes ) Producing
^ f useful
X Commod-
Aa Labouring classes ) ities.
Group II.
B Propertied classes '\ producing
\ Articles of
BB Labouring classes ) Luxury.
Let the value of the combined produce of a fixed period be 9,000,000
hours, work-time being the measure of value. The produce of A — Aa
consists, we will say, of 3,000,000 hours (useful commodities), and that
of B — Bb consists of 6,000,000 hours (articles of luxury). The labouring
classes require the useful commodities, the prot)ertied classes require
the articles of luxury ; but how to adjust this exchange ? As the
labourers' share of the produce is a third of the whole, A pays over to
Aa labour-money to the amount of 1,000,000 hours, and similarly B
pays to Bb labour-money amounting to 2,000,000 hours. Aa and Bb
exchange their money, together 3,000,000 hours, for the warehoused
produce of A. Now the labourers are in possession of the useful
commodities produced. A has cleared out, and has received labour-
money representing 3,000,000 hours, and B retains a full warehouse ol
articles of luxury. The propertied classes A must, however, be supplied
from the produce of B. Of the labour-tickets of A a third are retained
for future use, and two-thirds are exchanged for articles of luxury
held by B. Now B has 2,000,000 hour-tickets and 4,000,000 hours'
value of articles of luxury for division. The net result may be shown
as follows (in miUions) :
ORIGINAL PRODUCE
Useful Articles of
Commodities. Luxury.
A Propertied classes 3 —
Aa Labouring classes (now labour tickets)
B Propertied classes — 6
Bb Labouring classes (now labour tickets)
V , 1
AFTER D
Useful
Commodities.
IVISION.
Articles of
Luxury.
2
I
—
—
4
2
—
I
J
84 German Socialism.
In addition A is in possession of 1,000,000 labour tickets (hours) and
B is in possession of 2,000,000 tickets for the future payment pf the
labourers. If the productivity were doubled the distribution would
follow the same proportion. If the production became excessive, and
more commodities were produced than could be consumed, the only
effect would be to reduce the amount of labour done to the requisite
production. Everyone would still have all he needed, and in addition
more leisure would be afforded for intellectual pursuits. Rodbertus,
therefore, holds that his system of distribution excludes the possi-
bility of commercial crises, though Wirth shows that with a reduction
of wages — that is, with a diminution of the labourers' share in the
produce — a crisis would occur.
Though Rodbertus thinks that property in land and capital could
be dispensed "with, there are circumstances which make it impossible
to expect that this can take place for a long time. These reasons
are not, however, economic. Already the largest productive concerns
are directed by ofScials : why not by the State equally well ? The
reasons are social, for apart from the question of right it must be
remembered that property exercises an educational and cohesive power
in s,ociety which cannot safely be allowed to slip away unless an
adequate substitute, be found. Nevertheless, the supplanting of this
form of property is the ultimate goal he has in view, for the ideal form
is property in income only. He finds that with division of labour only
two alternatives are open : either the present system of property in
land and capital, in which the social produce of the labour of many
persons belongs to one individual, or else a " social property in land
and capital," with a share for everyone in the value of the common
produce. The term " social property in land and capital " has two
meanings. It may stand for a system (i) according to which the
State owns the entire national soil and produce, or (2) for the Associa-
tion system of production, in which the State furnishes the land and
capital requisite to the carrying on of independeiit agricultural and
j'industrial undertakings, a transitional form of which system is seen in
I profit-sharing. In the latter case the social property would be really
private property in another form, and the effect would be to resolve
the State into innumerable small productive or trading associations,
working like commercial companies ordinarily do. This plan he
regards not only as undesirable but as incapable of realisation. The
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. 85
other form which society without private property might take is that
in which the land and capital are liberated from private possession,
whether by individuals or communities, and belong to the entire nation
as such. Here the entire national produce would remain social until
it came to be distributed as national income for consumption by the
individual members of society. One may imagine, says Rodbertjis, a
communism in regard to the land and capital of a nation without
communism in distribution. Here only property yielding rent— rent,
that is, in the wider sense of the word — would be abolished, and not
property altogether. Property would rest then on its true basis,
labour, and would not consist in "the individual property of the
labourer in his direct produce — which is, with the division of labour
and with property in land and capital, impossible — but in the indivi-
dual property of the labourer in the entire -value of his produce."
Division of labour might retain the same form as at present. Farms,
factories, industrial undertakings of all kinds might be carried on as
now, but it would be on the common account j and they might even
produce the same commodities as now, only care would be taken to
adjust production to the national demand. The State would own the
land and capital absolutely, but its control over the produce would
only continue until the distribution took place : it would exercise no
supervision over the incomes of persons, neither over the persons
themselves as owners nor over their free wills. There would be full
personal freedom, with the exception of the absence of power to
acquire property in land and capital. Life, talent, and capacities
would be untouched, and private associations for the beneficial
employment and enjoyment of income might exist without restraint.
There would be no oppression of the weak by the strong, for the
system is based, not on subjection and slavery, but on the free and
universal fulfilment of those duties upon whose performance the State
depends. Freedom would be greater, equality more general, and pro-
perty itself more secure in a system of communism in land and capital
than in any system which allows these to remain in private hands, for
only when this form of personal property is abolished will social
despotism disappear. There would, however, be compensation for
the proprietors disappropriated. Their rents would be ascertained,
and they would be redeemed in course of time at their value, but as
productivity increased the amount of the country's indebtedness to
the proprietors would become gradually smaller.
86 German Socialism.
" Not Individualism but Socialism completes the series of emanci-
pations which began with the Reformation." ^ This is Rodbertus'
conclusion. He is convinced that only when the social system thus
described comes into operation will right and liberty truly prevail.
After all, he says, the new form of property does not differ more from
property in land and capital than this does from property in human
beings. And still he does not seek to minimise the dilBculties that
stand between him and his goal. " The way is long," he remarks in
one of his letters, but for that reason it is desirable that the journey
shall be begun without delay. Justice and prudence alike urge the
necessity for movement, since the social question is fast taking this
form : " Are the proprietors of the soil to be driven out, as in a migra-
tion of the nations, by those who are without property i " But the
cost ! " Certainly, the solution of the social problem will cost more
, than the printer's ink of a police order, simply because it is the social
problem." He is confident that this problem will never be settled
" in the street by meanfe of strikes, paving-stones, or petroleum,'' that
social ills will not be " relieved, much less healed, by camomile
tea."^ Permanent social peace, a strong Executive Power, enjoying
the confidence and attachment of the working classes, and extensive
preparations made in quiet and order, are all necessary preliminaries
to the final settlement of a difficulty which becomes more dangerous
the longer it is ignored.
No one, however, could be more sensible of the vastness of the task
involved in the realisation of his scheme than was Rodbertus himself,
and that is why he was to the last desirous to see a temporary com-
promise effected, a compromise the object of which should be to give
to the labouring classes a just share in the produce of their labour.
During the life of this eminent theoist a question of precedence
arose as between himself and Karl Marx, and since his death it has
excited a good deal of controversy. It is not to be denied that in
Germany a majority of leading political economists give Rodbertus
the credit of having first established the theory of surplus-value which
is the basis both of his own system and that of Marx.^ Rodbertus
• " Das Kapital," p. 221.
2 Letter of November 6th, 187S.
8 Adolph Held must be mentioned as a decided opponent of Rodbertus' claims. See his
" Sozialismus, Sozialdemokatie, und Sozialpolitilc." (Leipzig, 1878), pp. 59-65.
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. 87
does not, it is true, use the term surplus-value, but his whole argument
rests upon the contention that a portion of the labourer's produce is
retained by the capitalist, who buys labour at exchange-value and
makes profit by giving the labourer only so much of the produce as is
necessary to his maintenance. While Marx will secure the surplus-
value to the labourer by the rough and ready method of expropriation,
Rodbertus, with what some people have dared to think a higher sense
of justice, will secure it by abolishing, by legitimate means, personal
property in land and capital, and making income the only form of in-
dividual property. Rodbertus felt strongly that the author of "Capital"
had been unfair to him, and he did not hesitate to say so. He writes
to his friend Wagner on July 8th, 1872, "You will find that since 1842
— when I published my first greater work — I have unalterably followed
the same thoughts ; and that others, as for example Marx, have hit
upon much that I had already printed." And again to his corre-
spondent Zeller he writes on March 14th, 1875 '■ "You will find that
the same [line of thought] has been extensively used by Marx in his
' Capital ' and by Diihring '^ in his last important work, but certainly
without quoting me." He goes so far as to say, in a letter to Rudolph
Meyer, that Marx has "plundered" him, and in another he observes :
" Where the increased value of capital arises I have shown in my
third ' Social Letter ' essentially as Marx does, only much more briefly
and clearly. But Marx's work is not so much an investigation into
capital as a polemic upon the present form of capital, which he con-
fuses with the idea of capital itself, whence his errors spring." ^
Marx, on the other hand, would not admit plagiarism. He even
patronises Rodbertus, for referring in " Capital " * to • the third
"Social Letter," he observes: "I shall return later to this writing,
which, in spite of its false theory of rent, sees through the nature
of capitalistic production." Engels, the editor of the third edition
of " Capital," is good enough to add : " It will here be seen in what
a friendly way Marx judged his predecessors as soon as he found
in them actual progress, a new and correct idea." Had Rodbertus
lived to add a comment to this comment on a comment, he might
have shown that Marx had good reason to treat his authority with re-
spect. Engels says further in his preface to the German edition of
1 See the reprint, " Zur Beleuchtung der socialen Frage," (1875), p. 104, notf.
2 In " Briefe, etc., von Rodbertus- Jagetzow," (Berlin, 1881).
S Vol. i., edition of 1883, p. 543, note.
88 German Socialism.
" Das Elend der Philosophic," published after Marx's death, that the
charge of Rodbertus is absolutely unfounded, for Marx never saw "Zur
Erkenntniss,"— only having read the three "Social Letters," and these
not before 1858 or 1859 — ^nd did not even know of the charge of pir-
acy. But it was only in 1859 that Marx's " Zur Kritik der politischen
Okonomie" appeared. It is only fair to weigh well all that Engels
says on the subject in the preface to the second volume of " Capital.''
Here he stoutly denies either that Marx plagiarised^ or that he knew
anything of the charge which Rodbertus publicly made against him as
early as 1879, ^"^d which Rudolph Meyer had advanced on his own
account five years before in his " Emancipationskampf," a work of
which, as Engels says, Marx was in possession. Engels refers as
follows to the position of Marx in relation to the surplus-value theory ;
" The existence of that part of the value of the product which we
now call surplus-value was established long before Marx, and it was
with more or less clearness said wherein it consists, viz., the produce
of the labour for which the appropriator has paid no equivalent. But
no one got any further. Some people — ^the classical bourgeois econo-
mists — ^investigated at the most the proportion in which the product
of labour is divided between the labourer and the owner of the means
of production, and others — the Socialists — found this distribution un-
just, and sought by Utopian measures to remedy the injustice. Both,
however, remained embarrassed in the economic categories as they
had found them. Then Marx came forward, and took up a position
in direct opposition to all his predecessors. Where they had seen a
solution he saw only a problem. He saw that there was here neither
dephlogisticated air, nor inflammable air, but oxygen — that it was not
merely a question of the confirmation of an economic fact, or of the
conflict of this fact with eternal justice and true morality, but of a fact
which was calculated to revolutionise economics altogether, and which
offered the key to the comprehension of capitalistic production in its
entirety — to him who knew how to use it. Proceeding on the basis of
this fact, he investigated all the discovered categories, just as Lavoisier
on the basis of oxygen had investigated the discovered categories of
phlogistic chemistry. In order to know what surplus-value was, he
had first to learn -yvhat value itself was, and Ricardo's theory of value
had above all things to be subjected to criticism. Marx thus investi-
gated labour in its value-forming quality, and for the first time deter-
Rodbertus and the Wages Principle. 89
mined what kind of labour forms value, why and how it forms value,
and proved that value is nothing but congealed labour of this kind — a
point which Rodbertus to the last had not grasped. Marx then in-
vestigated the relationship of commodities and money, and showed
how and why, by virtue of the property of value indwelling in them,
commodities and the exchange of commodities must produce the an-
tithesis of commodities and money : the money theory he thus founded
is the first exhaustive one, and tacitly it is now universally accepted.
He investigated the transformation of money into capital, and proved
that it rests on the purchase and sale of labour-power. In thus sub- ,
stituting labour-power, the value-creating property, for labour, he
solved at once one of the difficulties on which the Ricardo school had
been shipwrecked, viz., the impossibility of bringing the reciprocal ex-
change of capital and labour into accord with Ricardo s law that
value is determined by labour. By distinguishing between constant and
variable capital he succeeded in exposing and thus explaining the real
process of formation of surplus-value in all its details, which none of
his predecessors had done ; and he also proved the existence of a
difference in capital itself, with which Rodbertus was no more able
than the bourgeois economists to do anything, though it furnishes the
key to the solution of the most complicated economic problems. He
investigated surplus-value further, found both its forms — absolute and
relative surplus-value — and showed the different, yet in each case im-
portant, part which they have played in the historical development of
capitalistic production. On the basis of surplus-value he developed the
first rational theory of wages which we have had, and for the first time
gave the characteristics of a history of capitalist accumulation and a
representation of its historical tendency." ^
So far the defence of Engels on behalf of his friend. Few people
have attempted to detract from the great credit due to Marx for
producing a work of such originality as " Capital," and yet it is
only a fair contention to say that Rodbertus had a clear idea of what
is now spoken of as the Marxian theory of value long before the pub-
lication of that work or its precursor the " Kritik." Such a claim
does not involve a charge of piracy, and much less does it seek to
minimise the importance of Marx as a founder of scientific Socialism.
So far as the reading world is concerned, the question of priority is not
1 Preface to vol. ii. of " Das Kapital," pp. 19, 20,
90 German Socialism.
of very great moment, and indeed Rodbertus and Marx may both
wear laurels as Socialist economists of light and leading, yet science
likes to apportion to every man his proper place in the Valhalla of
fame. What has been said will have prepared us for a nearer con-
sideration of Marx's views.
CHAPTER IV.
KARL MARX AND SURPLUS VALUE.
Karl Marx was bom at Treves, in the Rhine Province, on May
Sth, 1818, the son of a high mining pfiScial. Like so many men who
have achieved eminence in science and literature during modem
times, he was of Jewish blood, both his parents being Hebrews. He
belonged, indeed, to a family which could boast of an unbroken
line of rabbins from the sixteenth century. The proper name of the
family was Mordechai, but the grandfather of Marx discarded this
patronymic. Originally the father of Karl Marx was an advocate at
Treves, and it is said that when the town fell to Prussia in 1814 he
received orders from his new rulers either to be baptised into the
Christian Church or to cease legal practice. Of these alternatives the
former was chosen, and both parents renounced their religion.'^ Per-
haps this incident may explain the unseasonable bitterness and
ridicule frequently employed by the advocate's son when he went out
of his way to attack Christianity. Karl Marx studied jurisprudence
at Jena and Bonn ; but at Berlin and elsewhere philosophy, political
economy, and history engaged his attention. When quite a young
man he attracted notice on account of his genius and rare scholarly
attainments. Life seemed to offer to him brilliant prospects, for had
he either foUowedJan academic career or elected to enter the service of
the State — the two vocations for which he was thought to be best
fitted — ^he could not have failed to make his mark. Where, however,
relatives and friends proposed, Marx and circumstances disposed. He
drifted first into journalism and then into authorship combined with
political agitation. After completing his studies he lived at Treves
as a private man for some time, and in 1843 he married the sister of a
later Prussian Minister, Herr von Westphalen. Before this time, he
had shown a decided inclination for politics in articles contributed to
the Rheinische Zeitung of Cologne, of which journal he became editor
in 1842. This position enabled him to criticise the proceedings of
IG. Adler, "Die Gmndlagen der Karl Marx'sclieD Kritik der besteheoden Tolks-
wirthschaft " (Tubingen, 1887), p. 236.
92 German Socialism.
the Prussian Government with an unsparing hand, and he made him-
self so unpleasant that a special censor was sent from Berlin for the
purpose of reporting upon the movements of Marx and the hostility
of his newspaper. As, however, the bitterness of the attacks only be-
came greater, the Government resolved to go to the root of the matter
and suppressed the journal early in 1843. Marx had meanwhile
devoted great attention to social questions, and had developed strong
Socialistic tendencies, so that when in that year he removed to Paris,
partly for the sake of the further study of political economy, but also
in order to learn more about French political movements past and
present, he was recognised as the exponent of very advanced views on
social and economic questions. In Paris he soon found himself mixed
up with political movements and organisations. His literary work at
this time included the co-editorship with Arnold Ruge ^ of the
" Deutsch-Franzosische Jahrbiicher," the first number of which con-
tained contributions by Heinrich Heine,^ Michael Bakunin,® Georg
Herwegh, Ludwig Feuerbach,* Johann Jacoby, Friedrich Engels,
1 Arnold Ruge, an author of considerable importance, was bom on September Z3th, 1^03, in
the island of Kugen, and studied philosophy at Halle, Jena, and Heidelberg. He was e^rly
involved in political movements and in 1825 he received sentence of imprisonment for five
years. He also took part in the convulsions of 1848, and the following year had to quit
Germany for England, where he lived as teacher and author. Ruge was national in
sympathies and by no means a Sopialist. He' died December 31st, 1880. His literary work
was very extensive, and covered the domains of politics, philosophy, fiction, and poetry.
2 Heine was born at Dusseldorf in 1799 or z8oo (the year is variously stated), and died
February 17th, 1856. Like Marx he was of Jewish descent. He had to leave Germany on
account of the publication of rabid democratic writings in 183X, and from that year to his
death he resided in Paris.
3 Michael Bakunin was born of a rich noble family at Torschock, in the Government of
Tver, Russia, in 1814. He entered the Russian army in 1838 and in 1840 proceeded to
Berlin, whence he was recalled, but he refused to obey the summons. Remaining in Germany
he took part in revolutionary agitations and was one of the leaders of the Dresden rising of
1849. Captured by Prussian soldiers, he was lodged in KSnigstein and was in May, t850,_
sentenced to death, though his penalty was changed to one of lifelong imprisonment. He
was, however, surrendered to Austria in 1851 and was again sentenced to ^death for political
crime, the same commutation once more taking place. Finally he was handed over to
Russia, and for some years he was imprisoned on the Neva. After the Crimean War he was
transported to East Siberia, whence he succeeded in escaping to Japan and Europe. Until
his death at Bern in 1876 he took part in Anarchist movements.
* Ludwig Andrew Feuerbach, a German philosopher of note, bom at Landshut, July aSth,
1804. He studied theology at Heidelberg, and becoming a Hegelian he went to Berlin for the
purpose of hearing Daub. Here he forsook theology and devoted himself entirely to philoso-
phical studies. He intended to follow an academic career, and became Priiiatdoant in zSsS,
Karl Jifarx and Surplus Value. 93
Moses HesSji and Lazarus Bemays. Marx and Ruge did not, how-
ever, agree long, and financial difficulties caused the venture to be^
abandoned. With Heine Marx also conducted the journal VorwS.rts.
In Paris he made the acquaintance of many noted publicists and men of
science, and amongst them of Proudhon, with whom he often had
arguments which lasted through the night.^ But no exchange of
Views could bring these two men together, and when the personal
acquaintance in Paris ceased the gulf widened) Thus when the '
" Philosophic de la Misfere " was about to appear Proudhon wrote to
Marx, " J'attends votre ferule critique," and it was not long before he
had it. Marx in 1847 answered Proudhon's " Philosophy of Misery"
With his scathing " Misery of Philosophy," and this, as he writes, " put
an end to our friendship for ever," at which no one who reads the
critique will wonder.
More important in its influence upon the future work of Marx was
the friendship which he contracted in Paris with Friedrich Engels.
This veteran Communist records that when he came to converse with
Marx, he found a man who in all theoretical questions shared his own
views. The two formed an intellectual partnership on the spot, and
from 1844 until the death of Marx in 1883, they were always found
harnessed together in the work of Communistic agitation, furnishing
an example of personal attachment rarely observed in politics or
literature. It was not long before Marx made himself as obnoxious to
the French Government as he had been to the Prussian, and in 1845
M. Guizot gave him notice to quit. He went next to Brussels, where
Engels joined him, and the two formed there a German Working
Men's Association, having as an effective organ the Deutsche
but his heterodox views on the subject of the immortality of the soul were an obstacle to his
progress and he withdrew from the teacher's chair. Feuerbach wrote many philosophical
works and took great interest in social politics. He died September 13th,' 1873. Karl
Grun has written a biography of the philosopher and a critigus of his system.
1 Moses Hess was born January 21st, 1812, at BonUj the son of a well-tO'do Jewish trades-
man. He was a prolific writer on Socialism and Communism, and he proved the strength of
his revolutionary principles by taking an active part in the South German rising of 1849,
being sentenced in contumaciam to death for complicity in the afifair. Leaving Germany he
spent the rest of his life in Switzerland and France. He died April 6th, 1875.
2 " During long debates, often lasting through the night, 1 infected him, to his hurt, with
Hegelianism, which, owing to his imperfect knowledge of German, he could not study
properly. What I began Herr Karl Grfln continued after my expulsion from Paris, and he
as professor of German philosophy had the advantage of me that he knew nothing about it
liimself." — See appendix to " Das Elend der PhUosophie," edition 188B.
94 German Socialism.
Briisseler Zeitung. Their activity attracted the favourable notice of a
German Communist League located in Paris, which, desirous of se-
curing such powerful allies, sent delegates in 1847 to Marx in Brussels,
and to Engels in Paris, asking them to enter the organisation, and pro-
mising that a congress should shortly be convened in London, when
they would be able to make their views known. The invitation was
accepted, and the congress was held in the summer of 1847. As a re-
sult of this congress, and of another held at the end of the year, the
new and startUng theories of Marx were generally accepted, and he
was asked to undertake with Engels the drawing up of a Communist
Manifesto, which appeared early in the following year. The motto of
the old League, now changed to the League of Communists, had been
" All men are brothers," but a new watchword was taken, " Proletariat
of all countries, unite," a watchword which was not only effective as such,
but served to proclaim the international character of the organisation
and its mission. In his introduction to a German edition of the
Manifesto published shortly after the death of Marx, Engels says
generously that the fundamental idea running through the work is
"solely and exclusively" that of his friend. The Manifesto was
printed in various languages, but it was long before it attained the
unique fame of being the creed of modem Communists, The re-
putations of both Marx and Engels were, however, greatly increased
by the masterly composition.
While Marx was, in 1848, engaged upon a work on labour, the
February Revolution broke out, and its effects were felt far and wide.
In Brussels the authorities feared disturbance, and doubting the de-
sirabiUty of the presence of Marx in the city, they had him arrested on
March 3rd, and compelled him on the following day to change Belgian
for French soil. Marx was not at all unwilling, and he proceeded
direct to Paris, where he found himself surrounded by a host of former
associates. A manifesto was at once drawn up for circulation in Ger-
many, in which seventeen demands were advanced by the Communist
party. These demands comprised the proclamation of a Republic ;
payment of members of Parliament, so that working-men might be
eligible for election; the conversion of "princely and other feudal
estates," with mines, &c., into State property ; the appropriation of
all means of transport, as railways, canals, steamships, roads, and
posts, by the State ; the restriction of the law of succession j the intro.
Karl Marx and Surplus Value. 95
duction of heavy progressive taxes and the abolition of excise duties ;
the establishment of national workshops ; State guarantee to all work-
people of an existence and provision for the incapable ; and universal
and firee education. Of the six names which appeared below this
manifesto that of Marx was the first. Shortly afterwards Marx re-
turned to Germany, and along with Engels, Wolff,^ and Freiligrath ^
founded the Neue Rheinische Zeitung at Cologne, the first number ap-
pearing on June ist, 1848, under his own editorship. Once more he
was able to employ the poignant weapons of censure and condemnation
against a Government whose constitution not less than whose acts he
was unable to tolerate. The new Cologne journal quickly took the
lead of the Opposition Press, and it was only by the exercise of re-
markable skill that Marx escaped the fate which had befallen him
five years before. Then came the unconstitutional acts of November,
which led the Neue Rheinische Zeitung to urge the people to forcible
resistance against the Executive. For his part in the publication of
such advice, Marx had twice to appear at the Cologne Assizes, but he
was each time acquitted. The defence which he made on February
9th, 1849, is a masterpiece of trenchant legal argument. It was not
long before the objectionable Rhenish print was got rid of on another
pretext. In May, 1849, there were risings in Dresden and the Rhine
Province, and Marx was not slow to give them his editorial benedic-
tion. This led to the curtailment of his career as a German journalist.
The newspaper was suppressed, and the last number appeared, printed
in red ink, on June 19th. Freiligrath contributed a " Farewell " poem,
which breathed defiance from first line to last. The journal is made
to promise a speedy resurrection when the forces of revolution have
done their work : —
** Farewell, but not for ever farewell,
Thou cannot kill the spirit, my brother ;
In thunder I'll rise on the field where I fell,
More boldly to fight out another."
Marx was expelled from Prussia. He first went to Paris, but he
was soon refused residence there, and he turned his face towards
1 Wilhelm Wolff, born at Tamau, June Bist, 1809, died at Manchester, an exile. May 9th,
1864. He was a great friend of Karl Marx, who dedicated to him the first volume of " Das
Kapital" as to a ** daring, faithful, and noble champion oix^att proUtariat"
2 Ferdinand Freiligrath, a popular lyrical poet, originally a tradesman. He was bom
June 17th, 1810, at Detmold, and owing to political reasons left Germany in the fifties, an(J
r^id«d m»ny years in England, pied March »8th, 1876, at C?K»mt,
96 German Socialism.
England, where he had travelled for six weeks with Engels in 184$,
From this time Marx lived continuously in London — making exception
of the casual visits paid to Germany and other countries for the pur-
pose of agitation — and here there gathered round him in time quite a
colony of ardent Communists, many of them gifted men, and nearly
all fellow-outlaws, who received inspiration from him, and were always
content to follow his skilful leadership. He found London an excep-
tionally favourable place for the further study of political economy, for
not only was the British Museum at hand with its vast literary stores,
but his entire surroundings were such as enabled him to examine
more closely than was possible elsewhere the economic doctrines and
institutions which he regarded it as his life's task to combat, and if
possible to subvert. He resolved to begin his work again from the very
commencement, and the resolution was never regretted. Still, his
studies were for a long time broken, for it was necessary to earn a
livelihood while pursuing them, and the duties of correspondent to the
New York Tribune, which Marx fulfilled for eight years, consumed a
large part of his time. During this period, however, his economic
views were ripening, and we see the first fructification in the " Critique
of Political Economy,"^ which bears the date January, 1859, a work
containing the principles which were afterwards to 'be developed in
"Capital." While carrying on his studies, and preparing to write
books, Marx did not neglect his duty to the Communist League. In
1853, however, a split occurred in the camp, and after that decay set in
and the League quietly disappeared from the scene. Marx came again
prominently to the front in 1863 and 1864, when new endeavours were
made to unite the working classes of various countries in a common
movement, an object which he had for years had at heart. The result of
the renewed agitation of the question was the formation, on May 28th,
1864, of the International Working Men's Association, whose history
we shall need to follow more closely afterwards. Three years later
Marx published the first volume of his great economic work,
" Capital."^ Upon this work, with whose theories we shall presently
have to deal, rests the reputation of Marx as a political economist,
and however its teaching may be viewed, no one^ will venture to dispute
1 "Zur Krltikderpolitischen 6konomie ** (Berlin, 1859).
2 " Das Kapital : Kritik der politischen flkonomie," Hamburg, 1867, (vol ii., 1885). An
English translation, edited by Friedrich Engels, is published by Swan Sonnenschein & Co ,
and is already (1888) in a <;econd edition.
3 With the exception of Eugeu Diihring, in whose " Krjtische Geschlghte der National-
Karl Marx and Surplus Value. 97
the masterly ingenuity, the rare acumen, the close argumentation, and,
let it be added, the incisive polemic which are displayed in its pages.
How far, however, Marx can claim absolute originality is a
question which is still warmly debated in Germany. In writing
"Capital," Marx took England for the illustration of his theories,
because in England the capitalist mode of production has attained its.
greatest growth, and because exile from Germany led him to make
this country a special study. At the same time, he warns his
countrymen against imagining that the condition of the industrial and
agricultural classes is better with them than with us. The very
reverse is, he says, the fact, and the only reason of its not being
known is that the truth is suppressed or not sought.'- He allows
England to be the only European country where a peaceful social re-
volution is possible. A word here as to a claim made on behalf of
" Capital." Engels says in the preface to the third edition of the first
volume that the work is often called on the Continent the " Bible of
the working class." But if so it is a bible with which the working
class can have little personal acquaintance. It is singular that
although Marx prided himself on having written in a simple style,
Skonomie and des Socialismns" (and edition, Berlin, 1875) Marx is spoken of as "a disciple
of Moses, Ricardo, and Hegel," who lias had " a bastard and half-education." This is a
sample of Diihring's utterances : "Affectation of superiority and dialectic mysticism will
invite no one who possesses even a modicum of sound judgment to pay attention to the deform!-.
ties of thought and style, the undignified mode of expression, and the vanity, dressed up in
English measure, weight, and money, and thus in the narrower sense of the word Anglicised
[which distinguish "Capital"]. With the extinction of the last remnant of dialectic folly
this means of dupery will, even in its special radical applications, lose its delusive influence,
and no one will any longer believe that he need put himself to trouble in order to reach deep
wisdom when the pure kernel of the tangled business bears at best the aspect of ordinary
theories, if not mere platitudes " (p. 497). This characteristic outburst, however, can only be
appreciated properly in the original.
1 It is impossible to resist the temptation to reproduce a passage from a small work by
Julius Frbbel (Leipzig, 1871), entitled " Die Irrthiimer des Sozialismus." " When one knows
the extremes of misery in which a large part of the factory operatives and rural labourers of
England live — a misery of which our poorest class has happily hardly a conception — it is
only too intelligible that the consolation that the world is slowly improving should be of no
value for these unfortunates, who have only the choice between resignation and the expecta-
tion of early deliverance " (p. 39). Unfortunately, it is the helpless classes which suffer from
the existence of this wretched " God, 1 thank Thee that I am not as other men are " spirit.
The same author writes : " Socialism did not originate in Germany, nor is Germany to any
special degree threatened by its errors and extravagances," To-day there are g qillion
Socialists in Germany— that is all.
C
98 Gii'Man Socidtisftt.
"Capital" is in reality foil of as cumbfous language and tHougfit as a
follower of Hegel could well choose. Even allfarwfing for the necessi-
ties of a novel task— that of formulating theories requiring hew ex-
pressions — Maix will never be pardorled for the offence of coining
many words which sin as mach against philology as good taste.
Engels once had to revise one of his o\*'n lectures, diropping words Of
foreign origin, so that it might sferve for popular agitation ; how, then,
comes he to suppose that the severely scientific "Capital" csin be-
come the " Bible of the working class ? " A few sentences will
chronicle the later work of the founder of the International. This
organisation claimed to the last his undivided sympathies, and he
placed it eventually in a position of such importance that it becanie a
source of terror to most of the Governments of Eiirope, which vainly
strove to dethrone it from its siiprfemdqy amongst the working classes.
The great intellectual power, the tenacity and fixedness of purpose,
the overpowering will, and above all the vehtoent hatred of monarchs
and monarchies, capitalists and capitalism, which aided Marx in the
prosecution of his ambitious aims, did not fail, and could not have
failed, to give him pre-eininehce amongst the friends of social and
political revolution. So great became this pre-eminence that the name
of the stern cynic at last grew to be a rallying cry, and his real fame
was increased by fabulous attributes of influence and powfer. The
second volume of "Capital" was published in 1885, with a long pre-
face in which Engels endeavours to free the author's literary reputa-
tion from the aspersions cast upioh it by Rodbertus and his friends;
The only other important work which remains to be mentioned is
"Der i8te Brumaire,"^ which was directed against Napoleon III.
Marx died in London on March 14th, 1883. It is a fact worthy of
notice that two of his daughters married French Socialists — one of
whom has translated " Capital " into his native language — and another
daughter became the wife of an English Socialist.
The monument by which the memory of Marx will be perpetuated is
his grr'eat work " Capital." The problem he considers is that of value,
and the discussion of this problem leads him to develop a new social
and economic system. The first of the two bulky volumes deals with
the production of capital and the second with its circulation. It is
1 On the i8th of Brumaire (November gth^' ^799) Bonaparte depose4 the Pirectory, an ^
fgllowed b^ his ^lectfon ^ Cqosi^t
Karl Marx and Surplus Value. 99
with the first that we shall chiefly have to do, the edition used being
the third German edition of the year 1883. Distinguishing between
value in use and exchange, Marx says that while the use-value of a
commodity is determined by its utility — ^which quality is independent
of the labour expended in imparting the utility — ^the value in exchange
is the value as measured by other commodities. Apart from their use-
value, commodities possess only one property in common, and it is
that they are the products of labour. But when the use-value of
labour is abstracted the material elements and forms that make the
product a use-value are also abstracted, and there is nothing left but
labour in the abstract or labour-power, a "social substance" as a
crystal of which it is a value. Thus thfe only reason that causes a use-
value or commodity to have value is that human labour in the abstract
has been embodied or materialised in it.^ Consequently, the only
measure for the magnitude of the value is the amount of the value-
creating substance, viz., labour, which has been expended Upon it. As,
however, the laboiir which forms the substance of value is "homo-
geneous human labour, the expenditure of the same human labour-
power," this labour-time is the " socially necessary " quantity required
to the production of a commodity. Marx defines " socially necessary''
labour-time to be the time requisite to the production of a use-value
under existing normal conditions of production, and with the average
degree of skill and intensity of labour. Thus when power-looms began
to compete with hand-looms, the " socially necessary " amount oi
labour needed to the weaving of yam fell by one half, and as a con-
sequence the value of the hand-weaver's labour was depreciated to the
same extent. From what has been said it follows that commodities
which embody equal amounts of normal labour possess equal value
"As values in exchange, all commodities are only definite masses ,
of congealed labour-time." ^ If there were no variation in the time
required to the production of a commodity, the value of the same
would not change, but the time varies with every variation in the pro-
ductivity of labour. The value increases with the quantity of labour
employed and decreases with the increase in productivity. In the use-
value of a commodity there is contained a certain amount of useful
labour, and if the useful character of the labour is left out of sights
there remains only the fact of an expenditure of human labour-power,
X " Capital," vol. j.i p. J. ^"Z\a Kritik," p. 6.
100 German Socialism.
Thus tailoring and weaving, though producing such different results,
are merely two modes of expending this human labour-power. Even
skilled labour and simple or unskilled labour are the same in character ;
the former is only the latter multiplied, so that a small quantity of
skilled is equal to a large quantity of unskilled labour. It is the fact
that human labour is a common substance in all commodities which
makes commodities commensurable. A bed and a house represent
something which, when existing in proper proportions, may bring both
into equality as to value, this something being labour. But though
labour-power in an active state, in other words labour, is a creator of
value, it is not itself value : it only becomes value when embodied in
an object. Marx thus objects to the expression value of labour.
Labour cannot be said to have value because it is itself the measure
of value. " What," he asks, " is the value of a commodity ? The
objective form of the social labour expended in its production. And
how do we measure the magnitude of its value ? By the quantity of
labour contained in it. How, for instance, would the value of a work
day of twelve hours be determined ? By the twelve working hours
contained in a work-day of twelve hours, which is absurd tautology." '^
Marx shows that labour, like other commodities, has the two-fold
character that it possesses both value in use and value in exchange,
andthis brings him to the consideration of capital and its origin. The
gist of his theory is that the capitalist buys not labour, but labour-
power, which exists in the personality of the labourer, but is as different
from its functions as a machine from its work. The starting-point of
capital is the circulation of commodities. A capitaUst with ;£ioo pur-
chases, let us suppose, 2000 lb. of cotton with his money. He does
not do this, however, in order that he may sell the cotton again and
merely receive back his ;£ioo. If he only wished to receive back his
original capital, the transactions of purchase and sale would have no
meaning and serve no purpose. As a matter of fact, he receives for
the cotton purchased for ;£ioo the sum of ^lio. Here there is an
increment of ^10, an excess over the original value of the cotton, and
thus the original capital of the money-owner, and this increment Mane
calls surplus-value {Mehrwerth). The original value is not only pre-
served, but is increased by the addition of a surplus-value, and this
movement converts it into capital. It is the prospect of gaining this
I " Capital," vol. i., p. 94$.
Kart Marx and Surplus Vattie. loi
surplus-value which causes the capitahst to circulate his capital. He
does not seek merely the possession of commodities or use-values ;
he only acquires these in order to dispose of them at a gain, and thus
his aim is the ceaseless one of profit-making. " Considered abstractly,
or independently of circumstances which do not proceed from the
inherent laws of the simple circulation of commodities, the act of ex-
change is, apart from the substitution of one use-value by another,
merely a metamorphosis, a change of form in the commodities. The
same value — that is, the same quantity of incorporated social labour; —
remains in the hand of each owner of the commodity ; first in the form
of his commodity, then in the form of money which it has assumed,
and finally of the comniodity to which the money is again changed.
This change of form does not imply a change in the magnitude of the
value. But the change which the value of the commodity itself un-
dergoes in this process is confined to a change of its money-form. This
form exists first as the price of the commodity offered for sale, then as
a sum of money — expressed, however, in the price already — and finally
as the price of an equivalent commodity. This change of form per se
as little implies a change in the magnitude of the value as does the
exchange of a five-pound note for sovereigns, half-sovereigns, and
shillings. Thus, so far as the circulation of the commodity only
implies a change in the form of its value, it implies, when the pheno-
menon takes place in a pure form, the exchange of equivalents." ^ If
commodities, or commodities and money, of equal exchange-value —
that is, equivalents — are exchanged, no one derives more value from
circulation than he puts into circulation, and there is no formation of
surplus-value. In reality, however, this is not the process that takes
place. Let the value of a certain commodity be expressed by loo; the
owner sells it, however, at i lo, so that the price is nominally increased
10 per cent., and this surplus-value he appropriates. Now, however,
he becomes buyer in turn, and the seller with whom he deals disposes
of his own commodity in the same way, at a premium of lo per cent.
So the man only gains a surplus-value in order to lose it again. All
owners of commodities, in fact, sell to one another lo per cent, too
dear, so that it is the same thing as if the commodities were sold at
their proper value. If, instead of the price being lo per cent, too
high, the reverse process took place, the result would still be the same,
1 " Capital," vol. i., p. 133.
102 German Socialism.
for the seller, while losing in one way, would gain in another. " The
formation of surplus-value, and therefore the conversion of money into
capital, can thus be explained neither by the assumption that the
• sellers dispose of their commodities above their value nor that the
buyers purchase them below their value." Whether equivalents or
non-equivalents are exchanged, no surplus-value is created. The
circulation or exchange of commodities does not create value. Con-
sequently, in the formation of capital something must take place which
is not visible in circulation. But, asks Marx, is it possible for surplus-
value to originate elsewhere than in circulation, which is the sum of
all the reciprocal relationships of the owners of commodities, for
" apart from it the owner of commodities has only relationship to his
own commodities ? " He answers that the owner of commodities can
by his labour form value, but not self-increasing value. He can in-
crease the value of a commodity by, adding new labour-value to the
(yalue, existing — as by the conveision of a piece of leather into shoes—
but no surplus-value arises here : the original value of the leather is
the same, only a new value has been combined with it. " It is im-
possible for the producer of commodities to create value, and thus
convert money or commodities into capital, beyond the sphere of circu-
lation and without coming into contact with other owners of com-
modities. In other words, capital cannot originate in circulation, and
similarly it cannot originate without circulation. It must at the same
time have its origin in and not in circulation. . . . The change in
the value of money which is to be converted into capital cannot take
place in this money itself, since as a means of purchase and payment
it only realises the price of the commodity which it buys or pays for,
while, preserving its own form, it becomes the petrifaction of un-
changing value. Nor can the change originate in the second act of
circulation, the resale of the commodity, since this act merely changes
the commodity from the natural form back into that of money. The
change must therefore take place in the commodity which is bought
in the first act (the conversion of money into commodities), but not in
its value, since equivalents are exchanged and the commodity is paid
for at its proper value. The change can only spring froni its use-value
as such — that is, from its consumption. In order to be able tQ derive
value from the consumption of a commodity, the capitalist must be
fortvmate enough to find within the sphere of circulation— in the
I^art Mar^ an4 ^t(rflus , Value. 1 03
market — a commgdity whose uservalue ppssesses the peculjaf qUt^Jity
th^t it is the source of value, yrjipse g-pfual consumption is itself aij
embodiinent pf labour, and therefore a creation of value." ^ And this
commodity is in reality found in the labour-faculty pr labour-power.
" By labour-power or labour-facuhy," says Marx, " we understand the
sum of the physical and mental capacities which exist in the living
personality of a man, and which he sets in motion as often as he pro-
duces a use-value of any kind." This commodity must, however,
fulfil two indispensable conditions : firstj it must be at the free disposal
of the possessor, and secondly, the labourer must be compelled to sell
this labour-power instead pf commodities in which it is incorporated.
As the labourer lacks the material in which to embody his labour-
power, he is obliged to dispose of the power itself Like all
commodities, this labour-power possesses a value, but how is this
value determiried ? " The value of labour-power, like that of every
other commodity, is determined by the labour-time requisite to the
production, and thus the reproduction of this specific articlp. So far as
it possesses value, labour-power itself represents only a certain
quantity pf social normal-labour incorporated in it. Labour-ppwer
exists only as a faculty of the living individual, and its prp(iuction
presupposes his existence. Given the ejfistence of tlie individual, the
production of labour-power coi^sists in his own reproduction or
maintenance. The individual requires for his maintenance a certain
quantity of means of subsistence. Thus the lg.bour-time necessary to
the production of labour-ppwer resolves itself into the labour-time
requisite to the production of these means of subsistence ; or, the value
pf the labour-power is the value of the means pf subsistence necessary
to the maintenance of its possessor." In the determination of the
value of labpur-ppwer, however, the various historical and social facts
which determine the standard of life must be taken into considera-
tion. As, too, labour-power needs to be constantly renewed, owing to
the mortality qf the owner, provision has to be made for the production
of fresh stipplips, in the bringing up of the labourers' families, If,
now, the mass pf the cpinmodities daily nepessary to the production of
a certain amount of labour-power be represented by six hoprs, or half-
a-day of spcial labour, all the labour due beyond si? hours ig in esfcess
of the cost of produGticn. If the social labour of these six hours be
1 " Capital," »ol. i., pp. 142, 143, i44-
104 German Socialism.
represented by three shillings, this sum corresponds to the value of the
labour-power of one day. " The minimum limit of the value of labour-
power is formed by the value of the mass of commodities without the
daily provision of which the labourer cannot renew his vital functions ;
therefore, by the value of the physically indispensable means of
subsistence. Tf the price of labour-power falls to this minimum, it falls
below its value, since it can only be maintained and developed in an
inefficient state. But the value of every commodity is determined by
the, labour-time necessary to supply it in normal quahty."^ The
capitalist having purchased labour-power, he buys at the full price all
the material necessary to its use or consumption, and in the process
of consumption there are at once produced commodities and surplus-
value. The consumption of labour-power, like that of all commodities,
is completed outside the market or sphere of circulation. It is only
when we enter the sphere of production that we fully learn how capital
produces and is produced : in other words, learn the secret of " plus-
making " {flAMiimu^re.^.^ The use of labour-power is labour itself,
and the buyer of this labour-power consumes it by making the seller
work, the seller now becoming actually what he was formerly
potentially, active labour-power : in a word a lahower. This labour-
process, says Marx, exhibits the 'two peculiar phenomena that the
labour is done under the control of the capitalist, and that the product
of the labour belongs to him instead of its producer. As the capitalist
has bought the day's labour, he can make what use of it he likes, just
as he can employ as he wishes the day's labour of a hired horse. The
product is a value in use — ^yam, for instance, or boots — ^but the
capitalist seeks to produce a use-value which is also an exchange-
value or commodity, an article that he can sell, and more than that, an
article by the sale of which he can obtain something more than the
original cost, in fact, a surplus-value.
Let us follow the process of labour, supposing that the labour-power
is used in the conversion of cotton into yarn. The raw material-^
suppose in this case lo Ib.^costs the capitalist ten shillings, and the
wear and tear of the spindle and all instruments of labour employed
1 Ihidf p. 150.
2 For the consideration of surplus-value, see especially " Capital," vol. i., 2nd section,
" Die Verwandlung von Geld in Kapital ;" 3rd section, " Die Production des absoluten
Mehrwerths ;" 4tli section, " Die Production des relativen Mehrwerths;" and sth section, " Die
Production des absoluten und relativen Mehrwerths," pp. 120 — 546.
Karl Marx and Surplus Value. tb5
may be placed at two shillings more. If a quantity of gold represent-
ing twelve shillings be the product of twenty-four working-hours or
two working-days, it follows that the yam already embodies two work-
ing-days. The question next arises, what value does the labour of the
spinner give to the spun cotton? The addition of the value of the
wear and tear of instruments has made the original ten shillings into
twelve. Now we must find how the value of the cotton and spindle
(or rather the use of the spindle) is increased when the labour is added.'
Let it be supposed that if lb. of cotton can be spun into i§ lb. of yam
in one hour, then lo lb. of yarn will reipresent six hours of labour. If
we assume the value of a day's labour-power to be three shillings,
and this sum to embody six hours of social labour, it follows that the
six hours consumed by the process of spinning give to the cotton an
additional value of three shillings. The value of the yarn is therefore
represented by the two-and-a-half days' labour it embodies : two days
for the cotton and the use of the spindle = twelve shillings ; and half-a-
day for the spinning = three shillings ; together fifteen shillings. But
this is just the amount advanced by the money-owner, there is no
surplus-value, and consequently the money has not been converted
into capital. This does not satisfy the capitalist, who has made
nothing by the labour-process. He gave his labourer a value of three
shillings, and the labourer has returned him the same value. Soon,
however, the capitalist recollects that the reason why he has paid this
sum — which embodies half-a-day's labour — is that the production of
the means of subsistence required daily by the labourer cost half-a-
day's labour, and he reasons : " If half-a-day's labour be necessary in
order to maintain the labourer twenty-four hours, there is nothing to
prevent him from working a whole day." The capitalist sees that the
labour-power which he has purchased may be made not only a source
of value, but of more value than it possesses itself. Instead, therefore,
of spinning only lo lb. of cotton in the day, the labourer works double
the time and spins 20 lb. Now the value of the yarn spun in a day is
equal to five days or thirty shillings.
20 lb. of cotton and wear of spindle. =4 days=24 shill.
Weaving = 1 day=6 shill.
But the commodities which make up this value only cost the
capitalist twenty-seven shillings, for the second half-day's labour (three
Iq6 Qerman Socialism.
shillings) cost nothing. Now, a surplus-value has been created, and
money has been converted into capital. And yet, while the capitalist
has secured a surplus-value, he has done it without violating the laws
of exchange. Equivalents have been exchanged. The capitalist buys
cotton, spindle, and labour at their proper value, and, like any other
buyer of commodities, he consumes their use-value ; yet, selling the com-
modities which are the result of the consumption of labour-power, he
withdraws from circulation more than he put into it. This conversion
of money into capital takes place both in and out of the sphere of cir-
culation — in, because it is dependent on the purchase of labour-power
in the market, and out because circulation only leads to the formation
of surplus-value, which act in reality falls to the sphere of production.
The creation of surplus-value is merely a continuation of the produc-
tion of value, for sjirplus-value would not exist if the process of value-
formation were to stop at the point where the labour-power yields its
exact equivalent : all the value beyond that is Mehrwerth. In this pro-
cess of production, however, it is necessary to assume average or
normal labour — in which must be understood both exertion and skill—
and also normal social conditions and technical circumstances.
Marx divides capital into constant and variable capital. Constant
capital is that part of capital which takes the form of means of pro-
duction, as raw material, auxiliary materials, and instruments of
labour, and the value of which does not change during the process of
production. Variable capital, on the other hand, is that part of capital
which takes the form of labour-power, and this changes its value dur-
ing production, for it reproduces a surplus-value beyond its own value.
Still, the constituent parts of constant capital may vary in value.
Cptton may sell at one price to-day and at twice the amount to-
morrow ; improved machinery may greatly depreciate the value of
old machinery ; but these changes of value do not spring from the
process of production, and do not affect the surplus-value added to a
raw product by the act of labour. Dealing with the exploitation of
the purchased labour-power, Marx divides labour into necessary and
surplus labour. Necessary labour is that which is requisite to the
production of the means of subsistence upon which the labourer's ex-
istence depends, and the time it occupies he calls necessary labour-
time {fiothwendige Anbeitszfit). Surplus labpjir is that which the
labourer performs for the capitalist after he has produced the neces*
Karl Mafjf and Surplus Value. 107
saries for his own existence, and the time thus employed is surplus
labour-time (Surfilttsarbeitszeit). If the value of the labourer's d^ily
necessaries represent six hours' labour, this period constitutes the
necessary labour-time, and all beyond it is occupied in creating for the
capitalist a surplus-value. " Since the value of the variable capital is
equal to the value of the labour-power it purchases, since the value of
this labour-power determines the necessary part of the working-day,
while the surplus-value is determined by the superfluous part of the
working-day, it follows that the surplus-value bears the same ratio to
the variable capital as the surplus to the necessary labour, or the rate
of surplus- value •|^=£|^^^^^ Both ratios express the same rela-
tionship though in different forms, in one case in the form of incorpo-
rated labour, and in the other case of fluent labour. The rate of
surplus-value is therefore the exact expression of the degree of ex-
ploitation of labour-power by capital or of the labourer by the
capitalist."'- Thus if the money advanced by a capitalist be ^500,
made up of £410 constant capital, (raw material and instruments of
labour), and fyo variable capital, (labour-power), and the surplus-
value be ;£9o, the exploitation of the labourer by the capitalist is 100
per cent., though according to the usual rate of calculation — in which
surplus- value is confounded with rate of profit — it would only be 18
per cent. It is not in fact, \ - ^, or -ji = jxo+Voy but-" = U- Marx
calculates the rate of surplus-value as follows : " We take the entire
value of the product (here ;£S9o) and equate the constant capital
(;£4'o) which merely reappears in it at o. The value remaining over
{£i&o) is the only value-product really created in the process of pro-
ducing the commodity. Given the surplus-value (;£go) we deduct it
from this value in order to find the variable capital {£go). Conversely
when the latter is given and we seek the surplus-value. If both are
given the concluding operation has only to be performed — to calculate
the ratio of the surplus-value to the variable capital, | *
It may be well to illustrate the foregoing principles by an instance
which Marx gives and which has the merit of being based on actual
data. A spinning mill, with 10,000 spindles, spins yam at the rate of
I lb. per spindle weekly. The waste is 6 per cent., so that the wepkly
consumption of cotton in the production of 10,000 lb. of yarn is 10,600
i /iiV;, pp. 199, ,200. ^ Ibid, ff. xo, xoi.
}o§ German ^odali.
lb. (of which 600 lb. go to waste). This cotton costs 7|d. per lb., so
that the value of the raw material is, roughly, ;£342- The cost of the
spindles and all' necessary machinery amounts to £\ per spindle, or
£\o,ixx> altogether, and the depreciation is 10 per cent, equal to ;£iooo
yearly, or roughly, £,7.0 weekly. Rent amounts to £6 per week, coal to
£1^ los., gas to £\, and oil, &c., to £^ los. So far constant capital.
Wages cost £1^ a week, the variable capital, and finally the yam is
sold at I2jd. per lb. The result of this employment of capital will
best be seen by a table :
10,600 lb. of cotton at 7|d. (including: 600 lb. as
waste at 6 per cent.) - - - ;£342 o
10,000 spindles, with roving ma-
chinery and steam engine - ;£io,ooo o o
Wear at 10 per cent - - i,ooo o o
Or weekly (roughly) - - 20 o o
Rent of building at ^£300 a year - - 600
Coal consumed - - - - - 4100
Gas „ - - - - - 100
Oil. &c „ - - - - - 4 10 o
Making the constant capital £378 o o
Wages (= labour-power or variable capital) - 52 o o
;£43o o o
10,000 lb. of yam sold at 12 Jd. - - - 510 o o
Giving a surplus-value of - ;£8o o o
To find now the rate of surplus-value, we must, following the rule
given, deduct from the value of the entire product, £^io, the sum of
the constant capital ;£378, as it takes no part in the formation of value.
There remains ;£i32, made up of variable capital £52 + surplus-value
£io. Thus the rate of surplus- value is ff = I53ii per cent. With a
working-day of ten hours the result is found to be 3fJ hours of neces-
sary and 6^ hours of surplus-labour. In other words, after the la-
bourer has returned to the capitalist in sfj hours of labour the value of
the means of subsistence (wages) for which his labour-power has been
bought, he is compelled to work 6^ hours, or nearly twice as long, for
the purpose of creating for the capitalist a surplus-value which is not
paid for. The creation of this surplus-value is the end of capitalist
production.
Karl Marx and Surplus Value. 1 09
In an extended examination of the subject, Marx defends the normal
workday. The capitalist buys the workman's labour-power for the cost
of its production and reproduction, and if a labourer's daily subsistence
can only be produced in six hours, he must work so long before the value
he has received from the capitalist is returned. It is evident that
when the necessary labour has been performed, the labourer will
naturally seek to work as little, in addition, as possible. There is a
clash of interests. The capitalist has bought the whole day's labour,
and while he desires to make the most he can of the labour-power of a
day, the labourer demands that his power shall not be prematurely
exhausted by over-exertion. It is purely a question of money. Let
the active life of a labourer be, with normal exertion, thirty years,
then the value of a day's labour is jjjl-gi, or ^/logso of the entire vabo.
But if the labour-power is exhausted in ten years, the capitalist is only
paying daily ■^/logso instead of ^/seeo of the total value, that is a third,
and the labourer is robbed of the remaining two-thirds.^ The la-
bourer, therefore, demands that a normal workday shall be fixed, and
hence arises a struggle between the capitalist and labouring classes.
But even if a normal (maximum) workday be fixed it is still possible
for the capitalist to secure surplus-value. Suppose the normal day be
ten hours long, and of these ten hours eight are needed to the produc-
tion of the labourer's means of subsistence, in other words, are hours
of necessary labour, while the remaining two are hours of surplus
labour, the capitalist may increase the surplus labour at the expense of
the necessary labour by reducing the price of the labour-power or the
wages, and thus the proper reproduction of this power will be
crippled. The more the necessary labour-time can be curtailed, the
better for the capitalist's surplus labour-time and surplus-value. The in-
vention of machinery has enabled the capitaUst to appropriate more of the
workman's labour, and to increase the surplus-value. As muscular
power became less necessary, the labour of women and children was
sought, and thus the workman's entire family passed into the service
of the capitalist. Thus the man's labour-power was depreciated,
and though the labour of the whole family cost the capitalist more
than that of the man formerly did, the increase in the surplus-value
1 On this subject a very ingenious little work lias been published by Dr. Engel, " Der
Preis der Arbeit," (Berlin, iS66, one of the " Sammlung gemeinverstandlicher wissenschaft-
licher Vortrage.")
no German Socialism.
more than counterbalanced. Machinery has also led to a revolution
in the relationships between labourer and capitalist. It will be re-
membered that the basis of the exchange of commodities which took
place between the two was personal freedom as independent owners of
commodities, — ^the one of money and means of production and the other
of labour-power. But now capital buys the labour-power of children.
" The labourer sold formerly his own labour-power, which was at his
disposition as a nominally free agent. Now he sells his wife and child.
He becomes a slave-dealer." The result of this capitalistic exploitation
of the labour of women and children is physical and moral deterioration
as well as social degradation. " Capital," says Marx, "is dead labour,
which, vampire-like, becomes animate only by sucking living labour,
and the more labour it sucks the more it lives."^ It is no concern of
capital that its excessive exploitation of labour-power prematurely ex-
hausts the vital energies of the labourer. The capitalist seeks profit, and
it is to his interest to make the purchased labour-power as remunerative
as possible, let the labourer suffer as he may. Aprls nous le diluge.
From their very nature wages imply the performance by the labourer
of labour which is not paid for. Wages are, in fact, a part of the
labourer's own product, for though the capitalist pays him money,
this money is merely the transmuted produce of labour. The labour
of last week or last half-year pays for the labour of this week or the
coming half-year. The money paid may be regarded as labour-orders
on a part of the product produced by the labourer, but appropriated
by the capitalist, and these orders the labourer returns to the capitalist
for a share in his own product. With the capitalistic system all
methods of increasing the productive power of labour are employed at
the expense of the individual labourer, for all the means used to
develop production are only expedients of the capitalist for the further
exploitation of the producer. The labourer is made a ijiere appendage
of the machine, he is subjected to a hateful despotism, he is perforce
a life-long toiler, and his wife and children, too, are thrown beneath
the Juggernaut of capital. But as all methods of producing surplus-
value are at the same time methods of accumulation, and as every
extension of accumulation becomes conversely a means of developing
those methods, it follows that the condition of the labourer grows
worse in the measure that capital accumulates, and that however high
» "Caj>Uia,"vol.i.,p. aid,
Karl Marx and Surplus Value, 1 1 1
or low his wages. The law, too, which keeps the relative over-
population or industrial reserve army proportionate to the extent and
energy of accumulation, bjnds the labourer fast beyond liberation to
capital. The accumulation of capital implies proportionate accumula-
tion of distress. At one pole there are wealth and luxury, at the other
there are want, the misery of toil, slavery, ignorance, brutalisation, and
moral degradation. The conclusion to which Marx comes, is that the
capitalist must be dispossessed, and the labourer be secured in the
ownership of his product. The genesis of capital means, so far as it is
not the immediate conversion of slaves and serfs into paid labourers,
the expropriation of the direct producers, in that private property based
on the producer's labour is abolished. Private property as opposed
to social and collective property only exists where the means of labour
and the external conditions of labour belong to private persons, but
private property differs according as these private persons are la-
bourers or non-labourers. Private property possessed by the labourer
in his means of production — whether it be as land or tools — is the
basis of the small industry. Naturally this mode of production neces-
sitates the splitting up of the land and all the various means of pro-
duction, and the consequence is that co-operation, the division of
labour within each process of production, the social adaptation and
application of the forces of nature, and the free development of social
productive power, are all impossible. Such a mode of production is
only compatible with an unprogressive state of society, and thus its
rejection is only a question of time. The individual and divided
means of production are concentrated and given a social character,
and the small properties of the many become the large properties of
the few. The bulk of the people must be dispossessed of the soil, of
the instruments of labour, and the means of subsistence before the
reign of capitalism can begin, and then capitalist private property
subsists on the exploitation of the labour of the wage-earning class,
labour which is nominally but not in reality free.^ As soon as this
transformation has sufficiently disintegrated society, and labourers have
been made the proletariat, — their conditions of labour having been
converted into capital, and the capitalist mode of production being
supreme — then, says Marx, the further conversion of the soil and
pther means of production into socially-exploited or common means
^ Ibid^ pages 7B8 et ieq.
112 German Socialism.
of production takes place ; in other words, private owners are further
expropriated :
" There is now to be expropriated, not the independently working
labourer, but the capitalist exploiting many labourers. This expro-
priation is effected by the working of the immanent laws of this very
capitalist production, by the centralisation of capital. One capitalist
ever kills many. Hand in hand with this centralisation, or the ex-
propriation of many capitalists by few, are developed the co-operative
form of the labour-process — and that on a constantly increasing
scale — the intelligent application of science to technical purposes, the
systematic exploitation of the soil, the transformation of the means of
labour into means of labour only usable in common, the economising
of all means of production by their use for production by combined,
social labour, the entwining of all nations in the net of the world-
market, and thus the international character of the capitalist regime.
With the steady decrease of the capital-magnates, who usiurp and
monopolise all the advantages of this process of transformation, the
mass of want, oppression, servitude, degradation, and spoliation
grows ; but the revolt of the labouring class — swelling ever in num-
bers, and disciplined, united and organised by the mechanism of the
capitalist process of production itself— spreads at the same time. The
capitalist monopoly becomes a fetter on the mode of production with
and under which it has originated. The centralisation of the means
of production and the socialisation of labour reach a point at which
they become no longer compatible with their capitalist integument,
and this is burst asunder. The last hour of capitalist private property
strikes. The expropriators are expropriated." ^
With Maix this change is a natural one, and is the certain result of
historical development. The capitalist mode of appropriation, which
proceeds from the capitaUst mode of production, and thus also capital-
ist private property are the first negation of individual private property
based on the owner's personal labour. "But capitalist production ,
brings about its own negation with the necessity of a natural law.
It is the negation of negation. This negation does not re-establish
private property, but individual property based on the acquisition of
the capitalist era, viz., co-operation and common possession of the
soil and of the means of production which originate in labour. The
I md, pp. 789, jga
Karl Marx and Surplus Value. 113
transfonnation of the scattered private property which is based on the
labour of the individuals into capitalist property is naturally a process
far more tedious, cruel, and difficult than the transformation of capital-
ist property, already based in reality on social production, into social
property. In the first case there is the expropriation of the mass of
the people by a few usurpers, but in the latter the expropriation of a
few usurpers by the mass of the people." ^
Thus Matx would not only make land, but all the mstruments of pro-
duction, collective and social property. He would go fiirther : he
would have all subjects of the State share equally in labour and the
produce of labour. His future State is, in fact, to be a Labour State,
in which labour will be compulsory on all who are capable, for unless
men work they will not be allowed to eat. In "Capital" we find him
developing the idea of uniting agfriculture with industry which is ad-
vanced in the Communist Manifesto written in 1847. He would have
great variety in the labour of the individual, so that he may be as
many-sided as possible.
Throughout all his long public life Marx did not cease to proclaim
the imperative necessity of coupling the political with the social
question. We find him saying at the close of "The Misery of
Philosophy " : — " It cannot be said that the social movement excludes
the political. There is no political movement that is not at the same
time social. Only by so ordering things that there shall be no classes
and no class distinctions will social evolutions cease to be political
revolutions. Until then, on the eve of every general reorganisation of
society the final word of social science will always run : ' Combat or
death, bloody war or nothing. There is the question inexorably put."'^
Yet with all his advocacy of the subversion of society, he professed
that the fall of the higher classes would not met n and should not en-
tail the rise of the lower classes in their place. A new society is to be
created in order that the oppressed may be emancipated, but this
emancipation does not imply that the domination of one class will be
followed by that of another. On the contrary, the condition of the
freedom of the labouring class is the abolition of all class distinctions,
1" Capital:" chapter xxiv., "Die sogenannte urspriiagliche AkkumuiatioD/' sect. 7
" Gesoliichtliche Tendenz der kapitalistischsn Akkum^lation," pp. 789—791.
CHAPTER V.
FERDINAND LASSALLE.
It is one of the commonest aphorisms that the age always produces
the men it requires. This is one of the many truths to which history,
with its eyolutions and revolutions, has given the character of irre-
fragability. In the development of society it is not the man that
makes the time, but the time that makes the man. The new era needs
help at its birth, and those who give the required assistance are
spoken of in later history as the inaugurators^ — it would be better, the
proclaimers and heralds — of fresh epochs. Such a man of the time
was Ferdinand Lassalle.'- Lassalle was bom at Breslau on April I ith,
1825, His parents were both of Jewish descent, and his father was a
well-to-do tradesman ; a man not, indeed, possessing unusual in-
tellectual gifts, but sagacious and upright. The family name was
Lassal, the form it still preserves, but, like Isaac Disraeli, Ferdinand
bore little love towards his race, and he took, the name of Lassalle
when quite young. This dislike of Jiwlaism was a trait in Lassalle's
character which became more prominent the older he grew, and we
find him exclaiming at one time, " There are two classes of men
especially which I cannot tolerate^ the literary men and the Jews, and
unfortunately I belong to both." It must not, however, be supposed
that this prejudice was carried into domestic relationships. No more
affectionate son ever lived than Ferdinand Lassalle, and though his
sphere of activity lay far away from the Silesian home, from which he
separated early in life, the ties that bound parents and child were
never weakened. Especially cordial was the relationship which
existed between Lassalle and his mother. The whole life of this
devoted woman seemed to be bound up in that of her son, whose
1 The best works dealing with Lassalle's life as a whole are " Ferdinand Lassalle, ein litera-
risches Characterbild," by the Dane Geoi:g Brandes (an excellent translation published in
Berlin, 1877) ; " Die deutsche Socialdemokratie ; ihre Geschichte und ihre Lehre," by Franz
Mehring (3rd edition, Bremen, 1879) : to which may be added an article by C. Plener in the
*'Allgemeine Deutsche Biographic" (vol. xvii., Leip7i.f^, 1883). His correspondence with
Kodbertus and Hans von Billow is also very important. Works relating to his agitatioo and
the closing period of his life wiU be mf ntipi)«d later,
Ferdinand Lassal/te- 115
ambition she encouraged and whose achievements she was never
weary of lauding.
Ferdinand, as a child, showed traces of the forwardness, the im-
perious bearing, and the luiconscious arrofjance which are often found
to characterise Hebrew descent, traits wliich in his later life were to
attain remarkable development. He seemed to have been bom to
rule, and long before ordinary youths dare trust as firm the ground
beneath their feet, he had passed, and that niiite naturally and un-
observed, beyond parental control and guida -e. He was a man in
intelligence and will when still a boy in years. It is related that when
he was fifteen or sixteen years old a perplexing difficulty arose in the
domestic circle, and the peace was abruptly disturbed. Ferdinand
assumed an uninvited dictatorship, stepped over the heads of father
and mother, and in a short time restored matters to rights. 1 It was
the characteristic which showed itself seven years later, ,when, a
political prisoner, he ordered his warders about as though he were
administering the aifairs of his own house, and challenged their right
to impose conditions upon his will. Brandes well says : " There was
something of a Caesar in this youth whom alarmed hoii/rgeois were one
day to regard as a Catilina. He was bom for power, he bore the
stamp of the ruler, and as he did not come into the world a prince or
a nobleman, but the child of the niiddle-dass, and of a disregarded
race, he became a thinker, democrat, and agitator, in order to attain
in this way the element for which he was created." ^ Even the poet
Heine could write to Lassalle in 1846 :
" I have found in no one so much passion and clearness of intellect
united in action. You have good right to be audacious — we others
only usurp this divine right, this heavenly privilege." Never, perhaps,
has the aphorism that the child is father of the man received a stronger
confirmation than is furnished by the life of Lassalle.
The fact that Ferdinand should have been destined to follow a
commercial career shows how little able one, at least, of the parents
was to read the character of the precocious boy. The mother was,
indeed, for making him a philologist, and then a professor, but the
father wished his business to remain in the family, knd for a time it
seemed as though the wish would be gratified After receiving the
1 Brandes' " Ferdinand Lassalle : ein literarisches Cbar^cterbildi" [>. ij.
2 ^randes, p. if.
Ii6 Serman Socialism.
elements of education at nome, he was sent to a Trade School a^
Leipzig, and here it was that his inclinations took a scientific direction.
" You will never make a traliesman," is said to have been the remark
made once to Lassalle by hJs schoolmaster. Nor did the young man
desire or intend to become :i tradesman. Leaving Leipzig he studied
philology and philosophy at Breslau and Berlin, and passed his exami-
nations with distinction. While yet a student he formed the resolution .
of unravelling the life and philosophy of Heracleitus the Ephesian,
and largely in order to carry out this resolution he went in 1845 to
Paris. Here, a youth of twenty years, he made the acquaintance of
Heinrich Heine, who was then suffering acutely from the isolation
which his own bitter pen had brought upon him, and who was thus all
the more ready to take to one whose views and sympathies accorded
in many respects with his own. Alexander von Humboldt ^ and
. August Boeckh^ called Lassalle a prodigy ( Wunderhind), but the sick
poet did not hesitate to say that he was himself " only a humble fly,"
when compared with his new friend. Heine, however, found in the
youth a devoted helper in legal and other difficulties, and when he
thus spoke, gratitude as well as admiration and wonder influenced his
judgment. He writes to Lassalle in February, 1846 ;
" To-day I confine myself to thanking you ; never yet has anyone
done so much for me."
And again :
" Farewell, and rest assured that I love you unspeakably. How
glad I am that I am not mistaken in you ; though I have trusted no
one so much — I, who am so distrustful from experience, not by nature.
Since I received letters from you my spirits have risen and I feel
better."
But Heine paid the highest compliment to his young frieiid's genius
when he sent him to Vamhagen * with a letter of introduction, which
ran: "My friend Herr Lassalle, who brings you this letter, is a young
man of the most remarkable intellectual gifts. With the most
1 Born September 14th, iTdg, and died May 6th, 1859.
2 August Eoeckh, bom November 24th, 1785, at Karlsruhe, renowned philologist and writer
on classical antiquity. From 1810 until his death (August 3rd, 1867) he was professor of
ancient literature at Berlin.
3 Karl August Varnhagen von Ense, *» prominent author, bom February 21st, 1785, at
Diisseldorf. He became first an Austrian and then a Russian officer, and from 1815 to 1819
was in the Prussian diplomatic service. He died Octob^ igth, 1858, at Berlin. He is ?i
master of Germ^Q literary style.
Ferdinand Lassalte. Wj
■-thorough erudition, with the widest learning, with the greatest pene-
tration which I have ever Icnown, and with the richest gift of exposi-
tion, he combines an energy of will and a capacity for action which
astonish me, and unless his sympathy with me becomes extinguished
I shall expect from him the greatest stimulus. In any case, this
union of knowledge and capability, of talent and character, is for me
a very pleasing sight."-"^
Lassalle had no sooner made a beginning with his work on Hera-
cleitus than events occurred which compelled him to lay his folios and
manuscripts aside. There lived at this time in BerUn a certain Coun-
tess Sophie von Hatzfeldt, a lady of forty years and of marked beauty,
and early in the year 1846 Lassalle made her acquaintance. Countess
Hatzfeldt was then enga ged in a suit for divorc e, and the story of her
wrongs enlisted the young man's sympathies. The lady's husband, a
noble of Silesia, a man of great wealth, but of brutal character, had
determined that his wife should be ruined if the law allowed him to
have his way. Lassalle came forward with an offer to champion the
aggrieved lady's cause, and the offer was readily accepted. This act
has been variously judged by biographers and critics, but Lassalle
was accustomed to say that there was no part of his life which gave
him greater pleasure. The first thing the young man did was to
challenge the count to a duel. The purse-proud noble, however, only
called him a "stupid young Jew" for his pains. The taunt was
bitterly felt, and it was enough to decide Lassalle to fight to the bitter
end, which, in fact, he did. Proceeding to Diisseldorf, in the train of
the countess, he at once opened the struggle. When defending him-
self, two years later, before a court of law, he told his judges the
reasons that first prompted him to interfere :
" The family was silent. But it is said : when men are silent the
stones will speak. When all human rights are outraged, when even
the voice of blood is mute, and the helpless mortal is deserted by his
born protectors — then rises up, and rightly, man's first and last
relation, man. You all know and have read with indignation the
frightful story of the unfortunate Duchess of Praslin.^ Which of you
would not have hastened to succour her in her mortal struggle? Well,
1 Letter of January 3rd, 1846.
> Murdered in 1847 by her husband, Count Theobald Cboiseul, Duke of PrasHn, who wa
arrested but poisoned himself in prison, August 14th, 1847.
Ii8 German Socialism.
gentlemen, I said to myself: here is Praslin ten times over. For
what is the short death-struggle of an hour compared with the torment
of a mortal pain prolonged through twenty years ? What are the
wounds which a knife makes compared with the slow assassination
committed with refined cruelty throughout a human being's entire
existence, compared with the fearful misery of a woman, in whose
person every right of life Jiad day after day for twenty years been
trampled underfoot, every human right outraged, and whom an attempt
had previously been made to bring into contempt, so tliat she might
be ill-used without punishment."
And further : " I saw embodied in this affair universal standpoints
and principles. I said to myself that the countess was a sacrifice of
her class ; I said to myself that such misdeeds, such an outrage on
society in its moral depths, could only be hazarded without timidity
by one in the insolent position of a prince and a millionaire. I did not
conceal from myself the difficulty of the enterprise. I saw well how
hard the task of clearing up this wrong, already old and become
historical, would be ; and how, if it came to a process, my entire
activity would exclusively be required — and thus a long interruption
in my career be entailed — in order to carry the complicated business
to an issue. I knew right well the difficulty of overcoming a false
appearance ; I did not conceal from myself what frightful antagonists
rank, influence, and wealth are, the fact that they alone can ever find
alliances in the ranks of the bureaucracy, and the danger that I might
myself run. I knew all this without being restrained by it. I resolved
to oppose false appearance with truth, rank with right, the power of
money with that of intellect. The obstacles, the sacrifice, the
dangers did not frighten me ; but had I known what unworthy and
infamous slanders would be cast at me, how the purest motives would
be twisted and perverted into their exact opposite, and what ready
credence the most miserable lies wpuld find : well, I hope my resolu-
tion would not have been changed, but it would have cost me a hard
and painful struggle."^
The struggle lasted eight years, but Lassalle won in the end. He
fought in thirty-six courts and finally brought the count to his knees.
The result was a compromise which secured the wronged woman an
1 Trial at Cologne,' August nth, 1848. See " Meine Vertheidlgungsrede wider die AUklage
der VerleituDg zum Kassetten-Biebstaht," (Cologne, 1848).
Perdinand Lassaltg, tip
ample fortune and her champion an income for life, the latter amount-
ing, according to all accounts, to 5000 thalers or about £7^0 yearly.
The most noteworthy incident in the long legal dispute, an incident of
•which the last was never heard during Lassalle's life, was the famous
casket robbery committed under his direction in 1846. It was known
that in the casket of Count Hatzfeldt's paramour, the Baroness von
MeyerdorfF, there was the bond of a life annuity which had been
settled upon this lady by her lover. Lassalle determined to secure
the document, and he did so with th6 aid of two accomplices, who fell
into the hands of the law. Lassalle himself escaped punishmeqt.
At the first trial, indeed, he was found guilty, but on appeal the
judgment was quashed. The character of the after relationship
between Lassalle and Countess Hatzfeldt was never truly known, but
it pfovided, and no wonder, ample material for scandal, and even
to-day it is regarded by many who wish to be charitable as a dark
blot upon a character which they would fain have seen free from
blemish. The two appear in later years— published letters show this
■-'to have considered the relationship as that of mother and son, and
it is unquestionable that the countess continued deeply devoted to
Lassalle up to the last hour of his life, as well as to his memory after
death. It is difGcuJt to say how far Lassalle, in his zealous advocacy
of this lady's cause, was influenced by a strong sense of duty and how
far by a love of the romantic, but that both factors entered into play
can admit of no doubt. He was never tired of extolling the virtue
and honour of that intervention, which he appears to have regarded
as a religfious act, and just before his death in 1864 he wrote to his
friend Huber :
" It is the most Cherished recollection of my life, a recollection which,
in spite of the succession of years which have passed away, fills me
with the purest satisfaction. For eight years I carried on tha
struggle, not putting my weapons out of my hand, until I had won for
the countess right and victory, And I would have carried the struggle
on until to-day, had I not ended it victoriously in 1854. . . That inter-
vention for the countess was nothing else than an insurrection, an in-
surrection upon my own account in a case which, like the purest
microcosm, contains within itself our entire social misery. My whole
man lies in that transaction."
Whatever Lassalle may himself have thought about an episode
120 German Socialism.
which began with a casket robbery and ended with the reward of a
life annuity, his character did not benefit by it in public estimation.
His friends always presertred discreet silence on the subject, but his
enemies found in it a fountain of poison into which they again and
again dipped their keen lances.
While Lassalle was still engaged in the Hatzfeldt law-suit, events
transpired which for a time caused him to devote attention to other
things. In 1848, a revolutionary storm broke out once more, and
though the waves of anarchy which swept from Paris broke long be-
fore they reached German soil, their effect was still very great.
Lassalle had already identified himself with the German Republican
party, and spite of his youth, he was a leader in the camp, and one,
too, in whom high trust was reposed^ He was at this time associated
with men like Marx, Engels, and Wolff, who saw in the foment of that
period an opportunity for furthering their long-cherished Communistic
designs. As Lassalle was favourably known amongst the Diisseldorf
working-men, he was charged with their organisation, and he did his
duty with a zeal which brought him into trouble. Not only did he
harangue meetings, but when the Prussian Government declared the
National Assembly dissolved in November, he called on the citizens of
Diisseldorf by placard to prepare for armed resistance to that step as
being unconstitutional.^ For this act Lassalle was apprehended, and
1 On November 8th the king confirmed the nomination of a new Ministry, at the head of
which was Count Brandenburg, and the following day a Cabinet ordinance was read in the
Assembly, removing the seat of that body to Brandenburg, and adjourning further proceed-
ings till the 27th, when the drawing up of a constitution was to be proceeded with. The
President of the Assembly, Von Unruh, refused to close the sitting, whereupon Count Bran-
denburg declared that further deliberations would be illegal, and left the hall, being followed
by the 'other Ministers. The Right also withdrew, but the Left and Centre remained, a body
of ago members. On the loth, the Rump passed a resolution declaring that it would adhere
to its liberties, but would not transgress the law. That day fifteen thousand guards entered
Berlin, and when the National Assembly adjourned in the evening, Wrangel caused their
meeting-place to be 'occupied by a company of soldiers. On the X2th, Berlin was placed in a
state of siege ; the civic guard was ordered to surrender arms, all clubs and associations were
closed, all open air meetings were prohibited, the carrying of weapons was forbidden, and
newspapers and pamphlets were only allowed to be circulated with the permission of the
police, while cases of illegality were to be adjudicated on by a court-martial. On the 13th
the Rump'issued a memorial, declaring the proceedings of the Ministry to be unconstitutional
and an act of high treason, and this was sent to the Attorney-General with the request that he
would act upon it, but this official could not, of course, move in the matter. On the evening
of the 13th, troops occupied the Rump's provisional meeting-place, the Schutzenhaus, and on
'the members assembling Aext day in the Cdlln Rathhaus an officer appeared with thirty
Ferdinand Lassalk. 12 1
indicted — as Marx and others were at Cologne — for exciting to armed
opposition to the Executive Power. He was acquitted of this charge,
but was kept in prison until he could be tried on the less serious
count of inciting to resistance against officials, the result being a sen-
tence of six months' imprisonment. Humboldt wished to intercede
with the king on his behalf, but Lassalle would not hear of such a
thing, and when he knew that his sister had done what he had refused
to let Humboldt do, he wrote to the king to say that it was all a mis-
understanding — he desired no free pardon.
The first speech made by Lassalle, a young man of twenty-three
years, in defence of his conduct at Dusseldorf, is a marvellous per-
formance, and historically is of great importance. Brandes contends
that it is one of the most wonderful instances of manly courage and
eloquence in a youth which the world's history furnishes. However
this may be, it is impossible to disagree with the biographer's further
remark that, " Were it not known, no one would believe that a young
man of twenty-three had made this speech." More interesting than
its excellence as a piece of oratory — ^its faultless construction, its logical
sequence, its complete appositeness to the occasion, and above all
its real eloquence — is, to the student of Lassalle and his work, the
exposition which it contains of his political and social views. The
speech bears evidence of most careful and elaborate preparation. It
soldiers. He called upon the president to close the proceedings, and on Von Unruh refusing,
he summoned all members to quit the hall, another refusal being the only answer. He there-
fore decided to challenge the members individually, and beginning with the president, ordered
him to leave. Von Unruh declining, he was carried out on his seat, and lodged in the street.
This acted as a warning to the rest, and the room was soon empty.
Finally, the Rump, greatly reduced in numbers, resorted to an inn, and on the evening of
the ijth it was there deliberating, when two officers with drawn swords entered, being
followed by fifty soldiers. The meeting was called on to disperse, and the president requested
the officers to withdraw with their men for a moment, on condition of immediate compliance
witli the summons. The request was granted, and no sooner had the last soldier withdrawn,
than a resolution affirming the illegality of the levy of taxes by the Brandenburg Ministry was
hastily put and carried with acclamation. Then the Assembly dispersed. On December 5th,
the king dissolved the Assembly convened at Brandenburg, and a constitution was promul-
gated the same day. Herr Hans Victor von Unruh, mentioned above, was bom March aSth,
1806, at Tilsit, and lived as engineer in Berlin and elsewhere. He sat in the National
Assembly for Magdeburg in 1848, leading the Centre party, and became the president of the
Chamber, in which capacity he opposed the reaction with might and main. For over ten
years he remained in retirement, but in 1863 he entered the Prussian House of Deputies, and
was its vice-president until 1867. In x866, he joined the new National Liberal party, and
supported it as a member of the Reichstag until he retired again into private life.
122 German Socialism.
was evidently intended to be, not merely an address to a jury and a.
plea for acquittal, but a manifesto to Germany. It was a grand
opportunity for letting the world, and above all the democracy, know
that he was in existence, and he made the best use of it. The daring
is sublime. He begins with the cool declaration : " I acknowledge
to you with pleasure that from inmost conviction I take altogether a
revolutionary standpoint, that from inmost conviction I am a pro-
nounced adherent of the Social-Democratic Republic." By revolution,
however, as we know from later works, Lassalle did not understand
necessarily the violent overturn of a form of government. " A revolu-
tion," he says in one place, " takes place if — whether with or without
force, for the question of means is of no importance-^an entirely new
principle is made to take the place of the existing state of things."
He scorned the idea that it was impossible to conceive oif a situation
in which armed resistance against the Executive would be justifiable,
and exclaimed : —
" Can the king tread the laws of the citizens under foot, confiscate
their fortunes, murder their sons, dishonour their daughters, — can he
destroy the constitution and restore the absolute State without you
having the right to defend yourselves against his violence? Who
would be guilty of such antediluvian shame as to answer this question
with Yes ? If the State Procurator dare affirm it ; if he says that no
case would be imaginable in which a citizen would be justified in arm-
ing himself against the royal power, and if the Crown Solicitor says
that this thought lies at the basis of his charge, then, gentlemen, their
place is here (pointing to the prisoner's dock) since they say that
Prussia is an absolute State as it was before March."
But if the right existed the question then arose, what would be suflS-
cient justification for its exercise, and he answers :
" When the laws of the land are broken by the royal power — ^those
first and holiest laws, those palladia of universal liberty which cannot
be touched without shattering the State to its foundations, without
giving a vital wound, as with an electric shock, to the rights of all
citizens from the Oder to the Rhine— the laws respecting the civic
guard, ffeeddm of the Press, association, personal liberty, the rights
and the inviolability of popular representation.''
Such a case, Lassalle said, had occurred, and he held that he had
done his duty as a good ciiizen and a good patriot. Quite logically
Ferdinand Lassalle. 123
he admitted that the National Assembly in inviting the nation to show
passive resistance acted wrongly. Either the Crown was right in dis-
solving the Assembly, in which case opposition was illegal and
criminal ; or it was wrong, and then there should be opposition — not,
indeed, passive, but " active, with body and life '' — in defence of the
people's liberties. We find Lassalle preaching in this speech the
doctrine of the ultimate supremacy of might which in later years he
developed, when once again a constitutional crisis called him out of
silence into the din of political controversy. One passage in which
he refers prophetically to the mission which he felt sure he had to
fulfil deserves to be borne in mind for the sake of later application :
" Yes, gentlemen, as the armour of a warrior is pierced by arrows,
so am I by criminal prosecutions. The many dogs are at last to be
the death of the game ; but, gentlemen, I feel something here which
tells me that the many dogs will not be the death of the game.''
'With Schiller's Maid of Orleans he believd, " Nicht heut, nicht hier
ist mir bestimmt zu fallen." Finally, Lassalle in this speech struck
the note of his entire public life, when he said : —
" Not to take sides, that means either to have little conviction or
to disown conviction. Not to take sides, that means to prefer, in
ignominious indiiference to the highest interests which thrill the
heart of mankind, one's own quiet and ease to the great questions upon
which the weal and woe of the fatherland depend, and so to betray
the duties which we owe to the fatherland. History can forgive all
errors and all convictions, but not want of conviction." That was
Lassalle as he stood upon the threshold of his career, and it was
Lassalle when his work was completed.
The Hatzfeldt affair was settled in 1854, and Lassalle could now
devote himself to the completion of his laborious work on Heracleitus
of Ephesus, the preparations for which had been discontinued nearly
ten years before. He revised the work already done, finished his
researches, and by dint of dose application he was able to write the
preface in August, 1857, and publish the two bulky ■ volumes early
the following year.^ The work has been variously judged by scholars,
few of whom have awarded it a high place in philosophical literature.
It is, however, easy to believe that the character and philosophy of the
1 "Die Philosophie Herakleitos des Dunklen von Ephesos : Nach einer neuen Sammlung
Bruchstucke und der Zeugni'sae der alten dargestellt," (Berlin, 1858).
1^4 German Socialism.
moody Ephesian sage, who taught the doctrine of perpetual flux, and
negativing the Being accepted only a Becoming, would have deep in-
terest for Lassalle, the kernel of whose social teaching was that
human institutions are without finality, and that the value and truth
of all the economic creeds which have descended to the present age are
relative rather than absolute. The next literary performance was a
tragedy, "Franz von Sickingen." ^ This work was laid by a friend,
as an anonymous production, before the director of the Royal Theatre
in Berlin, as Lassalle desired to see it performed before it was pub-
lished. As it was found unsuitable for the stage he at once had it
printed. " Franz von Sickingen " is a work of mediocre ability now
quite forgotten — if, indeed, it can be said to have ever attracted atten-
tion — and its only interest lies in the direct bearing which many
passages have upon the author's career and the principles governing
it. One involuntarily calls to mind Lassalle confronting his judges
as a political prisoner in reading the words put inio the mouth of
Ulrich von Hiitten : — *
" Ich kann nicht schweigen, kann durch Schweigen nicht
Mir Obdaeh und des Leibes Sicherheit erkaufen :
Mich treibt der Geist I Ich muss ihm Zeugniss legen,
Kann nicht verschliessen, was so mftchtig quillt."
And the following passage seems to portray a future agitator
travelling from place to place, and followed everywhere by indictments
and writs of commitment :
" O, hatt' ich tausend Zungen— grade jetzt
Mtt alien tausenden wollt' ich zum Lande reden 9
Viel lieber will ich, elend wie ein Wild gehetzt,
Von einem Dorfe mich zum andem tragen,
Als an der Wahrheit schweigend zu verzagen ! "
1 " Franz von Sickingen : eine historische Tragodie " (Berlin, i8Sg). Brandes records how
Lassalle was once found by a friend at work on this tragedy. He was astonished at Las-
Balle's hardihood, seeing that his nature was far from being poetic, but before he could speak
Lassalle said : " I know what you are going to say : I know as well as you that I am no
poet. But Lessing wrote dramas with the consciousness that he was no poet. Without compar-
ing myself with Lessing I do not see why I should not," &c. (Brandes, p. no).
2 "Franz von Sickingen was one of the noblest men of the Reformation period. He
defended Ulrich von Hiitten, warred against perfidious Wurtembeig, was the terror of evil
doei^, the praise of whoso did well. Hiitten and he read Luther together: light rising in
darkness ! He also stood by Gtitz von Berlichingen, and now walks in poetry.' Carlyle in
the Cralgenputtock Journal 1829-1830 (" Thomas Carlyle : a History of the first forty years ol
his Life," by J. A. Froude, London, 1882).
Ferdinand Lassalle. 125
Meanwhile, Lassalle had transferred his residence to Berlin. This
he had long wished to do, but on account of his revolutionary exploits
in 1848 the Government thought it desirable to keep the gates of the
metropoHs closed to him. It is said that the desire to see Berlin again
grew at one time so strong that he entered the city by stealth, dressed
as a waggoner. At last he begged Alexander von Humboldt to inter-
cede, and Humboldt promised to do his best. The opportunity
wished for came when Humboldt found himseh one day the neigh-
bour of Hinckeldey, the president of police, at the dinner-table of
a friend. He seized a fitting moment, and asked if there were any
difficulties in the way of Lassalle's return. The answer was altogether
satisfactory : Hinckeldey had himself no objection whatever, but he
did not know the king's views. Humboldt said he would ask the king,
and he did, with the result that Lassalle was soon enrolled amongst
the residents of Berlin, the Countess Hatzfeldt speedily following. It
was, however, a long time before he dare venture into public life.
That would have been taking liberties which the Government would
not have quietly tolerated. For several years he had to be content
with the r61e of a mere observer, and so he divided his time between
study and amusement.
Lassalle was in the fullest sense of the word a man of the world, but he
was not that alone. Had he been, the continual round of pleasure which
he was able to follow during these early years of Berlin life would have
satisfied his desires. For he became a central figure in society, and his
conquests in the drawing-room were many and flattering. He was a
man of fascinating appearance, and his keen eagle-eyes had a more than
magnetic power. When tried before the Dusseldorf Assizes in 1848 the
indictment described him as "five feet six inches high, with brown curly
hair, open forehead, brown eye-brows, dark-blue eyes, well-proportioned
nose and mouth, round chin, rather long face, and of slender build."
But details of this kind give no idea of the living man, of the true per-
sonality, the commanding presence, the proud dignity, the intellectual
bearing. One who saw him on a single occasion has recorded that
" He looked like pure defiance ; but on his forehead was seen such an
energy that one would not have wondered if he had won a throne."
Add to all this the gift of brilliant conversational powers, and it is not
surprising that Lassalle should have become a drawing-room hero, a
lion of society. He was very fond of music, and for years Hans vojj
126 German Socialism,
Biilow,^ the pianist and composer, was counted amongst the closest of
his friends. A man of cultivated tastes, his house was a model of
elegance. He was never strong, and was compelled to travel a great
deal. Thus two visits to the East, made while still young, afforded him
the opportunity of acquiring many objects of art and virtu, which were
afterwards used in the decoration of his rooms. His dinners and
suppers are said to have been the choicest in Berlin, and certain it
is that he outdid everybody in novelty, once serving his guests with
hashish. So he lived, admired and petted by the ladies, and the
life and soul of a small intellectual circle which gathered its inspiration
from him : he was Byron and Alcibiades at the same time. Still he
made enemies — men like Lassalle have invariably as many haters as
loviers — and once he was challenged. Holding, however, that a
member of the democratic party should be above appeal to barbarism,
he declined to respond. Some time later his adversary, who was
accompanied by a friend, met him near the Brandenburg Gate,/ and
the two men attacked him with great violence. But Lassalle's demo-
cratic principles did not now forbid him to act in self-defence. He
stood bravely up to his opponents, and soon compelled them to beat a
hasty aiid undignified retreat. The affair became pubhc, and for
some days it was a topic of general conversation. Forster,* the his-
torian, was so pleased with the part played by the victor that he pre-
sented him with Robespierre's walking-stick, and this was ever after-
wards Lassalle's itiseparable companion. Indeed, he fancied that he
bore a certain resemblance to this hero of the " Terror," and in his
own characteristic way he would tell intimate friends of the similarity.
One day he accosted such a friend, at whose house he was visiting,
with " See, here is Robespierre's walking-stick." Then transferring
his hands to his head, " And here is Robespierre's head. I am like
Robespierre!" Lassalle's hair was very thick and phenomenally
strong. He used to say, " I am like Samson ; my strength lies in my
hair."
The literary products attributable to this period include his principal
1 Hans Guido von Billow, born at Dresden, January Sth, 1830. Long after Lassalle's death
a small volume of " Briefe an Hans von Billow von Ferdinand Lassalle " (Dresden and Leip'
zig) appeared. The letters give an interesting picture of Lassalle's private life from 1862 to
2 Friedrich Forster, bom September 24th, 1791, at Miiucheu^osserstadt, died JlpyemfeW
S^h, 186^. Author of many historical wor]t5. '
Ferdinand Lassalle. 127
work, "System of Acquired Rights," ^ to which it will be necessary to
refer at length ; and a small anonymous work on the Italian war.*
In 1862 he published a cutting satire* on Julian Schmidt's "History
of German Literature," * a work, however, of purely ephemeral inter-
est. The criticism of Lassalle and the " comments of the compositor
and the compositor's wife " made the unlucky victim smart at the time,
but the style of the work — a copy of which Lassalle sent to Hans von
Billow with the remark that he would " laugh himself to death " over
it — is far below the author's reputation. Ten pages are taken up with
an argument that Fichte ^ was to the last hostile to Christianity.
This was the last literary work which Lassalle was able to do for
a long time. Stirring events soon occurred causing him to relinquish
the retirement of the study.
Lassalle's entrance into public life was accelerated by the con-
stitutional struggle which began in Prussia in 1862. King William 1.
came to the throne on January 2nd, 1861. At that time the Chamber
of Deputies was strongly Liberal, and when the king endeavoured to
force through his favourite scheme of army reorganisation he met
with nothing but opposition. Repeated dissolutions of the Diet
proved futile, for the Liberal majority always returned stronger than
before. In September, 1862, Herr von Bismarck was called from the
Paris Embassy to become Minister President, and the appointment
was regarded as an intimation that the king had adopted the policy
of " No surrender." "As the Lower Chamber still refused to adopt the
Army Bill, and went the length of declaring that in expending money
without Parliamentary sanction the Government violated the con-
stitution, the Diet was in October sent about its business, the king
stating that as the estates had come to a deadlock he would act on^
his own responsibility for the good of the nation. Accordingly, the''
military reforms were proceeded with and completed, and the Govern-
ment ruled for four years without budget.
1 "Das System der erworbenen Rechte" (Leipzig, 1861, 2 vols.)
2 " Der italienische Krieg und die Aufgabe Preussens : cine Stimme au3 der Demokratie"
{Berlin, 1859).
. S " Herr Julian Schmidt, der Literarhistoriker, mit Setzer-Sctiolien " (Berlin, i86aX
4 " Gescliichte der deutschen Literatur " (Leipzig, 1858, 4th ed.)
In " Fichte's politisches Vermaclitniss und die neueste Gegenwart" {a letter written
January, i860 ; Leipzig, 1871), Lassalle speaks of Ficlite as ••' tho most glorious Oennan
patriot and one of the most powerful thinkers of all times." Fjchto'j gravq la in qd^ ijf ((le
Berlin Cemeteries, and Hegel'? is close at Iiand,
128 German Socialism.
While the constitutional conflict was still in an early stage, Lassalle
was invited to , address, in the spring of 1862, one of the ratepayers'
associations^ of Berlin, and he chose for his subject the essence of the
constitution. In this address,^ which was several times repeated, he
advanced the doctrine that constitutional questions are questions of
power. The written constitution is merely the expression of the
elements of power — as king, nobility, court influence, bankers. Stock
Exchange, the great manufacturers, army, populace, &c.— which exist in
a country and their relationship to each other, but these elements of
power form themselves the real constitution.* Thus the proper con-
stitution must correspond to this relationship of forces, and one
consequence deducible from the argument is that so long as a king,
nobility, and army constitute an undivided element of power, mere
written guarantees cannot be binding upon a sovereign. The Pro-
gressists were furious at the impudence of one who was formerly an
associate in propagating such doctrines, and their Press fulminated at
him for becoming the tool of the unconstitutional party. The sup-
porters of the Government, on the other hand, were delighted at receiv-
ing an accession of strength from so unexpected a quarter, and the
Krem-Zeitung alluded to Lassalle as a " revolutionary Jew well known
in his day, who has with right instinct hit the nail on the head, and
has not by a long way said all he knows and thinks." Truer word was
never spoken. Lassalle's tale was only half told, and he probably
. laughed heartily as he saw how short-sighted his critics all were. A
second address soon followed with the sufBciently suggestive title
"What now?" In this address he carried his arg^njent further. As
in Prussia the army stood behind the Government, what remedy had
the Parliament against acts which it might deem to be illegal ? Some
said grants of money should be refused,,but this experiment, though
effective in England, where a preponderance of the organised power was
on the side of the people, would be futile in Prussia. The only course
1 Known then and now as Be^rksvereine. These associations estist for the purpose of
allowing the citizens to deliberate together on municipal, industrial, political, and general
questions. Berlin is divided into Bezirke or districts, and generally several Bezirke join to-
gether in the formation of a Verein, this being, however, quite voluntary, as the Vereine are
not in reality official organisations.
2 Published with the title " Ueber Verfassungswesen."
S Loreiiz von Stein in the masterly essay on society and the State which forms an introduction
to his "Geschichte der socialen Bewegung in Frankreich von 1789 bis auf uqsere Tage"
(Ifeipzig, i?5o, 3 vols.) deyplops this id?a in a more genera] way,
Ferdinand Lassalle. 129
open was for the Chambers to refuse to meet. This would bring the
Government face to face with the alternatives of absolutism or surrender,
and as it was impossible for it to rule despotically and thus outrage
the feelings of all civilised nations for any length of time, victory
would eventually rest with the people. There was now no longer any
justification for regarding Lassalle as a defender of unconstitutional
government. The second lecture was published like the first and
widely circulated, but beyond the confiscation of the work at Konigs-
berg no harm was suffered by its daring author.
Less fortunate was Lassalle with his next lecture, delivered on April
I2th, 1862, before an artisans' association in Berlin. On this occasion
he dealt in a perfectly philosophical and historical way with the develop-
ment of the State and society since the French Revolution, and he came
to the conclusion that just as that Revolution gave to the third estate
the leading place in the State, so the German Revolution of 1848 had
elevated the fourth estate to that dignity. Doctrines like this were
not to be tolerated, and when the lecture was published ^ the entire
edition of three thousand copies was seized, while Lassalle was served
with a writ by the Crown Solicitor requiring him to answer the charge
of endangering the public peace by publicly exciting subjects of the
State to hatred of each other. The trial took place at Berlin on
January i6th, 1863, and the proceedings, as was to have been expected,
were very memorable. The prosecution was conducted by a son of
the philosopher Schelling,^ and of this circumstance Lassalle, who
regarded himself as a defender of science and freedom of philosophical
inquiry against intolerance, did not omit to make good use. He
endeavoured to justify himself on the ground of the twentieth article
of the Prussian Constitution, which says " Science and its teaching
are free," holding that this provision was to be understood absolutely,
for if the qualification " free within the limits of the penal code " were
to be added it became meaningless, since such an exemption and
qualification woidd cover every expression of opinion. In reply to the
allegation that the work was not scientific, Lassalle challenged the
verdict of seven members of the Royal Academy of Sciences : August
1 With the title "Arbeiterprogramm : tlber den besondem Zusammenhang der gegenwartigen
Geschichtsperiode mit der Idee des Arbeiterstandes." (April 12th, 1862.)
2 Dr. H. von Schelling, bom April 19th, 1824. Entered the Prussian Ministry of Justice
as Under Secretary of State, and in 1879 made Secretary of State in the Imperial ^tistizamt,
1
130 German Socialism.
Boeckh, Johannes Schulze,'' Adolf Trendelenburg, ^ Leopold Ranke,*
Theodor Mommsen,* Hausser,^ and Dr. Pertz.* He declared : "The
alliance of science and the working classes, of these opposite poles of
society, which when they meet will crush all obstacles to civilisation
in their iron arms, that is the end to which I have resolved to
dedicate r(iy life." He was in reality a benefactor and yet they pro-
secuted him as a criminal. He drew a picture of the state of Berlin
in the frightful M&rztage of 1848, when the barricades were red with
blood, the power of the police broken down, the bourgeoisie trembling
in fear, and Berlin in the hands of a mob, and he asked if his pro-
secutors desired a return of that reign of terror.
"If not, then thank the men who have devoted themselves to the
work of filling up the abyss which divides scientific thought and
language from the people, and so of breaking down the barrier which
keeps feoiwjfeoisie and people asunder. Thank these men, who at the
expense of mental exertions have undertaken a work whose results
will be to the benefit of each and all of you."
Then, with a Socratic air, he exclaimed : " Feast these men in the
Prytaneion and do not arraign them ! " The trial was a very stormy
one, and time after time the judges, the Crown Solicitor, and the
defendant engaged in angry and tumultuous argument. Lassalle in
his defence was seen in all his various moods, as telling words\ ol
satire and raillery, indignation and fury, remonstrance and persuasion,
entreaty and pathos left his lips by turn. He treated all the members
of the Court like so many ninepins, but his handling of the Crown
Solicitor was especially severe. This functionary had eventually to
propose that Lassalle should no longer be heard, and that he should
be removed from the hall in case of a fiirther attempt to speak. An
1 Johannes Schulze, famous authority on education, born January isth, 1786, at Brtilil, for
many years active in the Prussian State service ; died February 21st, i86g.
2 Friedrich Adolf Trendelenburg, philosopher, born November 30th, 1802, at Eutin, and
died professor at Berlin, January 24th, 1872. '
5 Leopold von Ranke, the honoured historian, whose long and active life came so recently
to its end. Bom December 2i5t, 1795, at Wiehe, in Thuringia.
• Theodor Mommsen, the Roman historian, born November 30th, 1817, at Carding, in
Schleswig, and still living at Cilarlottenburg, Berlin.
» Ludwig Hausser, historian, born October 26th, 1818, at Cleeburg, Lower Alsace ; professor
at Heidelberg from 1845 until his death (March 17th, 1867).
6 Georg Heinrich Pertz, historian, born March 28th, 1795, at Hanover, lived at Beriin from
1842 until close upon his death, which took place at Munich, October 7th, 1876. H? w^
" JJacht und Reehf."
132 German Socialism.
Taxes and the Condition of the Working Classes," ^ which was a re-
print of his defence on the rehearing of the trial of January on appeal.
These legal proceedings must have given Lassalle annoyance in that
they diverted hirti from political and scientific work, and, indeed, we
find him writing to Rodbertus in February, 1863, that he is " over-
burdened in consequence of a small series of indictments which the
Crown Solicitor has opened against me, and which compels me to lay
aside everything else in order to give fire from both broadsides." But
annoying as they were, the prosecutions were not without a com-
pensatory side, for they helped to prepare their victim for the career
of agitation upon which he was shortly to enter.
1 " Die indirecten Steuer und die Lag der arbeitenden Klassen."
enAf TEk VI.
Organisation of the working
CLASSES.
The Constitutional struggles of 1848-1850 were succeeded by a re-
markable awakening in the political life of Germany. The admission
of the working classes to a share in Parliamentary affairs aroused
wider interest in politics. On many sides bids were made for the
favour of the young and growing democracy, and Working Men's
Associations of various kinds were established in all parts of the coun-
try. For some years, however, the force of the reaction continued to
be strongly felt, and during this period little visible progress could be
made by Socialistic or even advanced Liberal doctrines. One of the
first associations formed in the interest of working-men was the
" Centralverein fiir das Wohl der arbeitenden Klassen in Preussen,"
(" Central Association for the Welfare of the Working Classes in
Prussia"), which was constituted in April, 1848. This organisation
was reactionary, and was formed with the view of leading the popular
classes in the path of moderation, and its programme was in every
respect a worthy one, but it cannot be said to have at any time enlisted
the sympathies of the masses. The membership was 344 in the first
year, but this number fell to 155 in 1862, when Ferdinand Lassalle's
agitation began. A far more important part was played in the politi-
cal history of the time by the A rbeiterbildungsvereine, associations which
were semi-political in character, though they professed to have for
their object the intellectual advancement of the working classes. It
became clear, however, that the Governments, now supported by the
reaction, were not inclined to be lenient with any new tendencies to-
wards disorder which might show themselves. In 1851, some of the
States concluded treaties for the expulsion of political suspects, and
not a few leaders of the Socialistic movement were compelled to with-
draw from German soil. It was not long before the Working Men's
Associations fell under suspicion, and measures were taken for their
suppression. On April 14th, 1853, a report was presented to the Ger-
man Diet which stated : —
1^4 German Socialism.
4
" After various Federal Governments have in the ordinary way of
diplomacy called attention to the dangers which threaten pubUc safety,
owing to the activity of the Working Men's Associations spread over
a large part of Germany, the Governments of Austria and Prussia be-
lieve that they will be meeting the wishes of the Federal Governments
when they bring forward the question of adopting means for counter-
acting the injurious influence exerted by these associations, especially
on the labouring class. If it be beyond doubt that success can only be
attained by common and identical measures on the part of all Federal
Governments, the question still appears to require preliminary inquiry,
what extent should be given to the resolutions to be adopted, in order,
on the one hand, that associations of a revolutionary character may
with safety be suppressed, and, on the other hand, that the existence of
such associations as pursue useful purposes may not be prevented, and
that no unnecessary interference with free intercourse may take place."^
On this occasion Herr von Bismarck spoke in favour of legislative
measures, for he regarded the influence of the associations as in-
jurious. The result of the proposal of the Prussian and Austrian
Governments was the adoption by the Diet on July 13th, 1854, of a
serious of resolutions intended to effectually check the agitation of
political organisations. Clause 3 of the treaty ran : — " In regard
especially to political associations, in so far as they are not prohibited
by the law of the country, or require in each case the special sanction
of the authorities, the Governments concerned are in a position to de-
cree special and temporary restrictions and prohibitions in conformity
with the existing circumstances." The final clause ran : —
" In the interest of the common safety all Federal Governments un-
dertake further to dissolve, within two months, the working men's
associations and fraternities existing in their territories which pursue
political. Socialistic, or Communistic purposes, and to forbid the re-
suscitation of such organisations under penalty."
The next thing was to deal with the Press, and after long negocia-
tion and deliberation, a stringent Press Law was adopted by resolution
of the Diet on July 6th, 1854. This law made "special personal
licence " necessary to the carrying on of the callings of printer, litho-
grapher, bookseller, art-dealer, second-hand-bookseller, owner of cir-
1 See i2th and 15th Volumes of "Publicationen aus den KSnig. Preussischen Staatsarchiven'
(Leipzig, 1882), for diplomatic documents on the democratic movement.
Organisation of the Working Classed. \%%
culating library or reading-room, and newspaper or print seller. The
publisher of a periodical was required to deposit bail ranging from
5000 thalers (as a rule) to 500 thalers (in exceptional cases), and if
judicial proceedings were rendered necessary by any action of his, the
costs were to be defrayed from this deposit, which must, however, be at
once made up to the fall amount. The hardest provision was one
which made it dangerous for newspapers to criticise public men or to
publish statements objectionable to the Governments or the authori-
ties. An unhappy time followed for the Press, or at least for that
section which had hitherto made show of advanced political tenden-
cies. By means of this and other repressive measures, indirectly
repressive 'but still very effective, most democratic journals were re-
duced to extremities. Many succumbed to the penalties for misde-
meanour, and others to the burden of high bail, stamp duty, or as in
Hamburg advertisement duty. Those that succeeded in eluding their
persecutors were compelled, when discussing political and social
questions, to exercise a moderation which was as distasteful and irk-
some as it was purposeless for agitation. The right of public meet-
ing was also restricted. Obstacles were placed in the way of out-door
assemblies, and indoor assemblies were subjected to surveillance. It
seemed as though the working classes would have to cast politics
away from them. The measures adopted appeared to succeed so
well, that in May, 1857, a report could be presented to the Federal
Diet, wherein it was stated that Frankfort, which had for years been a
chief seat of the " revolutionary elements," had been delivered from the
hands of the democracy, whose literature had no longer a sale.^ After
all, the democratic movement had not been killed, or even scotched :
it had only disappeared from the surface, and this was before long
seen to be the fact.
Another movement fared better, the co-operative movement, begun-
by Schulze-Delitzsch, an influential politician, and a political econo-
mist.^ Although Schulze was known to hold Progressist opinions, his
associations were allowed to exist on the understanding that they
would be good and give the Governments no trouble, a condition
readily complied with, and faithfully adhered ta The co-operativfe"
1 " Preussen im Bundestag," (vol. 15 of the " Pablicationen aus den KSnig. Pteussischen
Staatsarchiyen," already mentioned), pp. iii, 112.
2 An excellent biography of this notable man appeared a few years ago from the pen of
Dr. A. Bernstein with the title " Schulse-Delitzsch : Leben und Wifken " (Berlin),
136 German Socialism.
movement is important, not only because for a time it took great hold
of the people, but because it was indirectly instrumental in bringing
Lassalle to the front as a rival agitator and propagandist. Hermann
Schulze was bom at Delitzsch, in Prussian Saxony, August 29th, 1808.
He studied jurisprudence at Leipzig and Halle, and afterwards occu-
pied judicial posts under the Government, becoming District Judge at
Delitzsch in 1841, a position which he held until 1850. In 1848, he
was elected to the Prussian National Assembly, and the following year
he became a member of the Second Chamber, in which he sat as
Schulze-Delitzsch, a name which has since adhered to him. Being a
member of the Progressist party, he proved a thorn in the Govern-
ment's flesh, and he was made District Judge at Wreschen, but he re-
turned later to the Prussian Diet, and became also a member of the
North German and German Reichstags. For more than thirty years
Schulze headed the co-operative movement in Germany, but his self-
Sacrifice impoverished him, and although his motto as a social re-
former had always been " S plf-help ." as opposed to Lassalle's " State-
help," he was' compelled in""Bisdeclining years to accept a gift ot
£^000 from his friends. Schulze died honoured if not famous on April
39th, 1883.
Schulze-Delitzsch is the father of the co-operative movement in
Germany. He had watched the development of this movement
in England, and as early as 1848 he had lifted up his voice in espousal
of co-operative principles in his own country. Though a Radical,
Schulze was no Socialist, and he believed co-operation to be a power-
ful weapon wherewith to withstand the steady advance of Socialistic
doctrines in Germany. Besides carrying on agitation by means of
platform-speaking, he published various works on the subject, the
chief of which are : " Die arbeitenden Klassen und das Associations-
wesen in Deutschland, als Programm zu einem deutschen Congress,"
(Leipzig, 1858) ; " Kapitel zu einem deutschen Arbeitercatechismus,''
(Leipzig, 1863) ; " Die Abschafifung des geschaftlichen Risico durch
Herrn Lassalle," (Berlin, 1865); "Die Entwickelung des Genossen-
schaftswesens in Deutschland," (Berlin, 1870); and "Die Genossen-
schaften in einzelnen Gewerbszweigen," (Leipzig, 1873). Schulze advo-
cated the application of the co-operative principle to other organisa-
tions than the English stores, and especially to loan, raw material, and
industrial associations. He made a practical beginning at his own home
Organisation of the Working Classes. 1^7
and the adjacent town of Eilenburg, where in 1849 he established two
co-operative associations of shoemakers and joiners, the object of
which was the purchase and supply to members of raw material at
cost price. In 1850 he formed a Loan Association {Vorschussverein)
at Delitzsch on the principle of monthly payments, and in the follow-
ing year a similar association on a larger scale at Eilenburg. For a
long time Schulze had the field of agitation to himself, and the con-
sequence was that the more intelligent sections of the working classes
took to his proposals readily. Another reason for his success, how-
ever, was the fact that the movement was practical and entirely un-v
political. It was a movement from which the Socialistic element was
absent, and one in which, therefore, the moneyed classes could safely
co-operate. Schulze, in fact, sought to introduce reforms social rather
than Socialistic. The fault of his scheme as a regenerative agency was
that it did notaifect the masses of the people, and thus the roots of
the social question were not touched. Schulze could only look fo:
any considerable support to small tradesmen and artisans, to those whi
were really able to help themselves if shown the way. But his motto of
" Self-help" was an unmeaning gospel to the vast class of people who
were not in this happy position. As we shall later see, Lassalle de-
tected this vulnerable point in his rival's armour, and made the best
of his advantage. The movement neared a turning point in 1858.
In that year Schulze identified himself with the capitalist party at a
congress of German economists, held at Gotha, and he soon began to
lose favour with the popular classes. The high-water mark was
reached in l86o, at which time the co-operative associations had a
membership of 200,000, and the business done amounted to 40,000,000
thalers or about ;£6,ooo,ooo ; the capital raised by contribution or
loan approaching a third of this sum. In the year 1864 no fewer than
800 Loan and Credit Associations had been established, v/hile in 1861
the number of Raw Material and Productive Associations was 172, and
that of Co-operative Stores 66. Possibly the movement might have
continued to prosper, even though Schulze was suspected of sympathy
with the capitalists, had no rival appeared on the scene. But a rival
did appear, and he was none other than Lassalle. Lassalle began by
warmly acknowledging the beneficent services which Schulze had
rendered to his fellow-men, and he ended by vilifying the philanthro-
pist — for such Schulze undoubtedly was — in one of the most rancorous
t3^ German SociatisM.
works ever penned.^ Schulze might have known that he was no
rtiatch for the brilliant intellect of a man like Lassalle, but he defied
the lightning and suffered for his temerity.
We are now nearing the eventful inauguration of an association
whose appearance heralded the birth of the German Social-Democra-
tic movement. At the time already reached there were three great
parties in Germany, the Conservative or Reactionary, the National
Liberal, and the Democratic party. ' The Conservatives formed the
Great German party, which desired the retention of Austria in the
Federal union, while the Liberals constituted a Small German party,
whose aims were the unity of Germany under Prussian hegemony and
the exclusion of Austria. These parties rallied round associations
known as the Grossdeutscher Verein,^ and the Deutscher National-
Verein.^ The Democratic or working-men's party was alone without
organisation. Of the existing associations it was naturally more in
sympathy with the National than the Great German, but that body
was under the influence of the middle and higher classes, and it re-
fused to admit working-men save as honorary members. In 1861,
however, the Progressist party was formed, and it drew into its ranks a
large number of Democrats who had held aloof from the Liberal
party. For a time Lassalle identified himself with the Progressists,
but his claims to recognition were so completely ignored that he fin-
ally withdrew, and henceforth became a violent opponent of the party.
The Progressists formed, however, in 1862, by far the strongest and
most vigorous party in the country, and all the large towns were in
their hands. There is no telling how long the working class party
might have been without its desired organisation had not the Leipzig
1 "Herr Bastiat-Schulze von DelUzsch: der okonomische Julian, oder Kapital und Ar-
beit," (Berlin, 1864).
2 The Grossdeutscke /'ar^w existed from 1848 to 1866.
8 The Deuischer Naiionalverein was formed in 1859 with its seat at Coburg. It was dis-
solved in autumn 1867 at Frankfort. In 1861, during the Conilict Time in Prussia, the advanced
wing of the Liberal Party seceded and formed the Fortschrittspartei or Progressists. A split
occurred in the latter party in 1866, and the seceding members formed themselves into the
moderate National Liberal party. Finally the Fortsckrittspartei disappeared ^s to name,
being merged into a new Freisimiige Cartel, According to the official election returns for
1887 the parties now represented in the German Reichstag are the German Conservatives ;
the German Imperial Party or Free Conservatives ; National Liberals ; Centre (Clerical and
Ultramontane) ; Poles ; Social-Democrats ; Guelphs ; Alsacers ; and Danes. The VolksfartH
was swept out of existence during the last phenomenal elections.
Organisation of the Working Classes. 139
Working Men's Association ^ resolved to take the lead. A Committee
was appointed to take steps for the establishment of a Working Men's
Association for all Germany. The first meeting was held in Berlin in
October, 1862, but utter confusion existed in the minds of all the dele-
gates as to the purposes and programme of the organisation to be
formed. One party was in favour of a non-political platform, and an-
other wished the association to be an appendage of the Progressist party.
At this juncture, when the Committee was sorely in need of
advice, a man came forward — a very deus ex machind — who, better
than any one else, was able to set it on the right path. This was
Ferdinand Lassalle. Lassalle, as we have seen, had on April 1 2th,
i86z — which has been called the birthday of German Social-Demo-
cracy — addressed a Trade Association in Berlin, and the address had
been published with the title " Arbeiterprogramm." This brochure
came to the notice of the Leipzig Committee, which in February, 1863,
invited Lassalle to explain his views. He did not hesitate to comply
with the request. He felt that the time for silence had passed, and
that he must now speak out. Many friends advised him to keep quiet
if he loved peace, and even those who saw the expediency of action
refused to give encouragement out of regard for his happiness. Las-
salle once referred to the importunities of his well-wishers as follows :
" I answered all this with old Luther. ' Here 1 stand, I can do no
other : God help me, amen.' And if 1 had at that moment been
morally dead and were to have been physically torn into seventy-seven
pieces, I could not have done otherwise."
Theory, he felt, was of no value without practice, and his resolution
was that he would enter the fray " even if it cost his 'head three and
thirty times." This was early in February, at which time he was
engaged with his friend Ziegler on the outlines of a workman's
insurance scheme, which was at once thrown aside.
Lassalle placed his views before the Leipzig Committee in the form
of an " Open Reply Letter."^ In this letter, the doctrines propounded
1 This association was founded and for many years directed by Professor E. A. Rossmas-
sler a warm friend of the working classes. He was horn March 3rd, 1806, and died April 8th,
1867, his last words, like those of Saint-Simon, breathing devotion to the cause of social re-
form. An interesting autobiography was posthumously published bearing the title " Mein
Leben und Streben im Verkehr mit der Natur und dem Volke," (Hanover, 1874).
s Published with the title " Offenes Antwortschreiben an das Central-Comiti zur Berufung
eines Allgemeinen Deutschen Arbeiter-Congresses zu Leipzig."
t4d Gefman Sociatisni.
in which will call for notice later, he advanced a new programme as
attractive as it was revolutionary. Hitherto the Committee had been
floundering about in a bog of commonplace proposals for social reform)
few of which could help in the construction of a popular platform for
agitation. When Lassalle read in the newspapers that it had been
discussing free migration and free choice of vocations he " smiled
sadly," as he says, and he quotes a distich from Schiller for the
benefit of these men who were debating questions " more than fifty
years too late'' : —
" Jahre lang schon bedien' ich mich meine Nase zum Riechen,
Aber hab' ich an sie auch ein erweislickes Reckt ? " 1
Why need they trouble their heads about free migration and free
exercise of crafts ? These were things which Legislatures now decreed
in silence ; they no longer required debate. Then, again, a part of
the Committee wished to establish savings banks, relief funds, and co-
operative stores, but Lassalle answered that plans of this kind did not
go below the surface of the social question. They were like the
paddle of the steamship, agitating the face of the water but leaving
the depths untouched. The kernel of the problem Lassalle saw in
the " iron economic law,'' established by Ricardo, that " the average
wages of labour always remain reduced to the necessary subsistence
which is, conformably with the prevailing standard of life of a nation,
requisite to the prolongation of existence and the propagation of the
species." ^ Of what good, he asked, were Schulze's self-help associa-
tions to people who were barely able to live ? Credit and raw
material societies were all very well for small tradesmen, who were
not without capital, but to the great bulk of the labouring class they
were a mockery. Even the small industry would only be able for a
t'me to compete with its great rival, capitalism. Similarly, the co-
operative associations were inadequate, for it was not as consumers
but producers that the working classes suffered. " As consumers we
are in general all equal already. As before the gendarmes, so also
before the sellers, all men are equal — if they only pay." There was only
one solution of the difficulty : the labourer must be his own prod iicer.
1 " For years I have used my nose, true, for smelling.
But have I in it a demonstrable right ? "
2 <' Offenes Antwortschreiben," p. 13, znApassim in Lassalle's works.
Organisation of the Working Classes. 141
The working classes must be organised into Productive Associations
and the State must provide the necessary capital. Thus alone would
the' produce of labour fall to its' rightful owner, the producer. But
how to bring the State over to such a p'an ? Easily done, answered
Lassalle. "The working classes must constitute themselves an in-
dependent political party and must make universal, equal, and direct
suffrage their watchword. The representation of the working classes
in the legislative bodies of Germany — that alone can satisfy their
legitimate interests in a political sense."i Let them acquire their
rightful legislative power, and they would soon be able to give effect to
their will.
The publication of the Letter produced a great sensation, and a
majority of the Committee adopted it with enthusiasm. It was the-
first time any definite project had been laid before them, and light
began to spring out of darkness. Although Lassalle had once pre-
dicted that his Letter would have the same effect as the publication of
the theses by Luther, he had not been without grave anxiety as to its
reception by the masses. " Perhaps," he said, " the working classes
in general are not ready, and in that case I am certainly a dead man."
The moderate leaders of the labour party were, it is true, shocked, and
men like Rossmassler^ threw themselves into the arms of the Pro-
gressist party, but on the whole Lassalle had good cause to be satisfied
with the result of his hardihood. And now began a long and severe
rivalry between two movements — that of Lassalle, based on the prin-
ciple of State-help ; and that of Schulze, who adhered still to his
motto of self-help. F. A. Lange^ has well compared these remarkable
men to two great millstones grinding one another. Apart from the
inherent strength of the causes, every advantage appeared to be on the
side of Schulze, who had at his back the entire Progressist party, in
whose hands were nearly all the important newspapers in the country.
1 " Offenes Antwortschreiben."
2 Otto Dammer writes to Lassalle, March 26th : " Rossmassler is furious that you attack the
Progressist party." Rossm&sler had issued, during the time the Committee had been de-
liberating, an address to the working classes (" Ein Wort an die deutschen Arbeiter," Berlin^
1863, though the introduction is (^ated December 10, 1862), in which he sought to spur them
to self-improvement.
S "Die Arbeiterfrage, ihre Bedeutung fiir Gegenwart und Zukunft" (and edition, Winter-
thur, 1870). Friediich Albert Lange, philosopher and political economist, was bom September
a8th, 1828, near Solingen. Was professor at Zuriqh and Warburg. Died at the latter place,
tfpvember 23rd, 1875
142 German Socialism.
Both party and Press entered into a conspiracy of silence, and it was
some time before Lassalle's agitation was openly recognised as a fact
deserving of serious treatment. Schulze had further the inestimable
advantage of priority. His name had already become a household
word in a large paft of Prussia, and it was also known in other States,
while Lassalle was a comparative stranger to the working classes, save
in the Rhine Province. At the outset of the struggle, Lassalle was
generous in his treatment of his opponent, of whom he said :
" He is the only member of his party, the Progressist party — and
this is therefore all the more to his praise — who has done anything for
the people. Through his indefatigable energy he became, though
standing alone and living in the most depressed times, the father and
founder of the German co-operative system, and he has liius given an
impulse to the cause of association having far-reaching results— a
merit for which, though differing widely from him theoretically, I in
spirit warmly shake his hand." Liberal praise like this only brings
into more painful relief the abuse and undignified scoff which Lassalle
at a later stage of his agitation heaped upon a rival who was earlier
in the field than himself, and whose motives were certainly not less
disinterested than his own.
The Leipzig Committee, meanwhile, found itself upon the horns of
a dilemma. It had to choose whom it would serve : Lassalle or
Schulze — Lassalle with his Productive Associations or Schulze with
Co-operation. The former was invited to address a working-men's
meeting at Leipzig, and this he did on April i6th, 1863, traversing
again the ground covered in the " Open Letter." "^ On this occasion
he was able to announce that his State Socialism had won the approval
of Professor Wuttke,^ of Leipzig, and of Lothar Bucher.^ In ordei
to bring matters to a climax, the Committee finally invited both
Lassalle and Schulze to speak before a congress of working-men at
1 The address was publislied with the title, " Zur Arbeiterfrage."
2 Heinrich Wuttlce, historian, born February 12th, 1818, at Brieg. Was a member of the
Frankfort Parliament. Became professor at Leipzig, and as such died Jane 14th, 1876.
3 Lothar Bucher, bom October 25th, 1817, at Neustettin, jurist and author. Became in
1848 a member of the Prussian National Assembly, and in 1850 had to leave the country on
account of his association with the no-taxation resolutions. He lived in London for some
time as a journalist, and returned to Berlin in 1856. His great abilities caused Bismarck to
call him to the Foreign Office in ^864, and he has since served the State. He used to be called
" Bismarck's right haq^"
Organisation of the Working Classes. 143
Frankfort-on-Main on May 17th. They were to have publicly dis-
puted, like Luther and Eck at Leipzig, but excusing himself on the
plea of Parliamentary duties, Schulze did not respond to the invita-
tion. Lassalle had thus to contend with opponents who were leader-
less, and victory was easily won. Thirteen hundred delegates of
Working Men's Associations were present, and the proceedings lasted
two days. Lassalle delivered two addresses '^ and these were warmly
debated. That he attributed great importance to the decision which
was to be come to is shown by the concluding words of the second
day's address. " If you vote against me," he said, " if the great"
majority of the German working class vote against me, then I shall
say to Herr Schulze : ' You are right — these people are not yet
advanced enough to be helped.' If I thought only of myself and my
natural egoism, I should be compelled to desire ardently that you
would decide against me ; for if you, and not only you, but the great
majority of the German working class, were to do that, I should —
justified in the eyes of science and certain of being justified by his-
tory — withdraw quietly to science ; I should, with a sad smile at your
unreadiness, stretch myself out perhaps in the Gulf of Naples, and let
the soft breezes of the South blow over me ; I should spare myself a
life full of torment, exertion, vexation, and worry. Thus your decision
would be exceedingly easy to bear. But you would lose one of the
best friends of your class, and you would not only lose me, but per-
haps for decades every one wishful to help you would be frightened.
He would say to himself : ' This class is not ready; let me be warned
by the example of Lassalle.' Therefore I tell you, by all the love for
the cause of the working classes which I bear in me, my whole soul
hangs on your decision."
Lassalle conquered. On May 19th a vote was taken, and after
forty delegates had left the hall with a cheer for Schulze-Delitzsch, the
programme of Productive Associations and universal suffrage was
adopted by four hundred votes to one. Lassalle had reached a turning-
point in his life. Henceforth he was to stand out the head of the
democratic movement in Germany. The task which he had under-
taken — that of converting the working classes to views for the. accept-
ance of which they had had little preparation — seemed, and indeed
ivas, a formidable one, and a man not endowed with an indomitable
1 Published with th« tit's, " Arbeiterl^ebnchi"
144 German Socialism.
will, and a confidence which no power could shake, would have con-
templated the inevitable struggle with fear and trembling. In reality
Lassalle's prospects of success seemed slight. A large part of the
working class, won over to the Progressist party, was hostile to him, ,
and all the forces of wealth and influence were ranged in antagonism.
He was a Joshua whose way into the land of promise offered to his
followers was blocked by the Canaanites, Amorites, Jebusites,: Hit-
tites, Hivites, Perizzites, and Girgashites of rank, capitalism, wealth,
politics, science, the law, and the police. Could he overcome this great
coalition ? Lassalle believed he could, and said he would. How far
his assurance was justified will appear later. The first step was the
formation of a Working Men's Association which should act as a lever
for agitation. His friends proposed to call it the " German " Associa-
tion. Lassalle objected : it should be called the " Universal German,"
and so with the title, "AUgemeiner Deutscher Arbeiterverein," the
organisation was founded. The statutes were adopted on May 23rd,
1863, the first section running as follows : — " With the name Universal
German Working Men's Association the undersigned found for the
German Federal States an association which, proceeding from the
conviction that the adequate representation of the social interests of
the German working classes and the real removal of class antagonism
in society can alone be secured by universal, equal, and direct su&age,
has as its purpose the acquisition of such suffrage by peaceable and
legal means, and particularly by gaining over public opinion." All
German working-men were to be eligible for membership on a
nominal payment. Agents were to be appointed in all important
towns, and Lassalle was to be the president for five years. The dura-
tion of the Association was provisionally fixed at thirty years. The
initial membership was six hundred, representing a dozen large towns.
CHAPTER VII.
THE PRODUCTIVE ASSOCIATION.
When Lassalle entered the social and political arena as agitator and
reformer, one of the first things he did was to seek the co-operation of
Karl Rodbertus, who was his senior in years, and greatly his superior
as a political economist. ^^ That he had a very high opinion of the
Pomeranian landowner and sage is shown by many passages in an
extensive correspondence. From Rodbertus his mind, indeed, received
important and beneficial stimulus, and he meant all he said when he
wrote, " Intellectual intercourse with a man like you, is amongst the
pleasantest things wherewith one can at present refresh himself." ^ He
tells Rodbertus at another time, " You cannot form an adequate idea
of the weight which I attach to your views,"* and even when differing
from his friend on crucial principles, he says he will weigh all
criticism " as carefully and painfully " as he thinks out his own writ-
ings. The two men had as economists very much in common and
took naturally to each other. Lassalle goes so far as to say, " We
appear in mind to have come into the world like Siamese twins,'' and
this statement hardly involves an exaggeration.
LassaUe thought that with Rodbertus at his side his agitation
would be sure to carry all before it. Unfortunately, however, for his
hopes, it was impossible to induce Achilles to don his armour. For
the attitude of reserve which Rodbertus, in spite of urgent entreaty and
1 One of the best works bearing upon the Socialist movement in Germany is R. Meyer's
" Der Emancipationskampf des vierten Standes," (2 vols., Berlin, 1874). This work contains
a vast amount of information, but it suffers from bad arrangement. Meyer's economic
studies have led him to introduce the principle of the division of labour into the writing of this
history, for while he ha^Vcollected an enormous quantity of facts his readers are expected to
help him in the assortment of them. Still the work is very painstaking. There may also be
mentioned F. Mehring's " Die deutsche Socialdemokratie," already spoken of ; J. E. Joerg's
" Geschichte der social-politischen Parteien in Deutschland," (Freiburg im Breisgau, 1867);
Dr. G. Adler's "Geschichte der ersten sozialpolitischen Arbeiterbewegung in Deutschland"
(Breslau, 1885) ; and Dr. Eugen JSger's " Der modeme Socialismus," (Berlin, 1873). The
fullest account of Lassalle's agitation is contained in Bemhard Becker's " Geschichte der
Arbeiteragitation Ferdinand Lassalle's," (Brunswick, 1874).
2 Letter of February 17th, 1863. 3 Letter of June s6th, 1863.
K
146 Gei'inan Socialism.
of an importunity which at last becomes almost amusing, persisted in
maintaining, there were two cogent reasons. In the first place, he was a
man whose retiring disposition became a stronger trait in his character
the older he grew. At the time of Lassalle's appearance as a popular
leader he had long passed the prime of life. The attention which had
in younger years been divided between politics and science, was now
concentrated upon his favourite study, political economy. For public
activity, he had no incUnation whatever. He was essentially a
student, and he rightly felt that his proper sphere was the study and
not the platform. But even if Rodbertus had been willing to share in
the bustle and tumult' of agitation, there was another obstacle in the
way of co-operation in the new movement, and this was insuperable
He did not think Lassalle's programme was a practical one. He has
referred to this disagreement as follows : —
" I had to decline participation in Lassalle's agitation since we could
not agree on the two principal ends of the agitation, (i.) Lassalle
wished to improve the condition of the working classes by means of a
universal system of Productive Associations. I, on the other hand, .
wished to retain the wages principle, though, of course, to have it re-
formed by the State. (2.) Lassalle wished to make the Socialist party
at the same time a political party. I wished it to remain an entirely
economic party. Lassalle made the formation of a political party a
sine qua non of association with him. His reasons were the following.
The working-men had already become under Schulze-Delitzsch a
political party, but a party misguided economically. They could only
be rescued from this economic misguidance by increased political
agitation. Thence, the demand for universal suffrage, to which the
Free Trade democracy had already become much inclined."^
When one considers the standpoints taken up by these two men,
who, though holding views so similar in theory, differed radically in
the practical application of them, it is impossible to come to any other
conclusion than that both were right. It was manifestly too much to
expect that Rodbertus would pin his faith to the Productive Associa-
tions, when that would mean the abandonment of projects of social
reform which he had spent the best years of his life in perfecting. But
putting this aspect of the question aside, Rodbertus was fully persuaded
1 " Briefe von Ferdinand Lassalle an Karl Rodbertus- Jagetzow," (^erlin, 1878). See intro-
duction by ^dolph Wagner, pp. 2-^
The Productive Association. 147
in his own mind that the Productive Associations would fail to do any
good. Lassalle had, on the other hand, great, though not complete,
confidence in his own plan, and when Rodbertus hints that the key of
the difficulty is to adjust production to consumption, he triumphantly
exclaims that this is just what the Productive Associations will do.
" For," says he, " it can hardly be doubted that if they were estabUshed
on a large scale with the aid of State credit, an entire branch of pro-
duction would in a short time combine m one Association — or in very
few. This branch Association would have, in its business books, the best
statistical information as to consumption. The competition leading to
over-production could only exert an effect — and that would be vastly
diminished — ^from abroad. Eventually over-production would not in
reality be over-production, but production in advance, since these
Associations with their enormous credit would not be compelled to sell
out, and it is this which alone converts excess of production, from pro-
duction in advance into over-production."^ While, however, Lassalle
was so devoted to his Productive Associations he expressed willingness
to abandon them in favour of a good substitute. " If you will show
me an equally efficient remedy," he writes to Rodbertus, " I am quite
ready to accept it. I have only proposed the Association provisionally,
because I see at present no remedy which would be at once so compa-
ratively easy and so efficient. Working-men must, however, have some-
thing quite definite, something that can be grasped, and not a general
law, if they are to become interested." And again he writes, " Only
because the working classes — and very properly — like to see some-
where a how and where, have I proposed the Association with State
ihelp."
It was this argument that influenced him when he resolved to
give to his agitation a distinctly political character. Here, again,
Rodbertus was obdurate. To use his own words, he could " tolerate
no political agitation which would excite the working classes against
the existing Executive Power," an expression which well shows how
purely scientific his Socialistic standpoint was, and how far he was —
however sweeping his proposals — ^from desiring to see social reform
confounded with social confusion. Lassalle refused to divorce the
political and social elements of his movement. " Both are,' he said,
'' as necessarily dependent as form and substance, and either isolated
} Letter of April 22ndj 1863,
148 German Socialism.
would be powerless." When Rodbertus apprehended that if great
weight were attached to the political side of the question, the economic
side would be neglected, he only replied, " L'homme a deux bras, as
Victor Hugo says, and I think you will find that it is the right arm which
I have, in spite of all, reserved for economics." And, further, "Without
universal suffrage, that is, a practical handle by which to realise our
claims, we may be a philosophical school, or a religious sect, but never
a political party. Thus it appears to me that universal suffrage
belongs to our social demands as the handle to the axe."i Lassalle
knew, in fact, that abstract doctrines of political economy would fail
to touch the sympathies of the masses. They could furnish no efiScient
basis for agitation, and he was an agitator. He saw that it would
be useless to attempt to rouse the working classes by the statement
of theories or even hard facts, as that they did not receive their proper
share of the produce of labour and that the capitalist appropriated
more than was by right his own. Some tangible proposal was neces-
sary — a proposal simple yet all-sufficient and going to the root of the
matter — and with this proposal there must be shown the way of
realising it. Thus it was that he came to advocate the Productive
Association as an end and universal suffrage as a means to this end.
Yet he never pretended that even the Productive Associations would
of themselves solve the whole social problem. At the best they were
a transitional measure. Indeed, in the " Open Reply Letter " he
expressly omits reference to the social problem and its solution,
regarding his immediate proposals as calculated only to improve the
condition of the working class. The final solution, the supplanting of
the present form cf personal property, might require for its accom-
plishment five hundred years.'' Nevertheless, the Associations would
pave the way for further progress. There could be little hope of con-
ciliating views so divergent as were those of Lassalle and Rodbertus.
Even Lassalle's appeal to his friend's sense of duty produced no effect :
" It would not be right if I were left alone. I have only five fingers
on each hand and already everyone of them has too much to do. . .
Why should you not speak, who above all others are called on to do
so ? The negotiations were continued for a long time with forbear-
ance and gallantry on both sides, but they ended as they began,
1 Letter of April 30th, 1863.
% f^ftt^s to Kodbertus, April sStli and May 26th, t$63.
The Productive Association. 149
Rodbertus decided to stand aloof from the agitation,' and Lassalle
had to take the field alone.
Lassalle well knew the importance of making a good beginning, and
he at once threw the whole of his marvellous energy into the work of
agitation and organisation. His hopes were built on an Association
having a membership of more than a hundred thousand and an
agitation fund of 450,000 marks (;£22,5oo) yearly. " That," he wrote
to a friend, " wouid he a power." The great opponent of the Univer-
sal was the National Association, which professed to have twenty
thousand members, but Lassalle said frankly, " We must have severi'>
times more members than the National Association or we shall have
suffered a ridiculous shipwreck." Before the Universal was formally
constituted, therefore, he was at work on the platform and in the
study. He was a puzzle to many people — to friends who afterwards
became enemies and to enemies who became friends. Faucher,'' the
Free Trade economist, said he knew nothing about political economy ;
Max Wirth^ declared that his " iron law of wages " had long been
controverted ; and more than one Working Men's Association found
him a mere tool of the reaction. In spite, however, of calumny on
the one hand, and, what was far more damaging, mistrust on the other,
he refused to be daunted, and by April 22nd he was able to inform
Rodbertus that besides Leipzig, Hamburg, Diisseldorf, Solingen, and
Elberfeld, the Provincial Assembly at Cologne had come over to his
side. With pride and satisfaction he could write, " I knew that
Rhineland would not leave me in the lurch." The tenacity with which
he kept to his purpose is well shown in another letter to the same
friend, written on April 28th. At that time the Press was closed to
him, for he was still regarded as une quantiti nigligedble in public
affairs. Lassalle greatly felt the need of publicity, and it was probably
1 While the negotiations were going on Rodbertus consented to address an " Open Letter "
to the Leip^g Committee and tUs was published. This was his only contribution to the
agitation. Yet even up to the end of 1863 Lassalle refused to regard Rodbertus as lost to his
cause. " Tell me especially," he writes to Rodbertus, " everything that can be of service to
our cause ; I call it such with right, although you continue to be a sleeping partner, not
having entered the Association."
S Julius Faucher, bom June Z3th, zSao, in Berlin, was an ardent champion of Free Trade,
He belonged to the Progressist party and sat in the Prussian Lower House. Died June isth,
1878, in Rome.
S Max Wirth did a great deal to introduce Trade Unions into Germany. He studied the
working of these organisations in £ngland.
IJO G erf Han Socialisin.
the shabby treatment received at this time which ehvenomed his later
referenciss to newspapers and their conductors. Now, as he stood at
the threshold of his agitation, this attitude of indifference and silence
angered him beyond measure, and he determined to adopt means
which would break down the passive opposition. In the Frankfort
meeting, called for May 17th, he saw the possibility of effecting his
design. He writes to Rodbertus :
" You are quite right in saying that such disputes settle nothing.
But this time I need one. After the way in which the Berlin Press
has made use of the working-man comedy here, and in view of the
fact that we have no organ in which to say a word, I require a great
Mat, by which to compel the bourgeois'^ Press itself to serve me.
For that reason I musi go and win. I neeci to do it. The people
there are all against me and have invited me out of mere courtesy.
But I will leave no stone unturned ; I will shake my old revolutionary
mane ; and it will go hard if I do not triumph." In the same letter
he says that the correspondence which he is compelled to keep up
with followers in all parts is enough to kill him. Everything has to
be done in breathless haste, and he has not even time to' think..
Early in May he could report with jubilation, " The movement is-
1 It is here desirable to understand what Lassalle means by bourgeois. " In the German,
language the word bourgeoisie would be rendered B'U/rgerthum. But it has not this meaning"
with me. We are all Burger (citizens), the'working-man, the KleinbHrger (.5ma\\ citizen),
the GrossbHrger fereat citizen), &c. The word bourgeoisie has in the course of history come-
to signify a definite political direction. The entire non-noble citizen class fell when the
French Kevolution took place, and falls to-day, into two under classes, viz., the class of
those who draw their income wholly or principally from their labour, and are supported by '
no capital or a very moderate amount, which allows them to exercise a productive activity
that maintains themselves and their families: to this class belong the labourers, the small'
citizens, the artisans, and on the whole the peasantry. There is then the class of those who"
have at disposal a large civil possession, who have a large capital and on the strength of it-
can either produce or draw income in rente. These may be called the Grossbilrger. But a,
Grossburger is by no means a bourgeois. . . 'When the Grossbiirger, not satisfied with the ■
actual pleasantness of a great possession, this civil possession capital, demands further, as a^
condition of its possession, that he shall be given a share in the ruling of the State, in the'
determining of the will and purpose of the State, then only does he become a bourgeois for
then he makes the fact of possession a legal condition of political authority, characterises ■
himself as one of a new privileged class in the nation, which will impress the stamp of its"
privilege upon all social institutions just as much as the nobility with the privilege of land-
ownership did in the Middle Ages." Arbeiterprogramm (Chicago edition of 187a), pp,
10, ».
Liebknecht renders bourgeoisie by "middle-class," but the term is so distinctive that 1 havt*
always adhered to it when taking it from the mouths or writings of others.
The Productive Association. 1 5 1
growing, growing, growing." Even the Press was beginning to break
silence, and ten journals had declared for the cause, including the
.reactionary Kreuz-Zeitung and the Norddeutsche Allgemeine Zeituiig.
"All would be very beautiful if the burden of work did not oppress
me." Then, too, he was badgered on all hands by his enemies. " I
have the whole mob on my neck as a wild boar the hounds," he writes
from Berlin on May nth, "but at Frankfort I shall shake myself
rather unpleasantly." He attended the Frankfort congress accord-
ingly, and the formation of the Universal Association followed.
" Frankfort is ours," he writes at the end of May, " Mayence as well,
and Hanau will be ours very soon." At Frankfort, as we have seen,
the voting was four hundred to one, and at Mayence it was eight
hundred to two. On May 26th he writes to Rodbertus :
" The first act has been brought to a triumphant close. The second
now begins, the numbering or rather the enlistment of members for
the Association."
That LassaUe found it no light task to pilot the Association aright,
and to keep its officials in order, will easily be imagined. He had
himself a thorough knowledge of his mission, but this can hardly be
said of those who worked alongside of him. The statutes of the As-
sociation had placed great power in the hands of the president, and it
was not seldom that a mild form of despotism had to be resorted to,
in order to prevent the disorder that always arises from the clash of
different opinions. Oftentimes he found himself in the position of
Johnson, and had to confess that although he could furnish his
opponents with arguments, he could not supplement their intelligence ;
but now and then he had to take up a bolder attitude, as when he
exclaimed, " If you are not convinced I shall simply call ' Discipline ;'
there must only be one will." But his rare skill as an administrator
none could question, and his assiduity and energy even his enemies
did not hesitate to recognise. The president worked in Berlin, and
the secretary in Leipzig, the seat of the Association, and for several
months a torrent of pamphlets, circulars, and letters poured ovei
Germany. Nor was literary help wanting from many men who were
not able to take part in the agitation publicly. Thus Bernhard Becker^
published a pamphlet justifying LassaUe against the attacks of
- 1 Becker was the son of a Thuringian land-owner. He studied philosophy and political
economy at more than one university, and is said to have been characterised as a student by
extreme Radical tendencies. He lived some time in Switzerland, and visited England bctpx
l$i German Socialisnt.
his detractors.'- Moses Hess, a tried Socialist, issued another on
" The right to work," and Jean Baptista von Schweitzer,^ a Frankfort
advocate, wrote a social novel with the title " Lucinde," which he
dedicated to Lassalle. The poet Herwegh also contributed a demo-
cratic song, which Hans von Biilow at Lassalle's request set to music.
Better than all, Rodbertus was persuaded to write an " Open Letter"
to the Leipzig Committee, which Lassalle published with amend-
ments.* In this letter the Jagetzow Socialist commended the As-
sociation for standing aloof from Schulze's co-operative scheme, and
endorsed Lassalle's statement of the " iron law." If the working
classes, he said, failed to participate in the increasing productivity, it
was clear that others must be benefiting at their expense, and thus
that the extremes of wealth and poverty must be widening. It was
not the increase in the national wealth, or the possibility afforded to
the moneyed classes of the more liberal satisfaction of their wants, that
was a danger to the nation : the danger lay in the unequal distribution
of the produce, which led to discord in social relationships. " Look
at our circumstances in general," he said ; "has the difference in the
incomes of the various classes of society become greater or less since
we have possessed machinery and railways, and since productivity
and production have increased so remarkably ? The answer cannot
be doubtful. Or look at things more particularly, and ask the older
ones among you whether wages — real wages — have in their native
countries or towns increased during the last forty years as rent, or
what is the same thing, the value of land, and the capital of the coun-
try have increased ? " No, he answered, for wages were still pressed
participatioa in the democratic movements of 1848 converted him into a political refugee. He
returned to Germany about the year i860. Becker has written a large number of works:
apart from those dealing with Lassalle and his agitation, the chief are " Die deutsche Bewe-
gung von 1848 nnd die gegenwartige " (Berlin, 1864) ; " Geschichte und Theorie der Pariser
revolutionaren Komraune des Jahres 1871 " (Leipzig, 1879) ; " Die Reaktion in Deutschland
gegen die Revolution von 1848 " (Vienna, 1869) ; and " Der Missbrauch der Nationalitats-
lehre" (Vienna, 1867).
1 "Lassalle und seine Verkleinerer."
2 Jean Baptista von Schweitzer, bom July 12th, 1S34, at Frankfort-on-Main, By profes-
sion an advocate, known better as a Socialist agitator and a writer of comedies. Sat in the
Reichstag. Died July zSth, 1875, at Giessbach.
8 Rodbertus in this " Offener Brief an das Comit^ des Deutschen Arbeitervereins zu
Leipzig " said that he did not expect from the Productive Association even the slightest con.
tribution to the solution of the social problem, but Lassalle struck this out, and then begged
for pardon.
The Productive Association. 153
down to the cost of living, and the labourer was kept from his due
share in the produce. Rodbertus warned the Association against
political agitation, which he prophesied would fail. The programme
of universal suffrage would make all German Governments their
enemies — and yet they relied on the State to help them ! The
" Open Letter," in spite of its encouraging words, contained some un-
palatable truths, yet, coming from such an authority, Lassalle knew
better than to ignore it, and so it was published at once.
At the end of June Lassalle was compelled to recruit his strength in
Switzerland, and he remained absent from the scene of agitation until
September. Bemhard Becker,^ whom Lassalle, just before his death,
nominated his successor in the presidency of the Association, and
who made up for excess of adulation during his leader's life by a
singular display of venom on his decease, sneers at Lassalle for going
away at this time, and says he showed a " love of pleasure " which
proved that " his person went before his cause." But letters written
by Lassalle during the second quarter of the year show him to have
been absolutely exhausted by work. He was ill even when the ac-
clamation of the Frankfort congress proclaimed him the chosen de-
mocratic leader in May, and he speaks of himself more than once as
being "weary to death." What he had already gone through that
year would, indeed, have brought far stronger men to the ground. He
had done a large amount of literary work, and had organised a great
agitation, addressing numerous meetings — often stormy and always
excited — attending conferences, carrying on an extensive correspond-
ence, and managing the entire affairs of an organisation whose influ-
ence extended to all parts of Germany. In addition to this, he had been
embroiled in police prosecutions, which, however indifferent he may
have been to fiem on the score of personal consequences, caused him
worry and vexation. During his absence from Berlin, however, he
by no means abandoned his work as president. From his Swiss re-
treat he directed the movements of his siibordinates, and that with as
much decision and success as though he had been on the spot.
The Association did not make the progress which Lassalle had
expected. In August, when it had existed a quarter of a year, the
members only numbered between nine hundred and a thousand,
1 "Geschichte der Arbeiteragitation Ferdinand Lassalles. Nach authentischen Akten
stUcken " (Brunswick, 1874)
t|4 German SociaUsiH.
Hamburg and Harburg having together 230, Elberfeld 223, and
Leipzig 150, while Berlin had only 20. Lassalle had already shown
that he was discouraged, but he urged his followers to fresh energy.
We find him writing on July i8th
" Unless the agitation seizes hold of the masses of the working
classes, do what we may all will be lost. If at the expiration of a year
at the latest we are not able to secure large numbers, we shall be quite
impotent, however many moral victories we may have won."
Nevertheless, he would not consent to a false representation of the
position of the Association, and when an official hints at it he
replies sharply :
" You must not allow our agents to tell untruths. You cannot ask
them to speak of 10,000 members when we have perhaps only 1000.
We can be silent on the point, but lying is not the thing for us."
In August he was so disheartened that he wrote to his secretary
Vahlteichi :
" So there are about 1000 members in our entire Association ! And
this is at present the fruit of our work 1 This is the result for which
I have worn my fingers through and talked my lungs out. This
apathy of the masses is enough to drive one to despair, is it not ?
Such indifference towards a movement which is solely for them, solely
in their interest ! — and notwithstanding the enormous resources of
agitation — in an intellectual respect — which have already been ex-
pended, and which with a nation like the French would already have
produced vast results ! When will this dull people shake off its
lethargy ? "
Still, he would not abandon hope, and when Vahlteich suggests the
dissolution of the Association he replies : " Quite impossible ! The
shame for our nation and party would be too great." Whatever
happened he would ' continue until spring or summer. " Only cou-
rage ! " he adds.
Lassalle had promised to return in October, and then " reopen the
campaign against the Progressists with redoubled energy." ^ He was,
however, back in September full of a great plan upon which he relied
for the creation of a new and intenser enthusiasm amongst the
1 Karl Julius Vahlteich, born December 30th, 1839, at Leipzig. Originally a shoemaker,
but later a journalist. He became a prominent Socialist member of the German Reichstag.
2 Letter to Rodbertus, Jime z4th* 1863.
The Productive Association. i55
working classes. He would review his forces on the Rhine. To the
Rhine he therefore went, and addressed great meetings at Barmen
{September 20th), Solingen (27th), and Dusseldorf (28th). The
address ^ was one of his greatest, if not his greatest, as an agitator.
The rhetoric was enchanting, the fire and passion overwhelming, the ,
pathos which appeared here and there irresistible. La,ssalle seemed
'to grow in strength in proportion as the difficulty of his task increased.
The Solingen meeting' was broken up, it would appear, unjustifiably,
by the Mayor of the town, and Lassalle, who was escorted to the post-'
office by a vast crowd of sympathisers, telegraphed at once to Minister
von Bismarck in Berlin calling for satisfaction. So characteristic is the
despatch that it would be a pity to omit it :
" Minister President von Bismarck, Berlin : Progressist Mayor, at
the head of ten gendarmes armed with bayonetted rifles, and several
policemen with drawn swords, has just dissolved without legal grounds
a working-men's meeting called by me. Vainly protested, appeahng
to the law on coalition. The people — five thousand in the great hall
of the Schiitzenhalle, several thousands more before the same — re-
strained with difficulty from acts of violence. Brought by gendarmes
and tens of thousands of people, who believed me to have been
arrested, to the telegraph office. Banner of the Elberfeld working-
men confiscated. I beg for most severe and most speedy judicial
satisfaction."
The appeal to Caesar was without effect, but Lassalle was a gainer
by the notoriety which the event gave him. The new ardour which he
liad gained during his retirement in Switzerland had told, and he re-
turned to Berlin in a jubilant mood. He could write to Rodbertus :
" I am delighted and of good cheer, glad, as Plato sings, ' in the
'presentiment of mastery,' and full of inner assurance."
And again :
" I can hardly tell you how favourably matters stand on the Rhine,
seven times better than I had hoped even in my boldest dreams. In
■all Saxony, too, in Hamburg and Frankfort, there is rapid progress.
I will now concentrate my strength on Berlin."
The task of winning Beriin over seemed an impossible one, but
• Lassalle loved difficulties. " Berlin must be mine," he wrote, " before
1 Published with the title " Die Feste, die Presse, nnd der Frankfurter Abgeordnetentag :
'drei Symptome des affentlichen Geistes."
t$6 German Sociatisnt.
six months are passed. I will invest it. Let me only have 200 work-
ng-men and I shall have 2000, and soon the whole of them."
Already he had prepared the way for operations by the circulation of
sixteen thousand copies of an "Address to the Working-men of
Berlin," in which he endeavoured to show that the Progressists were
unmanning the artisan, and also sought support for his Productive
Associations. Two principal factors played against Lassalle's prospects
of success in Berlin. The one, with which we have already become
acquainted, was the predominance of the Progressist party, which
controlled the Press, and the other was the hostility of the police. It
is not a little singular that Lassalle was perpetually being denounced
as a tool of the reaction, while at the same time the emissaries of
the law were ever dogging his steps and serving him with indict-
ments for high treason. Probably Lassalle, with his fondness for
comparison with Luther, thought of Worms and the devils which the
Reformer dared to molest him, as he began the work of subjugating
Berlin. His friends had said that he could " do absolutely nothing
there," but his answer was that the conquest of Berlin was now " the
most important thing " for him and the cause. All the hostility which
had been predicted was shown. The Progressist Press did its best to
stifle the movement, and the pohce, by compelling the owners of
assembly-rooms to refuse him admittance, by molesting members of
the Association, and by confiscating the agitator's published writings,
ably seconded the endeavours of the opposition party. On November
22nd, the police forced their way into a room in which Lassalle was
speaking and arrested him on a charge of high treason, based on the
publication of the " Address." He was, however, bailed out in three
days on providing sureties of £i,^o.'^ The " investment " of Berlin did
not succeed to the extent that was hoped, but good headway was
made, and at the end of December Lassalle was able to address not
only indulgent but enthusiastic audiences of working-men in the strong-
hold of the enemy.
It was now that Wilhelm Liebknecht, one of the principal leaders
of the German Social-Democratic party of to-day, joined the Uni-
versal Association, and the president congratulated himself on the
1 Becker in his " Geschichte " tliinks it necessary to say in a footnote that Lassalle is said
to have given the prison warders orders, on which account he is also said to have heen
threatened with the straight-jacket. The spitefulness of this man and his work is almost
incredible.
Tfie Productive Association. 1 57
acquisition of a valuable recruit. Thus ended the year 1863. The
agitation had only partially prospered, so far as its immediate
purpose was concerned, but it had given an incalculable impetus
to the democratic cause, and its author and only evangelist, Ferdi-
nand Lassalle, had become for the time the most famous public man
in Germany.
CHAPTER VIII.
FAILURE OF LASSALLE'S AGITATION.
During the winter of 1863-1864 Lassalle's time was divided between
the work of his Association and an extensive series of disputes with
law courts and official bodies. Beriihard Becker enumerates no fewer
than fifty-five documents of all kinds which were exchanged between
Lassalle and various legal and municipal authorities during this time.
Twice he was arrested in Berlin on account of the publication of
writings deemed to be treasonable, and his followers in that city had
hardly less unpleasant experience than himself, for the police were
determined to put a stop to their propagandism. The wonderful
energy of the man is shown by the fact that, in spite of a thousand
and one occurrences which would have rendered the average mind
incapable of the concentration necessary to thoughtful literary work,
he produced in January, 1864, a volume of nearly three hundred pages,
criticising the doctrines of Schulze-Delitzsch,' which he wrote in four
months. The work is not, however, one that helps Lassalle's reputa-
tion greatly. It is a work, it is true, of great ability ; it shows a
marvellous mental grasp, and a rare power of penetration ; but from
the aesthetic point of view, it leaves everything to be desired. The
tone is undignified, and at times coarse, as when Lassalle, in a vulgar
simile, vulgarly expressed in the original, likens his antagonist to an
eviscerated deer. The' work has not undeservedly earned the title of
Schimpfwerk, for it teems with abuse where, above all things, the
soberest argument is desirable.
Pressure of work and the provocation of innumerable enemies told
on his hbalth at this time, and he writes on February 14th :
" I am dead-beat. . . . My excitement is so great that I can no
longer sleep at night. I roll about on my bed till five o'clock, and
then get up with headache and thoroughly exhausted. I aA over-
worked, over-exerted, over-wearied to the most frightful degree. The
mad exertion of writing ' Bastiat-Schulze,' in addition to all my other
work ; the deep and painful disillusion, the gnawing inner vexation,
1 " Herr Bastiat-Schulze von Delitzsch, der (Hcopomische Julian, oder Kapital and ^beit,"
(dated January i6th, 1864).
Failure of Lassalle's Agitation. 1 59
which the indifference and apathy of the working classes, taken in the
mass, cause me — all this has been too much even for me. I am carry-
ing on a tn&tier de dupe, and inwardly I am vexed to death, and that
the more as I cannot give vent to this vexation and overcome it."
And again, the same month :
" I am so brought down by inordinate exertion and excessive nervous
excitement through work, that my nerves hang loose like cords about
my body. There is for every nature, what I did not wish to believe, a
Ne nimis, and I have this time sadly violated it. Adieu, your wretched
F. Lassalle."!
Still, he would not despair, dark as the outlook appeared. The
motto which Carlyle wrote in his journal, round the sketch of a flick-
ering candle, was his as well — " Terar dum prosim" " Let me be
wasted so I am but useful." " I will not let the banner fall," he writes,
" so long as even a small flame of hope gleams on the horizon." The
difBculties and sufferings must have been great when they proved
" too much even for me," but like a " brave man struggling with the
storms of fate," he determined still to prpss onward. Lassalle's en-
feebled condition was not the only misfortune with which the Universal
Association had to contend. Another was the lack of funds. On
February 14th, the president writes to one of his agents :
" I can futtiish absolutely no more money, and it is equally
impossible to let the Association fall to the ground, so long as there is
hope in the political heavens. I have not only reached the limits of
the financial sacrifice which I am able to make, but I have really far
exceeded what I could reasonably sacrifice. You know what financial
sacrifices I made up to last September : what a capital there ! "
Before it is supposed that he here exaggerates the help which came
from his own purse, it should be remembered that the revenues of the
Association were insignificant, for not only were the contributions re-
quired of members very small, but the secretaries of the branches often
neglected to collect them, or when collected to forward them to the
head treasury, while, on the other hand, the expense of the agitation —
in organisation, in the publication of pamphlets, the subsidising of
poor democratic newspapers, and a hundred other ways — must have
been enormous, and Lassalle was responsible for all.^
1 Letter to Rodbertus.
2 The secretary writes to Lassalle, August 27th, when the A^soci^tioil had exisffd tjires
iponths ^h^t only three persqnsliave s^nt mopey. '
l6o German Socialism.
The first trial of 1864 arose out of the publication of the " Address
to the Working-men of Berlin," which appeared on October 14th, 1863.
In this address Lassalle said the primary object of the Universal
Association was the attainment of universal suffrage. When this had
been gained the Prussian State would be remoulded into a "democratic
State," the object of which would be the improvement of the social
condition of the working classes by legislation, funds being granted for
the formation of Productive Associations. The Prussian State, he
said, had never been founded on justice, "and everyone who agitates for
the maintenance of the constitution must be regarded as an enemy
of the popular party." This language was bad enough, but when
Lassalle declared that the folly of the Government had brought
Prussia to the eve of a great social revolution, and finally sneered at
the " sceptre, crown, star, and other toys," he manifestly established
himself, in the eyes of the authorities, as a man whose freedom it would
be dangerous to tolerate. He was, therefore, summoned to answer the
threefold charge of inciting to the alteration of the Prussian constitu-
tion by violence, of publicly ridiculing State institutions, and of
insulting the Ministry of State. The trial took place on March 12th,
and the Crown Solicitor proposed as punishment three years' im-
prisonment, a fine of a hundred thalers (;£is), and five years' police
surveillance. Lassalle spoke for four hours amid storm and wild
wave-rolling. He began by deriding the high-treason scare which
had taken possession of the people in high places, but which gave him
no alarm, and quoted the satire :
" Es ist ein rechtes Elend mit dem Hochverrath !
£s ist so schlimm, ja schlimmer selbst als Flohe 1
Alliiberall zudringlich kniipft er einem an,
Schneutz' ich die Nase — aber mein 1 's ist Hochverrath ;
Kratz' ich am Kopfe — wehe mir 1 's ist Hochvenath ;
Ja, selbst ins Bett leg' ich mich des Nachts mit Angst,
Dass mir ein hochverrStheriscber— Traum entTahrt I "
Lassalle sought to refute the Crown's interpretation of his utterances
and of the constitution, and he drew a comparison between himself
and Sir Robert Peel.
"When Peel repealed the Com Laws, and many voices in the
House of Commons thanked him for it, he said, ' These thanks belong
not to mp but to Richard Cobden.' But instead of following that ex-
Failure of Lassalle's Agitation. i6i
ample (added Lassalle) the Crown Solicitor charges me with high
treason. A truly melancholy difference between the circumstances of
England and those here."
The President of the Court objected to the comparison as untenable
and Lassalle rejoined :
" The agitation which causes me to appear here and that of Cobden
are on exactly the same lines, and the comparison of the two is a
justifiable part of my defence. . . (and elsewhere) The com duties were
based on the law. In regard to their obligation there is no difference
between law and constitution."
From beginning to end the proceedings were tempestuous. Lassalle
demanded to be allowed to conduct his defence in his own way, and
to say what he pleased. The consequence was that he was repeatedly
called to order, treatment which raised tiis indignation to a high pitch.
When he quoted a poet the President asked that such " effusions "
might be omitted, and the same interruption taking place again as he was
about to strengthen his case by a passage from " Wallenstein's Death,"
Lassalle exclaimed in fury: "Are then our great poets — is Schiller
proscribed in these halls ? '' on which he continued the quotation with-
out further molestation. Fortune favoured the brave, for Lassalle was
acquitted of the charge of high treason, though the Court found that
the address to the workii^-men of Berlin was " eccentric." It was
decided, however, to proceed against him on less serious charges.
The singular collapse of the prosecution, which began with a proposal
for three years' imprisonment and ended in an acquittal, greatly en-
hanced Lassalle's reputation and encouraged his supporters. It is
not improbable that his personal relationships with Minister von Bis-
marck at this time had something to do with the fortunate issue of the
trial.
The next trial of this year was a result of the Rhenish address of the
preceding September. The address was first published at Diisseldorf.^
An edition often thousand copies was printed, and on October 21st the
unsold remnant of the work, about a thousand copies, was confiscated
at Diisseldorf and Berlin. Proceedings were at once instituted against
Lassalle on the strength of several passages in which reflection was
thrown on the Prussian Government and an endeavour made, as was
alleged, to excite the working classes. The Provincial Court at Diis-
1 " Die Feste, die Presse, und der Frankfurter Abgeordnetentag.'
L
l62 , German Socialism.
seldorf gave authority for his arrest, and on January- 29th he was
apprehended in the streets of Berlin by three police officers while in
the company of Countess Hatzfeldt. The officers accompanied him
home, and refused to leave until he should be ready to travel to Dus-
seldorf the same evening. Lassalle was physically broken down and
was unable to bear any such exertion, yet it was only late at night
that the revocation of the order for his removal could be obtained
and his house be relieved of the presence of the policemen. The
Dusseldorf Court sentenced him in contumaciam to a year's imprison-
ment, though the Crown Solicitor had demanded two years. Both
Lassalle and his prosecutors appealed, and the second trial took place
on June 27th. The Court found the accused guilty, but this time the
sentence was reduced to six months' imprisonment. The publication
of the defence led to a new prosecution, '^ as was the case with the
defence in the trial of March 12th in Berlin.
But Lassalle grew to like prosecutions and trials. The prisoners'
dock was a tribune whence he could address an entire nation. There
»t least he counted on free speech and had it, even if against the will
j)f his prosecutors, and perhaps of his judges as well. It may be that
his vanity was fed by law-court fame, but the success of his agitation
always weighed most with him, and that benefited incalculably by the
notoriety which prosecution gave to his person and principles. But,
above all, the atmosphere of the Courthouse was congenial to his stormy
spirit. Never, perhaps, was he more in his element than when bad-
gering judges, browbeating Crown Solicitors, and bringing bourgioii
juries to their wits' end. He was never in perplexity. If the prosecu-
tion advanced one argument against him, he had immediately ten
ready wherewith to answer it. He might not always succeed, in
overcoming his enemies, but he would content himself with the thought
that if he failed it was not owing to his fault or the weakness of his
cause, but to the obtuseness or injustice of the law's administrators.
Yet the battle was worth fighting for itself, and brave defence was its
own reward. No wonder that Lassalle attributed so much importance
to the trials in which he was the central figure. He always appeared
in Court dressed as for the dancing-room. His speeches were pre-
pared with the utmost care, and he ostentatiously ranged round him
all the legal works to which it might be necessary to refer in support
I He died before his prosecutors could bring him to the prisoners' dock.
Failure of Lassalle's Agitation. 163
of his own arguments or in opposition to those of others. Never once
did he show the white flag even when his chances of success were the
faintest. On one occasion the bench had withdrawn for deliberation,
and his friends, in view of the certainty of conviction, besought him
in tears from the spectators' benches to leave the Court and if neces-
sary to take flight. Lassalle turned round and answered with dignity:
"That is not becoming." However annoying his legal disputes
were, however, he could nevertheless joke at them. At the end
of a long letter written to Rodbertus in reply to his indictment
against " Acquired Rights," Lassalle finds time to add, " And now I
must return to the Crown Solicitor and the Court of First Instance,
who have both an ' acquired right ' to very attentive service on my
part."i
What progress was the agitation meanwhile making 'i The Associa-
tion camp had never been a very amiable one, and early in 1864 the
animosities and jealousies which existed between subordinate officials
\hreatened to produce serious consequences. In April, Lassalle wrote
to Dammer, the vice-president ; —
" Should frictions, trivialities, intrigues and disputes spread in our
Association as amongst the Progressists, I would — for without them I
am full of disgust, very full — resign my office at once and let the
gentlemen quarrel amongst themselves."
The first serious symptom of disaffection amongst the officials was
seen in the hostility and resignation of the secretary Vahlteich in
February. A young Solingen sword-cutler, by name Willms, was ap-
pointed his successor, and it was hoped that all danger had been
removed. It was, however, soon found that the late secretary was
organising opposition against Lassalle, whose absolute power he
wished to disturb by the introduction of a measure of decentralisation.
Thus internal disaffection was fed by intrigue without, and it seemed
to Lassalle that only such a great triumph as rewarded his Rhenish
review would arrest decline.
His birthday was celebrated by the Berlin members of the Associa-
tion on April Sth, and two days later he formed the intention of
proceeding early in May to the Rhine, there to commemorate the
founding of the Universal. He accordingly left Berlin on May Sth,
travelling by way of Leipzig, with the object, as the official announce-
1 Februanr uth, i86s.
1 64 German Socialism.
ment ran, of holding another "review" — this time a "glorious review"^
of his Rhenish followers. On the 14th he spoke at Solingen, on the
15th at Barmen, on the i6th at Cologne, and on the i8th at Wermels-
kirchen. The enthusiasm he aroused was intense, and on the 20th
he wrote to Countess Hatzfeldt :
" I have never seen anything like it. Involuntarily one thought of
the scenes > in Faust : both that m the first part (' Zufrieden jauchzet
Gross und Klein ; hier bin ich Mensch, hier darf ich's sein'? ' ^) and that
at the end of the second part, where Faust stands still, contented. ^
The entire population indulged in indescribable jubilation. The im-
pression made upon me was that such scenes rnust have attended the
founding of new religions."
Lassalle may be pardoned for the vanity which shows itself in this
letter. He had, indeed, been received everywhere like a warrior
returned victorious from the din and danger of battle. At Wermels-
kirchen the people gave themselves over to festivity on the day of his
arrival Deputations of working-men met their trusted leader at the
station with carriages covered with wreaths of flowers. The roads
were spanned by triumphal arches, and as the procession advanced
slowly to the town the air was filled with the acclamations of a
countless crowd, which greeted Lassalle with a song of welcome.
Such ovations would have turned far less giddy heads than Lassalle's.
Then came, on May 22nd, the festival, of the foundation of the
Association. This took place at Ronsdorf, near Elberfeld. The
reception of the great agitator was a repetition of the scene at
Wermelskirchen, and on the evening of the commemoration, Lassalle
could telegraph to the " Berlin brethren " the congratulations of an
assembly of two thousand Rhinelanders. At Ronsdorf he did what
1 Faustt 1st part ; Scenes Before the Gate.
S Lassalle evidently refers to the passage wherein Faust says :
" Solch ein Gewimmel mdcht* ich sehn,
Auf freiem Grund mit freiem Volke stehn.
Zum Augenblicke dutft' ich sagen :
Verweile doch, du hist so schdn !
Es kann die Spur von meinen Erdetagen
Nicht in Aeonen untergehn. —
Im VorgefBhl von solchem hohen Gluck
Geniess' ich jetrt den hSchsten Augenblick."
Faifstj and part ; scene in the Great Forecourt of Palace.
Failure of LassaWs Agitation. 165
was expected of him : he made a great speech, "^ a speech at oiice his
most sangume and his most extravagant. He did not hesitate to
remind his followers that he had alone — " one man against all " —
raised the banner of the Association. He told the legend of the Middle
Ages according to which the lion's whelp is bom dead and is only
wakened into hfe by the roaring of its sire. It almost seemed, at first,
as if the Association had been still bom, " but we roared so frightfully
that the cry found an echo in all German States, and the child awoke
to gladdest life and has proved itself a genuine lion." What, however,
had been the result of the Association's work and of its author's
agitation ? Lassalle claimed that he had converted both the King of
Prussia and the Bishop of Mayence.* A short time before this a de-
putation of Silesian weavers had been received by the king, to whom
they had presented a petition in which it was said that the weekly wages
of a weaver, working twelve hours a day, varied from three to eight
shillings. The published accounts of the interview stated that the
king not only expressed sympathy with the supplicants but promised
speedy legislation on the labour question.^ Lassalle, with more bold-
ness than justification, accepted as correct the reports in circulation,
sind claimed the so-called royal promise as a victory for the Association.
He pointed his hearers to "the acknowledgment by the king that a settle-
ment of the working-men's question by legislation is necessary; in other
words, the acknowledgment of the principal proposition in favour of
which we began our agitation, and the acknowledgment of the necessity
and justice of that which I have everywhere — in my ' Reply Letter ' as
well as in my 'Working Man's Reading Book' — developed as the quint-
essence of our demands ; the acknowledgment of the principle which
lies at the basis of the entire agitation of the Universal German Work-
ing Men's Association and of our most radical proposal — as opposed to
the proposition of Liberal political economy, which is that the work-
1 Pablished as " Die Agitation des allgemeinen Deutschen Arbeitervereins and das
Versprechen des KSnigs von Preussen."
2 Baron Wilhelm Emmanuel von Ketteler was bom December as'h, 1811, at MOnster,
Westphalia. He became a priest of the Catholic Church in 1839, and in 1850 was made Eishop
of Mayence. In 1871 he was elected to the Reichstag. He died July 13th, 1877. Ketteler
wrote " Die Arbeiterfrage und das Christenthum " (Mayence, 1864), " Die Katholiken nnd
dasdentsche Reich " (Mayence, 1873), and "Die giossen socialen Fragen der Gegenwart "
(Mayence, 1878).
The sabject came up during a debate in the Reichstag on the Socialist Bill on Septembet
lith, 1878, and in the Prussian Lower House on February nth and 15th, 1865.
1 66 German Sociatism.
ing classes should be left defenceless to the play of free competition,
and to the domination of supply and demand : — the acknowledgment,
I say, of its irrefragable justice and of its unassailable truth."
Then, coming to the alleged promise, he said : " While in 1844 the
bayonet was the only answer given to the want of the Silesian weavers,^
the king now promises that their condition shall be altered by means
of legislation. You see, friends, that this promise is our work." But
as the 'legislative settlement of the labour question could not take
place unless there were a Parliament elected by universal suffrage to
give approval to it, Lassalle saw in the royal promise another con-
cession, implied if not expressed ; the king had, in fact, been won
round to the demand for universal franchise which the Association
had placed at the beginning of its programme. And all this was the
result of the agitation ! The meeting is reported to have broken out
at this point into indescribable jubilation, and it was some minutes
before Lassalle could resume his speech. Whatever may be thought
of the logic andhonesty which Lassalle displays here — Mehring speaks
of the whole speech as " a shameful tissue of falsehoods from be-
ginning to end," 2 but this is going too far — ^he undoubtedly had right
on his side in claiming Bishop von Ketteler as a convert.*
The conclusion of the speech almost reads like a prophecy. He said ;
" I have not grasped this banner, as you might think, without know-
ing quite clearly that I myself might fall. The feelings which fill me
at the thought that I may be removed cannot better be expressed
than in the words of the Roman poet : ' Exoria/re aUquis nosl/ris ex
ossibus vltor ! ' or in German, ' MSge vjervn, ich beseiUgt werde, i/rgend em
1 Referring to the hand weavers* riots of 1844 alluded to in Chapter I.
3 " Die Deutsche Socialdemokratie," p. 54.
3 The views of Baron von Ketteler are set forth in his work " Die Arbeiterfrage und das
Christenthum " (Mayence, 1864). Lassalle's influence may be recognised in various passages
and amongst them the following : " This is the condition of our working classes ; they are
dependent upon wages ; the wages of labour are a commodity whose price is daily determined
by supply and demand ; the axle upon which the price moves are the necessaries of life, and
if the demand be larger than the supply it rises a little upon this axle, while it falls if the
supply be larger than the demand. But the general tendency is, as with other commodities,
towards cheapness of production, and cheapness of production means here the curtailment of
the necessaries of life, and so with this entirely mechanical-mathematical movement it is bure
to happen at times that even the most essential necessaries can no longer be covered by the
price of labour, and that entire labouring families and classes will pine away and slowly
starve." (p. ig).
Failure of Lassalle's Agitation. 167
Backer und Nachfolger aus memen Geieviien cmferstehen.'^ May this
great and national movement of civilisation not fall with my person,
but may the conflagration which I have kindled spread farther and
farther so long as one of you still breathes. Promise me that, and in
token raise your right hands.''
The scene was an impressive one as the grave tones of the orator's
voice ceased, and the hands were raised in silence. But the silence
only lasted for a moment, and the storm of acclamation which
followed showed that a responsive chord had been touched in the
hearts of those two thousand men, few of whom were to see their
leader again. The Ronsdorf address was all hope and cheer, but there
were many people who likened it to the song of the dying swan.
To this period must be attributed the formation of an intimate ac-
quaintance between Lassalle and the Prussian Minister President,
then Count von Bismarck, now Prince Bismarck, the Imperial Chan-
cellor of Germany, a circiunstance which may rightly be regarded as
historic on account of its political results. The interest shown by the
Prussian Minister in the social movement was so great that he invited
Lassalle on various occasions to meet him, nor has he ever sought to
deny the admiration in which he held the talented agfitator, the " re-
volutionary Jew, well known in his day." When Deputy Richter^ once
laid it to his charge that he had taken counsel with Socialist leaders,
Prince Bismarck could only express impatient astonishment that dis-
tinction should not be drawn between men who honestly strove to im-
prove the lot of the working classes and those whose only gospel was
violence. 3 But Prince Bismarck has never cared much about what
the world has said of him, and least of all has he been frightened of
mere names. " Call it Socialism or what you will," he declared once,
when speaking of the insurance of workpeople, " it is all the same to
1 "If I should be removed, may some avenger (and follower) rise up out of my bones.
It is worthy of note that the idea of revenge for Lassalle's death continued for years to be a
source of inspiration to his disciples. Thus at a great Toiienfeier once held at Hamburg, a
song was sung amidst enthusiasm, the last lines of which ran :
" Lassalle, Lassalle, erweck' Dir einen Racher,
Wo urn Dein Grab der Leichenrabe kreist."
This incident had of itself no importance, but it was full of significance.
2 The eloquent leader of the Freisinnige Pariei. Eugen Richter was born July 30th, 183S,
at Diisseldorf, and studied at Bonn, Heidelberg, and Berlin. Formerly in the service of lh«
State in a judicial capacity, but since 1864 resident in Berlin as author and publicist,
8 Debate in the German Reichstag, September 17th, 1878.
1 68 German Socialism.
me."i There was much in Lassalle which could not but attract Prince
Bismarck, and the character of the latter was certainly one after
LassaUe's own heart. The respect and admiration entertained on both
sides were very great. The Prussian Minister found the agitator " a
great man with whom one might be glad to converse ;" and the agitator
once said of the Minister, " If we exchanged musket shots with Herr
von Bismarck, justice would require us to allow, even amid the volleys,
that he was a man, while the Progressists are only old women." Little
is known respecting the relationships which existed between these two
remarkable men. Lassalle has left no account of the interviews which
he had with the statesman, and so far as he is concerned the only in-
formation on the subject which is extant consists of odd references
found amongst the documents of the Universal Association, after its
founder's death, showing that Lassalle was accustomed to send reprints
of his speeches to the Minister President. Thus a letter of June 15th,
1864, to the secretary contains the direction : " The things sent to
Bismarck should go in an envelope." At another time two copies
of the Ronsdorf speech are to be sent to the Count with the superscrip-
tion " Personally." More important than evidence of this kind are the
reminiscences of the historical interviews which Prince Bismarck
narrated during a debate in the Reichstag on September i6th, 1878.
On that occasion the Socialist Bebel compelled the Chancellor to
break silence. Bebel's account was that Lassalle was approached in-
directly long before the Prussian Minister President addressed him in
person. Prince Bismarck said :
" Lassalle himself wanted urgently to enter into negotiations with
me, and if I could find time to search amongst old papers, I believe
I could yet find the letter in which the wish is expressed, and in which
reasons are given why I should allow the wish to be fulfilled. Nor
did I make it difficult for Lassalle to meet me. I saw him, and from
the time that I first spoke an hour with him I have not regretted it.
I did not see him three or four times a week, but only three or four
times altogether. Our relations could not have had the nature of
political negotiations. For what could Lassalle offer or give me?
He had nothing behind him, and in all political negotiations Do ut des
lies in the background, even though for the sake of decorum one may
not say so. If I were to have said to myself, ' What hast thou, poor
1 Debate in the German Reichstag, April and, i38i.
Failure of L assail^ s Agitation. 169
devil, to give ? 'i he had nothing which he could have given me as
Minister ; but what he had was something which attracted me
extraordinarily as a private man. He was one of the most intellectual
and gifted men with whom I have ever had intercourse, a man who
was ambitious in high style, but who was by no means a Republican :
he had very decided national and monarchical sympathies, and the
idea which he strove to realise was the German Empire, and therein
we had a point of contact.^ Lassalle was extremely ambitious, and it
was perhaps a matter of doubt to him whether the German Empire
would close with the Hohenzollem dynasty or the Lassalle dynasty ;
but he was monarchical through and through. Lassalle was an
energetic and very intellectual man, to talk with whom was very in-
structive. Our conversations lasted hours, and I was always sorry
when they came to an end. There was no talk of negotiations, for
in our conversation I could scarcely get a word in. He bore the costs
of the conversation alone, but he did so in a pleasant and amiable
manner; everyone who knew him will allow thatmy description is correct
I would have been glad to have had a map of his genius and of such an
intellectual nature as neighbouring landlord in the country."
Prince Bismarck has put it on record that the conversations ranged
over a wide field, of political and social questions, but Lassalle en-
deavoured especially to convert the Prussian Minister to his proposals
of universal franchise and Productive Associations. That the scheme
of Associations worked by the aid of State fimdswas thoughtfuUyweighed
by Prince Bismarck, both at that time and afterwards, he himself has
admitted, though he was never able clearly to recognise its wisdom or
utility. At the same time he did not shrink from the idea of an expen-
diture of 100,000,000 thalers, Lassalle's estimated capital. Nay, the
Government even experimented in co-operative production. When in
England in 1862, Prince Bismarck inquired into the working of the
Productive Associations, and on his return he persuaded the Prussian
kingto devote a considerable sum out of his private pvurse to experiments.
1 FaBSt to Mephistopheles : " Was willst du armer Teufel geben ? " (ist part : scene in the
Study).
a Lassalle writes to Rodbertus, May and, 1863, " If I have hated anything in my life, it is
the Small Germany party. A year and a half ago, I once held a meeting of my friends here,
and I formulated the matter so : we must all desire Great Germany mains les dyn%siies^
That was evidently Lassalle's attitude In current politics, with which his ulterior social aimi
had nothing to do.
170 German Sodalism.
These experiments were not, however, continued long enough to' allow
of a fair trial, for war broke out, and the Government had to give
attention to other and more urgent questions. Prince Bismarck,
though never won over to productive partnerships, has always kept an
open mind on the subject. This he showed during the debate already
referred to. He then said :
" In the Ministry of Agriculture we carry on experiments respecting
agricultural systems, and we also experiment in our manufactures :
would it not be useful to make experiments similarly in the employ-
ment of the people and in the endeavour to solve the so-called Social-
Democratic — or, I would rather say, social question, by improving the
lot of working-men ? On a great scale it might not be possible to
carry out [the co-operative principle]. Such establishments, for
instance, as that of Krupp would not be possible under a constitution
other than monarchical ; — for example, they would be impossible
under a Republican constitution. But in ordinary manufactures I do
not regard this way of helping working-men to a better existence as
out of the question, and I do not think it a crime for a statesman to
grant State funds for the formation of an association on behalf ol
working-men, and especially for experiments in that direction."
But to resume the narrative of Lassalle's movements during 1864.
According to the plan drawn up in April he intended to leave the
Rhine towards the end of the following month for the baths and to
return to Berlin late in the year. He now needed rest more than
ever. Ill as he was on undertaking the " glorious review," his
physical condition was now worse. Two days before the Ronsdorf
meeting he wrote to Countess Hatzfeldt from Diisseldorf :
" Though quite ill — indeed, reduced to extremities — I am writing to
you again. At last, at last the greater part of the fatigue is behind
me. If I had been quite well on leaving Berlin it would have been
a trifle for me. . . To-day I am again voiceless, and besides I look
exhausted, shaken, feeble, and very ill."
There was only too much truth in all this, and it was no doubt with
a sigh of real relief that he bid good-bye to his Rhenish friends,
whose fidelity had done much to cheer him. There was, however,
another reason besides ill-health which made it expedient to increase
the distance between himself and Berlin. The day before the
Ronsdorf gathering he received information thence that the Court had
failure of Lassalle's Agitation. 171
again sentenced him in contumaciam to four months' imprisonment,
having, in spite of medical evidence of Lassalle's wrecked condition,
refused to adjourn the proceedings. The first place visited was Ems,
where he stayed from May 26th to June 25th. Now, however, his
rest was broken, for it was necessary to hasten to Diisseldorf in order
to defend himself before the Correctional Court of Appeal on a charge
of high treason, the trial resulting in a sentence of six months'
imprison ment.J^ This prosecution over, he went to Cologne, where he
remained till July 6th,' then travelled in the Palatinate ten days,
reaching Karlsruhe on the i6th and proceeding without delay to
Rigi-Kaltbad,' where he hoped to recruit his strength.
During this time the affairs of the Association never once ceased to
occupy his attention. At Ems he negotiated with Herren von
Schweitzer and von Hofstetten, the latter a Bavarian ex-lieutenant,
for the establishment of a newspaper to advocate the principles of the
movement.^ At Frankfort he addressed meetings and was in return
serenaded by a party of his admirers, a token of regard which
afforded him great pleasure. Arrived at Rigi-Kaltbad, he put himself
in regular correspondence with the officials of the Association. There
was, indeed, need for correspondence and plenty of it, for during
Lassalle's absence from headquarters his enemies in the camp had
been making good use of their opportunities. Vahlteich had been
advocating his decentralisation scheme with renewed persistence, and
with growing success. His plan was more than one of decentralisa-
tion, which alone was objectionable in the present weak condition ol
the affiliated organisations ; he desired to pave the way for union with
the Progressist party, so heartily hated by Lassalle. In a long
circular issued from Kaltbad, and dated July 27th, the president of the
Association demanded the expulsion of Vahlteich, and again
threatened as in April that unless concord were preserved he would
resign.
" If such frictions are repeated, and unless the directorate protect
me energetically against their repetition, I shall simply resign the
presidency and return to my old rtle as defender of the interests of
the working classes. Only unwillingly and after long refusal did I
finally determine at Leipzig to take the presidency of the Association,
1 The trial of June 27th, already referred to.
> The Social-Democrat, which first appeared January tst, l86s>
172 German Socialism.
in order to be able to carry on the struggle for the interests of the
working classes with greater energy. But frictions within the
Association — between working-men and members of the Association,
and even members of the directorate, who, above all, should present a
bright example of unanimity, and who have, in fact, done so as yet,
with one exception — I do not regard as belonging to my office. '
It has been maintained that Lassalle did not intend to return to Ger-
many, but that, fearing the accumulation of commitment orders which
had gathered over his head, he had come to the determination to re-
main abroad. After weighing all the evidence carefully, it is not
possible to doubt that some such plan was favourably thought of.
Not, however, that Lassalle intended to sever connection with the
Universal Association, whose affairs he may have believed it practicable
to direct from a neighbouring country. Countess Hatzfeldt repeatedly
urged him to leave Germany, but his letters to that lady only show
him to have been revolving the idea in his mind, and nowhere to have
come to a decision. Paul Lindau,!- in an interesting description which
he has written of Lassalle's appearance at the Dusseldorf Court on June
27th throws some light upon this question. Lindau took leave ol
Lassalle at the railway station on the 29th, and he writes respecting the
parting :
" Though I had never in my life had presentiments, still I had at
this moment a distinct feeling that . I should not see that man
again. In order to get rid of it I said to him — he had entered the
carriage, the door was closed, and he had put his head out of the
window — ^ Auf Wiedersehen \Au revoir\ Herr Lassalle!' He an-
swered : ' Who knows ? ' and as I looked at him astonished, he
added : ' I can no longer allow myself to be deprived of freedom a
year or even half a year. I simply cannot bear it. I will rather expa-
triate myself. I am nervous and quite knocked-up. Rigi-Kaltbad will,
I hope, make me fit for work again.' "
Lassalle knew that his constitution, broken down by two years of in-
tense excitement and superhuman labour, would not hold out much
longer unless he were able to secure rest and quiet in salubrious parts.
No doubt he intended that his future movements should be influenced
by the results of his Swiss travels. At this time there were two Las-
salles in the same person, one the hopeiiil and confident orator oi
1 Article in the Deutsche Btuhtrei (Breslau), Na 4, iBSZi
Failure of Lassalle's Agitation. 173
Ronsdorf, to whom the fUture was bright with the promise of great
things, and the other the moody, discouraged invalid of the Rigi, who
was temporarily broken in spirits and heartily weary of agitation.
Let this be remembered when judgment is passed on the last events
in Lassalle's life. We have seen the one Lassalle : we may now look
upon the other as he painted himself in a letter to Countess Hatzfeldt.
The countess had asked him if he could not be content for a time with
" science, friendship, and beautiful nature." He writes from his Swiss
retreat on July 28th :
'' You think I must have politics ? Ah, how little you know me ! I
wish nothing more ardently than to be free from politics altogether
and to retire to science and nature. 1 am tired, and have had enough
of politics. True, I would rouse up as passionately as ever for politics
if serious occurrences took place, or if I had power or saw means of
gaining pre-eminence — such means as were suited to me — for without
the highest power nothing can be done. I am, however, too old and
too big for child's play. That is why I undertook the presidency so
very unwillingly. I only gave in to you. That is why it oppresses me
so greatly."
It is difficult to reconcile the contradictions furnished by the Rons-
dorf speech and letters of this kind. Reconciliation is, indeed, impos-
sible save on the supposition that Lassalle feared to tell the world all
he thought and felt, behoving that the result would be disaster to his
cherished but unsuccessful schemes. He clung to hope in public long
after he had abandoned it in private. When, however, immaculate
critics speak of " glaring dissonance, flagrant contradiction, and deep
falsehood," '^ one is reminded forcibly of the stem fact that there is
yet plenty of room for charity in the world.
1 Mehring, " Deutsche Socialdemolcratie," p. 56.
CHAPTER IX.
LASSALLE'S DEATH.
The concluding passage in Lassalle's career it is impossible to ap-
proach with satisfaction. It cannot, indeed, be omitted from a faith-
ful accotmt of his eventful life, and yet there is in the story so much
that is disagreeable and even revolting that the wish to pass it over is
only natural.^ We last saw Lassalle as he had arrived at Rigi-Kalt-
bad — ^it would seem as though a mysterious fatalism had taken him
thither — wrecked in body and suffering from the mental torture of
aggravation and disappointment. One day, while he was writing, a
visitor was announced, and he went out to find that the comer who
sought to speak with him was a young lady, by name Helene von
ponniges. About the personality of this friend of Lassalle's it is
necessary that we should know more. Fraulein von Donniges was the
daughter of a Bavarian diplomat, holding an appointment at this time
\n Switzerland. Beauty appears to have been hereditary in the family,
1 A vast amount of literature — ^for the most part not of an edifying character — has accumu-
lated respecting the episode in Lassalle's life which is here dealt with as shortly as may be.
The chief works on the subject are :
" Enthtillungen Uber das tranche Lebensende Ferdinand Lassalles. Auf Grunde authen-
tischer Belege dargestellt von Bemhard Becker, dem testamentarischen Nachfolger Lassalles."
(Schleiz, 1868}.
"Meine Beziehungen zu Ferdinand Lassalle, von Helene von Racowitza geb. v. Ddnnlges."
(Breslau and Leipzig.) In this work Helene claims that " tout comprendre, c'est tout par-
donner." How far, however, she writes fact and how far fiction, it is hard to say ; in any case
there is plenty of fiction in the narrative. ,
" Lassalle's Tod : Im Anschluss an die Memoire der Helene von Racowitza, ' Meine Bezieh-
ungen zu Ferdinand Lassalle,' zur Erg^nzung derselben," by A. Kutschbach. (Chemnitz, \
x88o.)
Other works are, as a whole, mere hashes of the foregoing. In 1878 there was published at
Leipzig "Eine Lieb esepisode aus dem Leben Ferdinand Lassalles," said to be a reprint of
letters which appeared in November, 1877, in the European Messenger in the Russian lan-
guage. The work professes to give the contents of a diary kept byia Russian lady who cor-
responded with lASsalle, The inane production is probably a forgery.
Just recently another contribution to the already superabundant literature on this subject
has appeared with the title " Lassalle's Leiden," (Berlin, 1887), a work containing several
nitherto unpublished letters by Lassalle. but otherwise worthless.
Lassall^s Death. ly^
and Helena was both beautiful and vain. She was a talented girl —
from her Jewish mother she had inherited a lively imagination and an
imperious spirit— but she had been spoiled as a child. She tells us
herself that she was at the age of twelve years engaged by her mother
to an Italian of forty or forty-two, for she then looked quite nineteen
years old. The unwholesome atmosphere in which her youth was
passed exerted the natural effect of destroying maidenly innocence
and reserve, and she grew up a vain coquette whose head was full of
romantic notions. Lassalle made the acquaintance of Helene in 1862,
when the girl was visiting her mother's relations in Berlin. Helene
had already been betrothed two or three times, and was then pledged
to a young Walachian nobleman, a student, by name Racowitz, de-
scribed as a " small, dark, ugly man," but possessing the redeeming
quality that he was rich. The girl lost her head, as many others of
her sex did, when fastened by Lassalle's glittering eye and enchanted'
by his gallant ways and fair speech. Racowitz was thrown overboard,
and Helene became attached to his more gifted rival. She was proud
to have attracted the attention of one whose name was on everybody's
tongue, and Lassalle was hardly less pleased with his new conquest.
The acquaintance continued more than a year without an actual en-
gagement taking place.
Knowledge of Lassalle's journey to Rigi-Kaltbad was soon gained
by Helene, who was living in Geneva, and she organised an excursion
thither with several friends. On July 25th the girl presented herself
before her lover. It is evident that tender passages passed between
the two before the time of separation came on the following day, and
Helene and her friends — an English lady, an American lady, and a
Frenchman — descended the Rigi in " the most frightful mist and
rain."^ For not only had Lassalle promised to be in Geneva between
the 15th and 2Sth of August, but we find Helene writing to him the
day after the romantic interview : " When I left you, and your lips
touched my hand for the last time, I said to myself that my decision
for life should be taken before I left Weggis. EA Men, t^est fait !
And now know, you with your fine, magnificent intellect and your
great but to me so pleasant vanity, how my decision runs. I wish to
be and will be your wife. You said to me yesterday evening : ' Give
me only a sensible and independent yes, et je me charge du reste.'
1 Letter of Lassalle to Countess Hatzfeldt, July z7th, 1864.
1/6 German Socialism.
Well, here is my yes — and now, chargez-vous done du resfe. Only I
impose two very small conditions, and they are these. I will — only
think, the child wills — that we shall do all that lies in our power (and
in your power, my fine Satanic friend, there lies so very much) to
attain our ends in a seemly and sensible way ; in other words, you
must come to us, and we will try to prepossess both my parents and
; in your favour, and so win their consent. But if not, if they
are and remain inexorable, even when we have done everything — eh
Men, alors tant pis — then there is always Egypt. ^ That is one
condition, and the second is this : I wz'// and desire that the whole
affair may proceed as speedily as possible. I know that the obstacles
which we have to overcome are very great, yes, gigantic, but then we
have a great end in view, and you have a gigantic intellect, which
will with God's help grind the rocks to sand and dust, so that even
my weak breath would be able to blow it away. The hardest part
falls to me, for I must with cold hand kill a faithful heart ^ which is
devoted with true love to me ; I must destroy with crass selfishness a
fond, youthful dream, the realisation of which was to have been the
happiness, the life's happiness, of a noble man. Believe me, it will
be fearfully hard, but I will do it now, and for your sake will be bad."
The companionship of his lover and the tender words which came
from her worked a great change in Lassalle, and we find him exclaim-
ing in a moment of bright hopefulness, " All my ills are as good as
disappeared — how quickly one forgets what has troubted him ! — and
I am cheerful and full of energy ! " So he no doubt was when he
wrote, for a sunbeam had fallen upon the darkness. Yet the antici-
pation of visiting Helene in Geneva.in August for the purpose of finally
claiming her from her parents was coupled in Lassalle's mind with the
fear that the prize might after all be lost. He writes to Countess
Hatzfeldt from Bern on July 30th :
" Her single but gigantic defect is that she has no will — ^not the
least trace of it. In itself this is certainly a great defect, though if we
were man and wife it would perhaps not be so, for I have will enough
for her as well, and she would be as a flute in the hand of the artist.
But the union itself might thereby be made difficult. To-day, it is
true, she is firmly resolved, but how long will i creature without will
1 Lassalle had proposed to take Helene after marriage to Egypt or Italy.
2 This refers to Racowitz.
LassalUs Death. 177
be able to resist shock?" The countess advises him to reflect before
going farther and reminds him that he has just been " desperately in
love " {sterblich verliebt) with another.^ Lassalle, after explaining away
his " desperate love,'' says Helene is absolutely suited to him ; indeed,
he had never expected to find anyone so well suited. Moreover, " it
is really no small piece of fortune to find, at the age of 39J years, a
woman so beautiful arid of so free and suitable a personality, who
loves me so much and who — what with me is an absolute necessity —
is quite absorbed in my will." The countess again urges her " dear
child " to be prudent, and tells him that he has " no sense and no
judgement in women's affairs." Lassalle answers that he intends to
persist in his plan, and fearing that the countess may appear on the
scene he advises her, twice in the same letter, to recruit her health at
the baths. At the end of July the lover was at Bern, his betrothed
was with friends at the adjacent Wabem, and frequent interviews
took place between them. On August 3rd Helene left for Geneva
and it was agreed that Lassalle should follow at once. The arrange-
ment was carried out, and he took rooms not far from the villa ol
Herr von Donniges.
Meanwhile, . stormy scene had been enacted in Helene's home.
The girl on returning had found her mother alone, and to her she made
known the attachment; The mother cried and endeavoured to dis-
suade her, but in vain, and a warm disputation ended by Frau von
Donniges declaring that she would tell the father all. " God only
knows what he will do when he comes back," wrote Helene to hef
Siegfried 2 the same day ; "in any case I am as firm as a rock."
Herr von Donniges returned home in the evening and a scene more
painful than before took place. The father refused to hear of a
marriage and threatened to disown his daughter unless she at once
disowned Lassalle. Just before this Helene's sister had been be-
trothed to a count ; how, then, could it be expected that an alliance
1 In a letter, dated April i6th, 1864, which has hitherto escaped the inquisitive eyes of
Lassallian scandal-mongers, he writes to the lady here referred to ; — " My sister can tell you
how often I think of you. Far more often than is really proper for a man of my understand-
ing." In this letter he says his intention is to leave Berlin in May and not return till October,
though " perhaps not even then. Who knows what will become of me when 1 am once on
my travels ? "
3 Lassalle called Helene, and the girl signed herself, Brunhild, and he was in return
addressed as Siegfried. So far did the sentimental courtship go.
M
178 German Socialism.
would be contracted with a tradesman's family ? It looked like the
story of Rousseau's Baron d'l^tange, Julie, and le petit bourgeois, over
again. Yet, after all, Herr von Donniges was not without justifica-
tion. He called to mind that Lassalle had once been implicated in a
robbery and that he had for years maintained questionable relation-
ships with an elderly noblewoman. In any case a bourgeois son-in-
law would, perhaps, have been unwelcome, but one with such ante-
cedents was not to be thought of. Driven at last to despair, Helene
fled from the house and sought the abode of her lover, whom she
besought in tears to carry her away, for that was now the only course
open. What Lassalle did was not Lassalle-like. He coolly offered
the girl his arm and led her back to her father's door, wishing to
receive her free from reproach from her parents. Diihring sneers
at Lassalle for his "inconceivable stupidity,"^ but everyone must judge
the act according to his individual views of gallantry and honour. It
is true Lassalle himself afterwards regretted his unromantic step, but
the merits of the dealing must be weighed according to the motives
which prompted it. This aspect of the question aside, it is certain
that Helene was herself surprised at her lover's unexpected proceed-
iflg, and from this moment her passion began to cool down. The
parents were not, however, more favourably disposed towards Lassalle,
and they refused him admittance to their house. Difficulties began
to thicken around him, and he grew desperate when information came
that Helene had been locked up and subjected to ill treatment. He
wrote to the Countess Hatzfeldt and to his friend Rustow, begging
them to come to his assistance. To the countess he unburdened his
heart ; " I cannot help it, although I have striven against it for
twenty-four hours — I must weep myself out on the breast of my best
and only friend. I am so unhappy that I am weeping, the first time
for fifteen years."
Helene's parents had meantime sent for young Racowitz from Berlin ;
and, yielding partly to entreaty but more to menace, the girl was per-
suaded to write a letter to Lassalle notifying her reconciliation to her
former lover and renouncing for ever him to whom she had just sworn
eternal faith. The correspondence which followed between Lassalle,
his beloved, the Countess, Herr von Donniges, Rustow, and other
1 "Kritische Geschichte dw Natjoniildkenomie und d<;s SocislisniBS," p 515, (Leipzig,
LassalMs Deaths 179
persons drawn into the painful affair, may be passed over ; for the
most part it is not edifying reading. A fortnight was spent in fruitless •
endeavours to remove the obstacles against a union, and the inter-
position of no less important personages than the Bishop of Mayence,
Richard Wagner, and a Bavarian Minister of State, not to speak of
noblemen, generals, and scholars, was sought. All was in vain, and
Riistow, who had before telegraphed with grim humour to Lassalle —
whom hehadpersuaded to leave Switzerland — that his "shares stood very
low,'' withdrew on August 24th from the thankless position of mediator,
and the game was given up as lost. Before, however, Lassalle ceased
to address his beloved, he upbraided her in bitter language for her
treachery and invoked his own fate as her punishment. " Helene," he
wrote, " my destiny is in thy hands. But if thou shatterest me by this
villainous treachery, which I cannot overcome, may my fate recoil
upon thee and my curse follow thee to the grave. It is the curse of
the truest heart — maliciously broken by thee — with which thou hast
shamefully trifled. It will hit its mark ! " "^
When Lassalle could not obtain the satisfaction he desired, he
sought satisfaction of another kind. He challenged Herr von Don-
niges, who, however, was in no hurry to accept the arbitration of the
duel, and imposed upon his prospective son-in-law, young Racowitz,
the duty of representing him.^ That the jilted lover bore no malice
— as, indeed, he had no ground for doing — against Racowitz is proved
by the altogether respectful letter which he addressed to him along
with a copy of the challenge served upon Donniges. Only a deep
sense of wrongs suffered could have allowed the democratic enemy of
duelling to override the principles to which he stood firm when pro-
voked in Berlin some years before. But Lassalle was beside himself
with passion at the thought, not only of slighted honour, but of the de-
light with which his enemies would gaze upon his misfortunes. He
was disgusted with everybody and everything, himself and life in-
cluded. "Adieu, deaf friend," he writes to Hans von Biilow about
this time — ^the farewell might have been intended as a final one, for it
was the last he spoke to this companion of his happier days — " adieu,
dear friend ; life is a wretched dog-and-ape-comedy . . . Every-
thing is tattered and greasy, it is a true digoM. Adieu, adieu 1"
1 Written from Munich, August 20th. BecltcT's " Enthilllungen," p. 85.
a Old Pdnniges, in fact, fled to Bern when the challenge reached him.
i8o German Socialism.
Lassalle's seconds were Herr von Hofstetten and General Bethlen,
and the weapons were pistols. Although no shot, Lassalle^ refused to
practice beforehand, while Racowitz used his time diligently. The
duel was fought on the morning of August 28th near Geneva. Riis-
tow tried in vain to have the meeting deferred on the ground that
Donniges, who was the one with whom Lassalle had alone to do, had
quitted'the scene, but his friend was past persuasion, and would suffer
no delay. In a Geneva hotel Lassalle made his will, bequeathing
Countess Hatzfeldt, who meanwhile had arrived in Switzerland, 90,000
marks, and assigning liberal legacies to Riistow, Lothar Bucher, and
Holthoff, a legal friend who had helped him in the difficulty. The
noming came. Riistow, who has left a long account of this affair, tells
us how he rose at three and went to the gunsmith who had been
ordered to prepare pistols. He chose a weapon and returned with it
to the hotel. At five o'clock he woke Lassalle from a sound sleep,
and he, seeing the pistol, seized it, and falling on his friend's neck,
said, " Now I have just what suits me." By seven o'clock the partj
was ready to start for the place of meeting. Lassalle, who had drunk
a cup of tea, was perfectly calm. At the appointed time the duellists
were on the ground. Just before Lassalle had remarked, " My star is
still in the ascendant." Undisceming astrologer ! The order was
given to fire. Young Racowitz got his ball away first and Lassalle
followed five seconds later — ^but too late : he missed, for he had re-
ceived his antagonist's shot in the abdomen. To the question " Are
you wounded ? " Lassalle merely answered " Yes." He was removed,
suffering terribly, to his hotel, and he lay there two days, though he
scarcely ever spoke. During the night of August 3oth-3ist he died,
his hand resting in that of Countess Hatzfeldt, who sat weeping at his
bedside.^ August 31st is thus regarded as the day of his death.
Heine said of Lassalle, when he first knew him as a young man of
nineteen years, that he appeared to have been bom to die like a gladi-
ator with a smile upon his lips. But his end was, unhappily, far less
proud and majestic. The democrat who from principle would not
fight a duel to satisfy a political enemy, sacrificed his life in an affray
with a man with whom he had had no quarrel.^
1 Just before his death Lassalle wrote ; " 1 hereby declare that I -myself took my life."
2 A few words may be added regarding the leading characters who figured in this sad
tragedy. Herr von Donniges died in Rome on January jth, 1879, of small-pox. Young R»-
Lassall^s Death. i8i
The first thought that occurred to Countess Hatzfeldt was that of
punishment for the murderer of her "dear child." She wrote to Hans
von Billow, " I have sworn an oath on Lassalle's dead body that he
shall be avenged, and I must keep it." Endeavours were made to
move the police, but they had no result. The countess proposed,
moreover, to carry the body round Germany in triumph, and had the
family of the dead not interfered the morbid idea would have been
realised. But at Cologne the police took possession of the coffin on
behalf of Lassalle's relatives, and it was at once taken to Breslau, and
there interred on September 14th in the Jewish Cemetery, where a grave-
stone bears the following inscription, written by Boeckh : " Here rests
what was mortal of Ferdinand Lassalle, the Thinker and the Fighter." 1
Lassalle's death created great consternation throughout the de-
mocratic camp, and meetings in honour of the dead agitator and
leader were held wherever branches of the Universal Association
existed. A bullet wound was thp cause of the calamity, but Lassalle's
physician declared that he could not in any case have lived much ,
longer, for bronchitis had laid firm hold upon his system. "To die in
strife is the law of life," says Goethe. The agitation, with its severe
strain upon his physical as well as mental powers, had undoubtedly
been slowly killing him, and the ball of his rival in love only acceler-
ated the impending end. And now the old story was repeated : yes-
cowltz married Helene and died within a year of consumption. On becoming a widow Helene
settled in Berlin, being disowned by her relations. Without adequate means, she studied for
the stage, relying principally upon her remarkable beauty as a recommendation, and eventually
she married a gifted German actor, who is still living in Berlin. A writer tells how when
Helene went upon the stage all eyes were rivetted upon her, and persons whispered to each
other with something of awe, " That is Lassalle I" Persons who saw the actress have described
to the author the strange effect always produced by her appearance. There seemed to be
something of the supernatural about her, and as she gazed upon the audience with brilliant
eyes — her rich golden-red hair falling in heavy masses upon her well-proportioned figure — all
faces were turned upon her as if drawn by magnetic power. The later history of Helene von
Donniges almost seems to suggest the visitation of the Nemesis whose vengeance Lassalle
invoked. She was separated from her husband, and since the divorce she had passed a
checkered life as an actress in America. Lenbach has painted a striking portrait of this sing-
ular woman.
1 " Hier ruht, was sterblich war von Ferdinand Lassalle, dem Denker und dem Kampfer."
A " Working Men's Song " contains the verse ;
" Zu Breslau ein Kirchhof,
Bin Todter im Grab ;
Dort schlummert der Eine,
Der Schwerter nns gab."
1 82 German Socialism.
terday's preacher became the text for to-day's sermon. Lassalle's
melancholy death excited a flood of comments, as wells as estimates
of his character, in the German Press. The Allgemeine Zeitung of
Augsburg wrote : " In any case Germany has lost in Lassalle a great
power, and it can only be deplored that it was a vis intemperata . . .
Many thorns but also laurels will grow upon his grave." Heine once
said, with the cynicism characteristic of him, that the most agreeable
of all tasks is that of following the funeral of an enemy. There may
thus be some slight excuse for the studied strictures which were
passed upon the dead by a part of the opposition Press. Strange to
say, a great number of Lassalle's followers refused to believie that he
Was dead. Heine had called him the Messiah of the nineteenth cen-
tury, and many people were convinced then and for years later that
he had only disappeared for a time in order one day to return to the
scene of his labours and conquests with enhanced glory, a singular
belief which only proves further the vast influence of the man.
Immediately after Lassalle's decease the documents relating to the
duel and the events which led up to it were collected with a view to
the publication of an authenic narrative. In this work Wilhelm Lieb-
knecht, Schweitzer, Hofstetten, and Bernhard Becker were associated,
and Countess Hatzfeldt first entrusted Lothar Bucher with the duty of
chronicling his friend's last days. But the choice was soon recalled,
and Karl Marx, ^hen in London, was next addressed on the subject
Marx excused himself on account of want of time, though in truth ths
work would not in any case have been congenial. Finally Becker
was asked to edit the collected documents. He undertook the task,
and the result of his labours was a volume bearing the title of " Reve-
lations concerning the tragic end of Ferdinand Lassalle," which
appeared in 1868, a work containing about as much unwholesome
reading as could well be packed into 137 pages of small print. Becker
says in his preface that he acted independently of the countess and
thus drew upon himself her " deep rancour and ire." But Becker's
work was not in the proper sense of the word official, for before its
completion Countess Hatzfeldt demanded the return of all letters.
The editor gave up the originals but retained copies. From the orig-
inal documents Liebknecht was then asked to prepare the desired
narrative. Working alone with the countess he finished a part of the
Story, but he, too, in the end quarrelled with the lady, and the ultimate re-
Lassatl^s Death. 183
suit of this succession of interrupted plans was that the countess refused
to allow the work to be published, although many sheets had been
printed. The compiler of the " Revelations" tells us that two generals,
a knight of the Military Order of Savoy, a colonel of the Baden Insur-
rection, two notaries, a bishop, a Bavarian Minister, a Bavarian charge
d'affaires, a. Berlin advocate, a count, a baron, a contributor to Monu-
menta Gennania; Histotica, as well as persons of less note, took part
in one way or another in the final scene in Lassalle's life-tragedy.
Lassalle seemed to disappear just when his powerful help was
most needful to the democratic cause. But although the mission
which he undertook to perform remained incomplete he had accom-
plisheda great work. It is often said that Lassalle was the founder
of Socialism in Germany. If by that it be meant that he was the
cause, such credit cannot be bestowed upon him. Though, howevei;
not the cause, he was certainly the occasion of modem Socialistic, de<
velopments, and to him may fairly be attributed the introduction of
social-Democracy into German politics. Until Lassalle entered
public hfe the working classes had been without organisation, and had
wandered about like sheep without a shepherd. He it was who drew
the masses together and formed for the first time a true working-men's
party. Thus the more advanced organisations which have followed*
the Universal Association owe their existence and success largely to
his almost unaided exertions. Where later associations have often
departed from the ideal which he always held before him, has been in
their taking an international character. This is, indeed, the funda-
mental difference between Lassalle and Karl Marx. The former was
national in sympathies and aims — a German of the Germans— ^whereas
the latter was in the fullest sense of the word cosmopolitan, for his
home was the wide world and his countrymen were all mankind.
CHAPTER X.
CHARACTERISTICS OF LASSALLE. THE
MAN AND THE AGITATOR.
To analyse the character of a man like Ferdinand Lassalle is by no
means the easiest of tasks. It is a character which seems full of
inconsistencies and contradictions. We see in it some of the noblest
virtues existing side by side with some of the greatest faults. In his
own day Lassalle was to most people an inexplicable riddle, and even
now, nearly a quarter of a century after his death, it cannot be said
that all mystery has disappeared from his singular personality. Very
probably Lassalle did not thoroughly understand himself, and in any
case he was' a man whom it was and is difficult for others to under-
stand. We have already seen enough of him to be sure that his was
no ordinary intellect. Precocious as a child, he developed powers of
mind which were capable of achieving far more than they did.
Leaving out of the question his premature death— when he fell to an
adversary's bullet he was not yet forty years old — it is impossible to
say to how high a position he might have climbed in science and
literature had he lived in the quiet of the study instead of in the din
of political warfare. And yet speculation like this is vain, for Lassalle
was no more born for the study than the eagle is born for the prairie-
land. He was a thinker, but he was also, and this above all things, a
fighter ; and thus no epitaph more truthfully describes the dead than
does the simple line which may be read upon Lassalle's gravestone.
He threw himself into the wild conflict of parties because he could
not help it. The man who could say, " I have been a Republican
from childhood," who, urged on by irresistible conviction, defied the
crown and the law at the age of three-and-twenty and for his pains
was sent to prison — whither he went, as he says, " with the indiffer-
ence with which another would go to a ball " — such a man could not
have kept out of politics if he had wished. And living at a time when
constitutional struggles were fierce and frequent, he necessarily threw
his whole soul into controversial warfare : he could not have done
Characteristics of Lassalle. 185
otherwise. "My spirit drives me on," Lassalle makes one of his
characters say in, fortunately, the only drama which he ever wrote.
Therein we have a key to the whole public life of the man.
But before considering Lassalle as an agitator, let us inquire into
his character as a man. Was he quite human, human in his sym-
pathies and passions, in his aspirations and strivings ? It must
be answered that both in strength and weakness he was like as
other men. His was a proud spirit, and a spirit fearless as it was
proud. He seldom knew a difficulty and he never acknowledged
an impossibility. He had a confidence and a will which time after
time removed mountains of obstacles such as would have taken the
heart out of most men ; and even if the obstacles could not be
cleared away, he always saw a way through or over them. Brave
men and cataracts, we are told, channel their own paths. That
is what Lassalle did and had to do, for he struck out in a direction
which no one had hitherto taken. The difficulties with which he
had to contend were enormous, but he never feared them. Indeed,
his true manhood asserted itself most when he was wrestling with
perplexities and "grappling with his evil star." True, there were
moments when he felt that the measure of his success did not come
up to the extent of his exertions, but these times of discouragement
weie also times of severe physical weakness -and suffering, against
which the stoutest courage would have vainly striven ; and when
annoyance and vexation disappeared hope shone forth again bright as
before. Lassalle was a man of powerful passions, and in this fact we
have the explanation both of much that was good and much that was
bad in his life and acts. Only strong passions would have enabled
him to become the great power he was as an orator, an^ agitator, and
a ruler of men ; and only strong and uncurbed passions would have
allowed him to fall into the mistakes which sullied his private character
and were the indirect cause of his unhappy death. He was, indeed,
essentially a man of extremes. He went to extremes in nearly every-
thing he did and said. He could be an ardent friend and he could be
a rancorous enemy. As an orator he could speak words of deepest
pathos or rain down anathemas pointed with poison and winged with
fire. Lassalle had no sooner entered the political arena with his gospel
of salvation for the working classes than he saw the meaning of that
saying of his friend Heine, that " Wherever a great soul gives utterance
1 86 German Socialism.
to its thoughts, there also is Golgotha." He was pursued with relent-
less violence by his old associates of the all-powerful Progressist party,
; but he answered hate with hate — an eye for an eye, a tooth for a tooth.
With the bellicose warrior in Wallenstein's Camp he said, "Do they seek
quarrels? I am ready." Thus in his denunciations of this party we
see Lassalle's passionate nature in its fiercest mood. A man like this
was hardly Ukely to win the love of others. Fair women courted him,
friends eagerly sought his society, and the working classes followed
him with blind devotion, but in all this there was little real affection.
His grand individuality and his brilliant parts fascinated, dazzled,
magnetised. There was something in him — that proverbial "inexplic-
able something" — which attracted people and held them as by a spell.
The lady ^ who most of all fell a victim to this wonderful power called
him a Satan, and spoke of his " daimonic presence." ^ There was,
indeed, besides a Faustian similarity, a certain Mephistophelian trait
in his character : not that the trait was acquired, for it formed part of
his being from the beginning. And so we find that throughout all his
agitation he never got right to the hearts of the great masses of the
people. He was a sort of political Mahomet, the attachment of whos4
followers was not without a fanatical side. Genuine affection implies not
only lovingness in the subject but lovableness in the object, and let us
be as indulgent as we may, Lassalle's was not a very lovable nature. In
private life none had so many admirers with so few true friends, and in
public life no one, perhaps, received so much adulation and caressing
and so little ^real love. The homage paid to him in his own social
circle was unbounded. There he ruled alone, king by divine right.
Even Prince Bismarck found the society of Lassalle agreeable and
stimulating, was content when in his presence to listen without himseli
speaking, and was always sorry when conversations which lasted hours
came to an end.^ As a debater and a conversationalist, indeed, Las-
salle was approached by none who came in contact with him. Quick
of perception, he saw through an argument before his opponent had
well begun to develop it. Questions which to ordinary people only
^ Helene von Ddnniges.
2 In the sense in which Bayard Taylor speaks of Lord Beaconsfield : " He is what Goethe
calls a daimonic (not demoniac !) nature . . . possessed with a strange, weird spirit,' —
Letter to a friend, September loth, 1878, "Life and Letters of Bayard Taylor." '(London,
1884), vol. ii., p. 757.
3 Speech in the German Reichstag, September 17th, 1878.
Characteristics of Lassalle. 187
had two sides, he would at once show to have as many as a tetrahexa-
hedron. No wonder that he could not bear to be misunderstood,
who himself understood others so easily. Once he wrote to Rodbertus
— it was the only time he showed ruffled feathers during a long con-
troversial correspondence with this valued friend — that one of his
criticisms had "nearly made him angry" because it proved that he
had not been comprehended. Like Lord Palmerston he was very im-
petuous, and was wont to regard slowness of perception as equivaleilt
to downright stupidity.
It is often said that a clear dividing line should be drawn between
the public and the private life of great men, and that it is nothing less
than impious curiosity to penetrate beyond the sphere of public con-
duct. Whatever be the ethics of such a doctrine, it is impossible to
regard it as applicable to the case of one like Lassalle. To cloak his
frailties would be to approve them, to conceal his mistakes would be
to share in their guilt. For Lassalle was a social reformer ; his life
was professedly devoted to the regeneration of society. Again and
again he preached, as from the housetops, the gravity of life's mission,
and the responsibilities resting upon the favoured portion of mankind.
Thus, for instance, he once addressed his judges in Berlin : " If I may
give you the quintessence of long and painful studies, the tmiversaj
result of my researches in the most various historical sciences, in a
single sentence, this sentence runs : One of two things. Either let us
drink Cyprian wine and kiss beautiful maidens, — in other words, in-
dulge in the most common selfishness of pleasure — or, if we are to
speak of the State and morality, let us dedicate all our powers to the im-
provement of the dark lot of the vast majority of mankind, out of whose
night-covered floods we, the propertied class, only rise like solitary
pillars as if to show how dark are those floods, how deep is thei:
abyss." That is noble, that is sublime. Surely the man who spoke thus
should be held to his principles. It cannot be said that his private affairs
have no concern for the world. But De moriuiis is a cry that is always
raised when much that is disagreeable might be said. Rodbertus once
wrote that Lassalle had politically both an exoteric and an esoteric
character, and the same may be said of Lassalle the everyday man.
There was the exoteric Lassalle, the eloquent orator, the skilful
writer of books, the evangelist of the working classes, the reformer of
society, the crusader against class abuses, the castigator of the rich
1 88 German Socialism.
man's selfishness, the pleader of the poor man's wrongs. This was the
Lassalle who spent his money freely in a cause that was dear to his
heart and his ambition, who devoted to that cause his great intellectual
powers and his profound learning, who, for that cause, " scorned de-
lights and lived laborious days," toiling like a galley-slave, sacrificing
his health, daring the judge and the gaol. How pleasant if the veil had
never been drawn — or, better still, if there had been no veil to draw.
But there was the esoteric Lassalle, whom one would rather not have
known. During his life the truth was only half revealed, but after his
death his enemies and even some of his former friends emulated each
other in the unwholesome task of dragging the whole dismal history to
the light of day. Had Lassalle been as, ready to practise private mor-
ality as he was to preach public morality, he might have left behind
him an influence which would have lived on through generations,
blessing and edifying. The man who could say in public, "My friends,
I do not belong to the pious,'' was frank and straightforward, but if he
had left questions of morality alone, he would have been more than
that — he would have been honest. This is the blot on the escutcheon.
After all, it is true what Imlac says in " Rasselas," that preachers of
morality often discourse like angels, and live like ordinary men.
But here we have one of those strange inconsistencies in Lassalle's
character which are observable in whatever direction we turn. Though
his private conduct was so unworthy of him, he could be a very saint
when enunciating public and political principles, and a very martyr in
defending them. What could be finer than this ;
" With truth there can be no arguing. You might as well wish to
argue with the pillar of fire which went before the Children of Israel."
Or read his denunciation of the scribblers, whose opinions were
dependent on the amount of their hire :
" I hate the prostitution of the pen ; I would never debase myself to
it. I regard it as contemptible and more degrading to a man than
the prostitution of the body, since my mind is holier to me than that
which envelops it."
Lassalle's contradictory character must be borne in mind when
endeavours are made, as they yet are, to prove that he was after all
only an actor. If his early life had not been reconcilable with his
later, it might have been difficult to show that the zeal and devotion
which he threw into his political agitation were the outcome of deep
Characteristics of Lassalle. 189
conviction. But no man has ever shown more steadfast fidelity to
principles espoused in early youth. A touch of vanity may be traced
in the words which he once addressed to a Berlin Court of Law, but the
words are indisputable truth for all that :—
" What makes me," he asked, " direct public opinion to the unjust
and crying condition of the lower classes? Alone I go my way
through society, persecuted by Crown Solicitors, condemned by the
Courts, and, believe me, regarded by the Liberal Press with even
greater horror than by Crown Solicitors and Courts. What, I say,
constrains me to all this ? I will tell you. It is because — I can say
it, and on this occasion I must say it — it is because my studies are
deeper, my knowledge more extensive, and my horizon wider than
theirs : therefore it is impossible for me to appease myself with the
shibboleths of the day."
It was not love of fame but the conviction formed by long study,
thought, and observation, which caused him to take to arms and dare
all opposition. A man who divided two years pretty equally between
the prisoners' dock, the public platform, and his own home should be
the last man in the world to charge with insincerity.
Bemhard Becker says that Lassalle wished to be a German Gari-
baldi, and he seeks to show that he purposed gaining the highest
power in the State by means of a Social-Democratic revolution.^
These are, however, the idle speculations of a friend turned enemy
and they do not deserve to be treated seriously. Lassalle was at
heart Republican, but he knew as well as any one that the monarchical
principle was firmly established in Prussia, and he even went so far as
to say at one time that monarchy with a reformed society would be a
beneficent form of government. If, however, Lassalle was not so in-
ordinately ambitious as some people try to make out, he was inordi-
nately vain. This was one of the most striking, though at the same
time most harmless traits in his character. His vanity was of the kind
that neither hurts nor offends. Vanity seemed natural to him as it is
to the peacock, and if he had been less vain he would have been less
interesting. Even in his manhood, when at the head of a popular
agitation, he was excessively fond of dressing well. He appeared both
on the platform and in the Court of Law attired like a fop. He was in
1 The palpable fiction which Helene von Racowitza writes on this subject In " Meine
Beziehungen zu Ferdinand Lassalle ' is on a par with most of the contents of that work.
I go ' German Socialism.
the habit, too, of comparing himself with great men. Now it was So-
crates, now Luther, or Robespierre, or Cobden, or Sir Robert Peel, and
once he found his parallel by going to Faust. Heine told him that he
had good reason to be proud of his attainments, and Lassalle took Heine
at his word. He would often assume a tone of lofty superiority when
addressing even judges on the bench. " Ask friends and foes alike
about me," he once exclaimed, '' a:nd if they are men who have them-
selves learned something, both will agree unanimously that I write
every line armed with the entire culture of my century,"^ and in the
same breath he added that his great political antagonist, Schulze — a
man of no mean parts, and nearly twenty years his senior---had only
" the education of a barber."
Nor would he hesitate to point publicly to the "remarkable spectacle
of an agitation which has laid hold on the masses, which agitates an
entire nation ^ro and contra, and which has, without the aid of events
hrhich throw the people into the street, proceeded from the conscience
ofo«em^n," or to claim not only scholars, but a bishop, and even a
king as his disciples. After all, it was hard for one like Lassalle to
tolerate quietly all the ignorance, and what was worse, the science
falsely so called which he found rife, and it is not strange that he
should have entertained the liveliest contempt for the men, neither by
nature nor nurture wise — "ridiculous people," as he called them, "who
think themselves political economists, fill all the columns of our daily
Press, and sing to the misguided a Hosannah on the perfection and
excellence of our economic conditions " — who, without having devoted
a hundredth part of his toil to the study of political and social ques-
tions, presumed to answer his arguments with mere affirmations and
contradictions. Nowhere do we see the spirit of haughtiness and the
feeling of superiority which were so characteristic of Lassalle better
displayed than in an incident that occurred during the speech made at
Frankfort on May 17th, 1863. Lassalle had been interrupted, and the
chairman pleaded for fair play since he was " on his defence." The re-
joinder was, perhaps, unexpected.
"I must protest," said Lassalle, "against the word which has
Adolf Held remarks (" Sozialismus, Sozialdemokratie und Sozialpolitik," p. 8. Leipzig,^
1878) : " When Lassallt says of himself that he writes every line armed with the entire culture
of the century, there is undoubtedly contained in this bold phrase the truth that the leaders of
the Social-Democracy of to-day do not in any way cgme behind their literary opponents in
philosophical, historical) and economic training."
Characteristics of Lassalle. 19 1
escaped the chairman, and which he himself will not desire to adhere
to. I do not stand here in the position of an accused person who has to
defend himself. I stand entirely in the position of a man who wishes
to instruct and inform you, and not to defend himself." At the same time
he did not scruple to say upon another occasion that " In order to lec-
ture to working-men a far higher degree of education is necessary than
would be requisite for lectures to students in the lecture-room."
Like many great men before him, Lassalle was also superstitious.
He would never be one of a company of thirteen at dinner, and he used
to comment upon the fact that he had always lived in houses bearing
the number thirteen. Conversing once, long before the end of his life,
with a friend, now living, to whom he was greatly attached, he referred
to a certain augury and added, "I shall not live to be forty years old."
A.S a matter of fact, his age fell seven months short of that term.
But it is especially as an agitator that Lassalle has interest for us.
Brandes says aptly that the word agitator might have been invented
for him. In this capacity it was that he achieved his greatest
triumphs, for in agitation his genius found a fitting sphere for
exercise. When in 1862 he came forward in Berlin as a platform
lecturer the city was taken by storm. Even the reactionary Press saw
there was more in the " revolutionary Jew well known in his day "
than appeared on the surface, and predicted that the last had not been
heard of him. The Progressists were wild that this maker of books
should dare to claim the platform as his battle ground, and yet they
were puzzled with it all, just as Miles Standish was after reading his
Caesar :
" A wonderful man was this Csesar :
You are a writer and I am a fighter, but here is a fellow
Who could both write and fight, and in both was equally skilful."
What was it, then, that gave Lassalle his marvellous power as a
demagogue? Let it be remembered that the subjects on which he
spoke were for the most part scientific and technical. His addresses
dealt largely with dry theories of political economy, which often have
little interest for the educWed and might be expected to have less still
for the uneducated. Eloquence, enthusiasm, and deep earnestness
account for a good deal of Lassalle's success, but all these advantalges
in his favour would have failed to win the masses had he not joined to
them a great (qualification which distinguished hiin from aU popular
192 ' German Socialism.
orators of the day. This was his rare capacity for presenting scientific
truths and theories in such a form that they could be " understanded
of the people." His speeches never presumed prior knowledge. He
took up a subject at the beginning, discussed and examined it
thoroughly, and only left it when he had reached the logical end. The
momentous address which he delivered in Berlin in the spring of 1862,
and which he afterwards published with the title " tjber Verfassungs-
wesen," is a model composition of the kind. Step by step — and only
one step at a time — he follows his complicated theme, until when the
conclusions of the argument are reached, it is easy to anticipate them.
Necessarily this thorough method of treating a question made his
speeches at times long. He hardly ever spoke for a shorter time than
two hours, but he once reached four hours. This was at Frankfort on
May 17th, 1863, and the opposition Press spoke of his loquacity as
unconscionable. Lassalle in his next speech would not allow that he
had exceeded the bounds of moderation. "The time a speaker takes,"
he said, '' does not depend upon the speaker but the subject." Luthet
disputed with Eck for three whole weeks : might he not speak for
four hours when the question at issue was not less important ? But
Lassalle could be abstruse, and he often was when engaged in wordy
contests with his opponents. Then all the pugnacity of his nature
showed itself, as he confused his antagonists with irony and demolished
them with subtle logic or dialectic. On such occasions he was to be
seen at his best, as, with proud mien and eye "in a fine frenzy rolling,"
he watched the torture of the enemy who had dared to rouse him.
Lassalle strove after effect : of course he did, as orators have
always done, in spite of the sublime principles of Socrates. He ad-
mitted as much, when he apologised to Rodbertus for the roughness
of his speeches as delivered on the gpround of " the exciting rather
than theoretically contemplative effect which I must seek after." But
one thing he did not do, and that is, flatter the vanity and play to the
caprice of his hearers. Of this kind of thing we find no trace in his
published speeches. On the other hand this is what we do find :
"You German working-men are curious people. French and
EngUsh working-men have to be shown how their miserable condition
may be improved ; but you have first to be shown that you are in a
miserable condition. So long as you have a piece of bad sausage and
a glass of beer, you do not observe that you want anything. That is
Characteristics of Lassalle. 193
a result of your accursed absence of needs. What, you will say, is
this, then, not a virtue ? Yes, in the eyes of the Christian preacher of
morality it is certainly a virtue. Absence of needs is the virtue of the
Indian pillar saint and of the Christian monk, but in the eyes of the
student of history and the political economist it is not. Ask all
political economists what is the greatest misfortune for a nation ? The
absence of wants. For these are the spurs of its development and of
civilisation. The Neapolitan lazaroni are so far behind in civilisation,
because they have no wants, because they stretch themselves out con-
tentedly and warm themselves in the sun when they have secured a
handful of maccaroni. Why is the Russian Cossack so backward in
civilisation ? Because he eats tallow candles and is happy when he
can fuddle himself on bad liquor. To have as many lieeds as possible,
but to satisfy them in a respectable way, that is the virtue of the
present, of the economic age ! And so long as you do not understand
and follow that truth I shall preach in vain."'
He also quoted Ludwig Bome's ^ words : " Other nations may be
slaves ; they may be put in chains and be held down by force, but
the Germans are flunkies — it is not necessary to lay chains on them,
they niay be allowed to wander free about the house." Outspoken
words like these may not have flattered ; but it was no object of
Lassalle to flatter. The motto of his public life was " Aussprechen
Das was istl' and to this motto he was always faithful. Lassalle
spoke extempore. At the most he used a few notes, unless indeed his
subject required statistical treatment, and then he would carry with
him written and printed statements even to superfluity.^ If he had to
deliver an important speech he would generally draw out a rough
draft, and this he would carefully peruse, a strong memory enabling
him to retain all that was necessary of the scheme. Still, even if he
committed a speech entirely to memory, he was never put out if un-
expected incidents occurred in the course of its delivery, for his self-
1 "Arbeiterlesebuch," pp. 31, 32.
2 Ludwig B6me, the famous German publicist, was bom May i8th, 17S6, at Frankfort-on
Main. Like Lassalle he was a Jew and changed his name, the original form being L6b
Baruch. He died February 12th, 1837.
S He writes to Rodbertus April 28th, 1863 : "At Frankfort I shall speak four hours and
still I shall not have time to go into detail as I should like. I shall have to refer to every.
thing briefly. I shall attack them with all sorts of things, mortality lists, statistics on the
duration of life amongst various classes, but in everything I shall be very brief." This was
the speech whose length caused the Opposition Press so much vexation.
194 German Socialism.
control was complete. Gifted though he was, it was with him no light
matter to speak, and he always looked, back upon the finished task
with feelings of intense relief. A tribute paid to Lassalle on his death
by a leading German newspaper ' deserves to be quoted : " Lassalle
was amongst the greatest orators whom Germany has produced. We
do not say this thoughtlessly or without authority, for we have heard
nearly all the celebrated orators who have come forward in this
country during the last generation."
Le style dest Phomtne. The words are very true in the case ot
Lassalle. Who could be mistaken in the character of a man whose
favourite metaphors are derived from the army, and whose commonest
expressions breathe the spirit of force and resolution. He speaks of
his followers as his " troops " or his " battaUons," he talks of fighting
"battles," of defeating the "enemy," of holding "reviews," and of
surrounding his arguments with "coats of mail." Ricardo's law ot
wages becomes in his hand an " iron law," and he is never tired of
using phrases like " iron fate," " iron hand," and " iron grasp." For
iron he had an especial affection ; he terms it the " God of man," the
" magic rod," man's " last retreat in despair," and " the highest pledge
of his liberty." When Lassalle speaks of the old system of absolutism
he declares that it must be met with " firm grip and the knee on its
breast." He has not originated a social movement, but " kindled a
conflagration." Similes of this kind and figures like that of Revolution
advancing " with wild, flowing hair and with iron sandals on its feet "
are not uncommon in Lassalle's speeches. We should expect the
orator who employed this forceful style of speech to be himself a man
of force and iron will, and such Lassalle was. His language but ex-
pressed the stern mould of his character. He loved to speak of iron
and fire, for his nature was full of both. He went to the battlefield for
his similes, because to him life was a battle, an endless, truceless
struggle in which no quarter could be given or expected. And if he
personified violent changes by weird and dreadful forms, it was be-
cause the problems which agitated society and the State had for him
a terrible importance. He speaks somewhere of his "glowing soul"
{meine gliihende Seek). That was no idle or exaggerated form of
speech. His soul did indeed glow, and it seemed at times to be
heated by a hundred fires. It is worthy of notice that although
1 AU^etmin^ Ztitun^ of Aii^sbur^, September 6th, 1864
Characteristics of Lassalle. 195
Lassalle looked favourably upon, the use of metaphorical language
when he wished to bring a great thought home to the minds of his
hearers, his speeches were strikingly poor in illustration, a common
expedient with so many orators. Not that he was lacking in resource.
The explanation rather is that he preferred to keep attention centred
upon the regular course of his argument, and this would scarcely have
been possiblehad distracting elements been introduced into his discourse.
Very fortunately we have preserved an excellent description of
Lassalle as an orator, and it has the twofold merit that it is from a
very careful observer, and from a friend of the agitator. Paul Lindau''
relates that one day in June, 1864 — at which time he was the editor of
a Dusseldorf newspaper — an agent of the Social-Democratic Working
Men's Party came to teU him that Lassalle was expected at Dusseldorf
shortly, as he had to defend himself in a trial to be reheard there on ap-
peal, and the publicity of his journal was desired. Lindau gave the as-
sistance sought, and the result was that on Lassalle's arrival an introduc-
tion took place. The following account is given of the first interview :
" The conversation was almost one-sided, for I was satisfied with
playing the rSle of hearer. A word discreetly interpolated was enough
to prompt LaSsalle immediately to a long and always interesting and
well-connected reply. He accompanied his words with very expressive
though at times too uneasy gestures. He would often stop, and he
frequently changed the tone of his voice. He had the habit of begin-
ning his sentences in a high tenor voice and of ending them in a
euphonious baritone. He articulated very distinctly, and spoke with
precision, but he could not disown the Silesian. On separating,
Lassalle pressed my hand as though I had been a close friend."
When Lindau called upon Lassalle the following morning, he
found him stretched upon the sofa with his legs reared up against a
table. In this position he was drawing up an outline of the speech he
intended to make. What follows is amusing. Lindau had been in-
vited to dine at one o'clock.
" Shortly before one I appeared in his room. He rehearsed his
speech before me while making his toilette — I had found him in an
unusually elegant, almost foppishly fashionable morning undress-
but two o'clock struck in the meantime. By three I had risen at least
i See article " Ferdinand Lassalle's letzte Rede : eine petsdnliche Errinening von PauJ
tii&ttau " in the Pfutscht Svcherei, No. 4, 1882 (Breslau).
196 German Socialism.
ten times as a hint that we should go, but while he was speaking
Lassalle appeared to have entirely lost interest in all secondary things,
such as time and the stomach. He grew more and more animated as
he spoke, though I did little to excite this vivacity. All the time he
was walking to and fro in the tolerably large room, pacing probably
several hundred times from the door to the window^ and from the
window to the door, gesticulating the while and oscillating his head
peculiarly, now right and now left, now lowering it and now raising it.
All he had said was fulmination ; but although the remarkable man so
enthralled me, I could not forget that I had for two hours been vainly
striving to get to dinner. It was a quarter past three, and now I finally
braced myself up for a long speech : ' Herr Lassalle,' I said, ' I'm
frightfully hungry 1 ' ' Then why 'didn't you say so long ago ? ' he
replied, speaking the first part of the sentence in his ordinary tone,
but rising to an unusually high falsetto at the words ' long ago,' and
ending in the deepest baritone."
The day of the trial came — it was June 27th — and all Diisseldorf
was astir. As usual Lassalle appeared in Court in full dress, with
polished shoes, dress coat, and white cravat, but he carried with him
so many books that the Public Prosecutor involuntarily exclaimed,
" Um Gotteswillen ! " and a buzz of hilarity passed through the
spectators. A special table had to be allotted to the accused, for he
had ^rought a whole library — a library of books, pamphlets, news-
papers, and documents. Of the speech Lindau says : —
" Lassalle's speech gave throughout the impression of a free oration,
which certainly had been previously well thought out and had been
consolidated by concise arrangement on paper. He held in his right
hand an octavo sheet at which he would every now and then cast a
hurried glance, and then he appeared to extemporise for a long time.
He spoke with exemplary clearness and with great rhetorical force.
The peculiarity which I had observed in private conversation, the
modulation of his flexible voice in all keys, showed itself here and in
still greater measure. His speech was effective in the highest degree,
though it was not entirely free from the theatrical. For every humour
which he wished to produce he could find the right tone of voice ; but
everything gave one the impression — as with Gambetta — that it had
been predesigned, had been previously studied, or at least rehearsed.
Whether he became scornful and ironical over the deficient knowledge
Characteristics of Lassalle. t97
of his judges, whether he employed the pathos of his own conscious-
ness and struck the natural tone of conviction, or sought to produce
an effect by the scornful recital of his martyrdom : — notwithstanding
admiration for the acuteness of his thoughts, for his conciseness and
power of expression, and for his great eloquence, one could not get rid
of the feeling that he was an actor. This was increased by the panto-
mime and the gestures with which Lassalle accompanied the speech. ,
"The expression of his countenance continually changed. Now a
scornful smile played upon his mouth and he half closed his eyes —
half pitifully, half contemptuously ; but he soon opened them wide,
and threatening looks shot up to the raised seats of the judges. Now
he moved his head carelessly to and fro — as, for instance, when he
alluded to a most weighty and most abstruse scientific statement as
something quite secondary, and as a matter of course known to every
judge — ^but he soon raised his head haughtily and defiantly as a
Roman Emperor.
" His spoken thoughts were mostly illustrated by movements of the
hands. Hands and arms were in almost uninterrupted activity. He
was only quiet when drawing keen, purely legal deductions, for which
he wished to gain the full attention of the judges ; then he supported
himself lightly with his left hand upon the table, and hid the right, in
which there was always one of the octavo sheets, behind the fold of
his wide-cut waistcoat. If he wished to produce a rhetorical effect, he
gesticulated in a most remarkable manner with his right hand. First
he jerked his arm forward as if boxing, then he hacked the air with
the crumpled sheets of paper as though he were beating two-four time
prestissimo J then he raised his hand threateningly and lashed about
with it so passionately that several times the written sheets slipped
from his fingers and fell fluttering slowly to the ground. . .
" During the long speech Lassalle often changed his position. He
walked to and fro behind the book-covered table, anon remaining
stationary for a few moments as if rooted to the ground, but only to
advance again several steps and slowly approach the judges. This
pacing movement was especially noticeable at the close of the speech.
During the very effective sentences with which he ended, he moved
gradually and quite imperceptibly forward, so that in uttering the last
words he had nearly reached the steps leading to the podium of the
judges' bench. The peroration he addressed to the judges in so elevated
198 German Socialism.
a voice and with such violent gestures that the President involuntarily
drew back somewhat. The speech produced the deepest effect.''
Let us form what opinions we will of Lassalle's doctrines, and judge
as we will of his faults, the fact remains that we have to do with a
remarkable man, with one who on many grounds deserves to rank
amongst the representative men of the century. In Germany his work
is commemorated by one of the most momentous movements of the
age. Let Social-Democracy be what it may, it is a great power in
German politics, a power which cannot be ignored, and Ferdinand
Lassalle must be regarded as its originator. It is now nearly a quarter
of a century since Lassalle died, yet his memory is kept fresh by the
thought of what he did and wrote and said and suffered for the popu-
lar cause when democratic tribunes were not so plentiful as now.
Every year his birthday and the day of his unhappy death are religi-
ously observed by Socialist organisations,^ and so far as can be judged
at present, there seems every likelihood that the prediction which the
agitator made in the ears of his prosecutors more than twenty yeara
ago will be fulfilled :
" Oh, gentlemen," he said, " fifty years after my death people will
think otherwise than do the Diisseldorf Judges of First Instance of the
powerful and remarkable movement of civihsation which I am accom-
plishing under your eyes ; and a grateful posterity — of that I am
certain — will apologise to my shades for the affronts which this judg-
ment and this Crown Solicitor have offered to me."
Lassalle would have been a very Savonarola of social reform had he
only possessed the holy inspiration of the wild Florentine. That,
however, he lacked conspicuously, and his work suffered for the
deficiency. As it is, his figure stands forth upon the canvas of modem
history clear and prominent with its light and shade, its attractive and
its repellent features. " He is great," says Emerson, " who is what
he is from nature, and who never reminds us of others." Tried by
that test Lassalle must clearly be awarded the laurels of greatness.
1 On September 4th, 1887, a very remarkable Lassalle-Feier took place at Basel, in whose
Burgvogtei Hall a great assembly of German and Swiss Socialists met to commemorate the
death of the father of Social-Democracy. Liebknecht lectured on the position of Lassalle in
modern history and claimed it as Lassalle's special merit that he had placed the labourers'
question upon a ground both scientific and practical by the organisation of the working classes
and the proclamation of a Social-Democratic programme.
CHAPTER Xi.
LASSALLE'S SOCIALISM.
Lassalle attributes the modem growth of the working class in
importance to the doctrines proclaimed by the French Revolution.
From the Middle Ages downward the supreme element in the State
and society had been land-ownership. Landed proprietors, favoured
by both political and economic conditions, were able for centuries to
retain predominant power, and thus the classes excluded ffom
ownership of the soil were kept in a condition of impotence or
servitude. The Reformation came, and djiring the following two
centuries a gradual revolution took place, whose culmination was the
epoch-making event of 1789. Before this time the position of the
nobility, as of the clergy, had vastly altered in fact if not in law, owing
largely to the development of industry, the accumulation of capital,
and the growth of personal estate. What the French Revolution did,
therefore, was to proclaim rather than create a new order of things.
It struck the hour, telling how far mankind had got in the onwarS
march of time. In the new order the third estate or the bourgeoisie
came to ascendency in the State, the rights of man were proclaimed,
and the abolition of privilege and prerogative was decreed. But it
was not long before a new oligarchy usurped the powers of that which
had been dethroned from supremacy, and the last state became worse
than the first. Where the nobility had ruled with the ownership of
land, the bourgeoisie ruled with the ownership of capital. The nobility,
on the strength of their privileged position, escaped taxation, and
imposed the burden on the third estate ; and in the same way the
bourgeoisie, by means of the system of indirect taxation, transferred
the weight from their own shoulders to those of the working classes.
Lassalle holds that a new historical era began with February 24th,
1848, for then the predominance of the fourth estate was proclaimed.
Now, however, we have reached the last stage of social development.
As the fourth estate cannot lay claim to new privileges, it is equivalent
to the entire human race, its cause is that of all humanity, its liberty
200 German Socialism.
is the liberty of mankind, and its supremacy is the supremacy of all.
The supremacy of all, because the principle of the working class will
henceforth be the ruling principle of society, and all members of the
human family will be workers in so far as they have the will to make
themselves useful to society. Holding these views regarding the
development of society, it is not surprising to find Lassalle making
constant use of the idea of revolution. But revolution with him does
not mean necessarily a violent organic change in the institutions of
the State. " Revolution," he once told his judges, " is an overturning,
and a revolution always takes place — ^whether it be with or without
force is a matter of no importance — when an entirely new principle is
introduced in the place of the existing order. Reform, on the other
hand, takes place when the principle of the existing order is retained,
but is developed to more liberal or more consequent and just con-
clusions. Here, again, the question of means is of no importance. A
reform may be effected by insurrection and bloodshed, and a revolution
may take place in the deepest peace."^ Thus he regarded the
development of princely power in Germany as a revolutionary
phenomenon, but the Peasant War of 1525, bloody as it was, as merely
a reactionary movement ; the progress made by industry in the same
century was likewise revolutionary, and the invention of the spinning
jenny in the eighteenth was essentially such. Revolution is, therefore,
the handmaid of progress, but there can be no such thing as creating
or even hastening revolution. " To wish to make a revolution," he
says in the Arbeiterprogramm, " is the foolishness of immature men,
who have no knowledge of the laws of history.'' In the same way it
is equally childish to think of stemming a revolution for which society
is prepared. " If the revolution be in society, in its actual condition,
then it must come out — there is no help for it-^-and pass into legisla-
tion." Lassalle felt that in his day revolution was approaching.
History told him of its approach, and told him, too, that its advance
could not be impeded. It was Lassalle's master, Hegel, who once
wi'ote, " We learn from history that no one ever learns aijything from
history." This apothegm may be taken as the sum and substance
of more than one speech delivered by Lassalle before the Law Courts.
" You do not believe in revolution," he said once to his judges, " but
my studies have taught me to believe in revolution." Come it would,
1 " f)ie Wissenschaft uad die Arbeiter," p. 34, defence of 1863.
Lassalle's Socialism. 26 1
and nothing could stay it. " It will either come in complete legality
and with all the blessings of peace — if people are only wise enough to
resolve that it shall be introduced in time and from above — or it will
one day break in amid all the convulsions of violence, with wild, flowing
hair, and iron saiidals upon its feet. In one way or the other it will
come, and wh^ shutting myself from the noise of the day, I lose
myself in histoi •y—zih&a I hear its tread. But do you not see, then,
that in spite of this difference in what we believe, our endeavours go
hand in hand ? You do not believe in revolution, and therefore you
want to prevent it. Good, do that which is your duty. But I do
believe in revolution, and because I believe in it I wish-^not to
precipitate it, for I have already told you that according to my view of
history the efforts of a tribune are in this respect necessarily as
impotent as the breath of my mouth would be to unfetter the storm
upon the sea — ^but in case it should come and from below, I will
humanise it, civilise it beforehand."^
We shaU be prepared to find a man of this kind extolling, too, the
idea of might. Lassalle's standpoint is a thoroughly practical one.
His ethical view is that right goes before might, but he cannot deny
that in a world where things are to a large extent turned upside-down,
might is' necessarily if wrongly supreme, and will continue to be so
until justice shall become the law of human dealings. He recognises
might as the predominant force in society. The constitution of a
country is merely the expression of the relationship which the various
elements of power bear to each other. So long as the king has on
his side a nobility and an army, the nation is impotent, and must take
what its ruler chooses to offer ; and, on the other hand, when that
power is on the side of the people, the king must submit to the
dictatorship of those who are nominally his subjects. This is the
whole secret of constitutions. "Constitutional questions," he says,
" are primarily not questions of law but of power.''^" Nevertheless,
lie does not apotheosise might to the disparagement of right. On
the contrary, he says that " the sword is certainly the sword, but it is
never right." He will have the two go hand in hand, for then alone
can might reach its highest dignity, and right assert its true claims.
Nowhere does Lassalle express himself better upon this point than in
J " Die indirecte Steuer."
2 " Uber Verfassungswesen," p. 25.
ic3i German ^ociahsni.
the words which are placed in the mouth of Ulrich von Hutten in the
drama " Franz von Sickingen.
" Es ist die Macbt das hSchste Gut des Himmels,
Wenn man sie niitzt fur einen grossen Zweck ;
Ein elend Spielzug, wenn zum Flitterstaate
Sie nur die Hand beschwert, in der sie ruht." '
His ultimate conclusion is that right and might can only be pro-
perly combined when the democracy attains full supremacy, for
" with the democracy alone is right, and with it will be the might."^
To turn now to Lassalle's strictly economic views. His standpoint is
that of advanced Socialism, a Socialism which in his day counted for
more than mere heresy, though it is only right to acknowledge that
the many prosecutions which were instituted against him during two
and a half years of public agitation were not based upon economic
but political utterances. Lassalle, who on his second appearance
upon the platform in Berlin proclaimed that he belonged to "the
party of pure and decided democracy," regards labour as a ladder by
means of which mankind has climbed to the heights f civilisation,
and a favoured portion of mankind to the heights of wealth and
luxury. The labourer has been a victim from the beginning. At the
dawn of civilisation and down to the Christian era, slavery prevailed
universally, and the labourers and all they produced were the pro-
perty of a master-class. Then came Christianity, but it was slow to
bring the labourer emancipation. Instead of the aicient slavery, the
system of serfage and bond service was established, and still the
labourers were in a greater or less degree the property of their em-
ployers. The guilds followed the abolition of serfege in the towns, and
the same principle of dependence continued. Finally, amid the
thunders and lightnings of the French Revolution, free compe;tition was
proclaimed, and labour was declared to be legally free. Yet the free-
dom was only partial, for labour was not econofnically emancipated,
nor is it to-day. The working classes form now. Indeed, a powerful
fourth estate, but the power possessed is yet only potential. No
greater story of fraud, thinks Lassalle, can be told than that which
recounts the dealings of capital with labour during this century. The
1 " Ftanz von Sickingen," p 92.
» " Macht und Recht," (1863). "
Lassallis Socialism. 203
entire history of European industry since the century began is a record
of wild speculation, blind and ignorant trading, overstraining of
credit, unbridled over-production, commercial crises, and misfortune
to the labourers, who are the scapegoats of the capitaUsts. Even to-
day, " The back of the labourer is the green table on which under-
takers and speculators play the game of fortune which production has
become. It is the green table on which they receive the heaps of
money thrown to them by the lucky coup of the roulette, and which
they smite as they console themselves for an unlucky throw with the
hope of better chances soon. The labourer it is who pays, with
diminished work, with hard-earned savings, with entire loss of em-
ployment, and thus of the means of subsistence, for the failures en-
tailed in this gambling of employers and speculators, whose false
speculations and reckonings he has not caused, of whose greed he is
not guilty, and whose good fortune he does not share."^ Legally the
labourers are perfectly free, but the freedom is only apparent, and not
real. There is one serious difficulty in the way of actual freedom,
and it consists in the labourer's want of capital, without which he can>
not begin work. Had he this he might be independent, might be his
own master, but he has not, and so he is not independent, but is the
servant of someone else. In reality, free competition is a sad
misnomer. How can there be free competition, when there is free-
dom for only one of the contracting parties ? What we have now is a
system of unfree, unequal competition, a competition between the
armed and the unarmed. And yet, Lassalle points out, this so-called
free competition has wonderfully increased the wealth of countries.
He calls it the most powerful machine for the increase of social
wealth that has ever been invented.
How comes it, then, that the labourer is so badly off? When all
around there is abundance, why should he alone live in want ? This
brings Lassalle to the statement of that " iron economic law " which .
played such a great part in his agitation, and which receives such
prominence in his works, the law of wages, according to which " the
average wages of labour always remain reduced to the subsistence '
necessary, conformably with a nation's standard of life, to the pro-
longation of existence, and to the propagation of the species." The
labourer is compelled to sell his labour, and meagre wages are all the
1 " Herr Bastiat-Scbulze von Delitzsch," (Berlin, 1864),
564 (German ^ocialisni.
return he receives for it. Wages which only allow him to live admit
of no saving, and thus his condition of dependence is irremediable so
long as he is subject to this " iron law." " What," asked Lassalle
once of a meeting of working-men, " what is the result of this law,
which is unanimously acknowledged by men of science ? Perhaps you
believe that you are men ? But economically considered you are only
commodities. You are increased by higher wages like stockings when
there is a lack ; and you are again got rid of, you are by means of lower
wages — by what Malthus, the English economist, calls preventive and
destructive checks — decreased, like vermin against which society wages
war." What, however, makes the labourer's hardship worse is the fact
that he is all the time of his servitude making his employer richer ; he
is placing himself more and more completely in the hands of his
master ; he is forging heavier and yet heavier fetters for his own arms.
It is true that wages may for a short time rise slightly beyond the level
of absolute necessaries, but directly the number of labourers increases,
there is a fall to the old mark, or else below it, in which case emigration,
want, disease, and abstention from marriage and procreation take place.
This is the blessing of a competition legally free, but economically
the reverse. The labourer has not escaped slavery ; he has only ex-
changed masters. Where formerly the surplus produce left over and
above the support of the labourer went to the serf-owner, it now goes to
the capitalist, who, strengthened in his supreme position by every
further addition of wealth which the labourer's exertions bring him,
can look unconcernedly upon his bondsman's struggles to be free. ■'^
" The produce of his labour strangles the labourer ; his labour of
yesterday rises against him, strikes him to the ground, and robs him
of the produce of to-day." Labour is a commodity, but the labourer
does not stand in the favourable position of other owners of commod-
ities. When the merchant finds on frequenting the market that prices
are too low to allow of the profitable sale of his goods, he reserves them.
The labourer, however, has no option : he must sell his commodity
labour or starve with all his family. ^
Lassalle asks how the labourer is to be helped out of this condition
of dependence and want. The evil is that a portion of the produce is
retained by the capitalist or undertaker. Clearly, then, the proper
1 Lassalle intended to write' a work which should contain the "Outlines of a scientific
political economy," and in this work the theory of value would have been fully considered.
Lassalle's Socialism. 205
remedy is that which will secure to the producer all he produces. This
is, therefore, the panacea which Lassalle proposes. It is a medicine
which will not only cure but prevent. The labourer will be doubly bene-
fited, for he will be secured his produce now, and he will receive all the
advantage that will accrue as labour becomes more productive.
Hitherto the capitalist has alone received the fruits of greater produc-
tivity, but henceforth the sower will be at the same time the reaper.
The plan which he proposes is, as we have seen, the association of the
working classes in productive undertakiijgs woirked with capital ad-
vanced by the State. With this co-operation the labourer will become
his own undertaker, and the distinction between wages and profit will
disappear, and the produce will go to the producer. Lassalle thought
that if this scheme could be realised a good step would be taken to-
wards the settlement of the social problem. In order, then, to bring
the change about in a simple, legal, and peaceful way, he recommended
the establishment of Productive Associations on the basis of voluntary
coalition. There was to be no compulsion ; but the working classes
were to be attracted by the offer of State help, without which, indeed,
the project would be incapable of realisation. He proposed the ad-
vance of capital by the State — first at low interest,' and eventually free
— ^because he regarded the working classes as the greatest power in
the State, and as having a peculiar claim upon its resources. Lassalle
could not tolerate the "let alone" argument which was always advanced
when mention' was made of the State. He not only held it to be
allowable for the State to come forward with help for such a purpose,
but he regarded it as a duty of the State to give this help, and it is
worth notice that no less important a man than Prince Bismarck has,
as we shall see, adopted the same standpoint. The bourgeois econo-
mists objected that monetary aid was unjustifiable, and yet the
State had helped the bourgeois and the capitalist again and again in
the construction or maintenance of railways, canals, roads, telegraphs,
posts, banks, an4 in the introduction of agricultural improvements and
of inventions. If State help had been justifiable in the past for the
capitalist, why not now for the labourer? It was said that with such
aid the incentive to self-help would be entirely taken away, but to this
objection Lassalle answered : " It is not true that I prevent a man
from climbing a tower by his own strength, because I reach him a
ladder or a rope. It is not true that the State prevents a youth from
2o6 German Socialism.
educating himself by his own power, because it offers teachers, schools,
and libraries. It is not true that I prevent a man from ploughing a
field by his own strength when I reach him a plough. It is not true
that I prevent a man from defeating a hostile enemy with his own
strength when I place a weapon in his hand." ^ Towers' may be
climbed without ladders or ropes ; persons may be educated without
teachers, schools, and libraries ; fields ploughed without machines,
and enemies worsted without weapons, but in every case the task may be
far more easily accomplished with the help of suitable auxiliary means.
Nor was Lassalle frightened because his proposal was denounced as
a piece of pure Socialism. " As often as a great man of science has
thought it proper to find ways and means for improving the condition
of the labouring class, an attempt has been made to cry him down
with the catchword ' Socialist ! ' Now, if it is Socialism to try to im-
prove the position of the working classes and to relieve their want,
then in the name of thirty-three thousand devils we are Socialists !
Does any one think I am frightened of a name ? — not I, indeed."^ But
would not State control be dangerous ; would not personal liberty be
threatened if, after providing capital, the State required to exercise
supervision over the financial affairs of its debtors ? No, there could
be no question of endangering personal liberty, for the State would
only have the rights of a creditor. It would have a right to demand
that the machinery which its money provided should not be destroyed
but employed, and to inquire into the way in which business was
carried on ; but every day the books and affairs of public companies
are subjected to the same supervision, and yet no one ever talks of the
loss of liberty or independence. The Associatipns would be formed
according to statutes, and so long as the conditions of these statutes
were fulfilled .they would have a right to State fiinds. Lassalle calcu-
lated that 100,000,000 thalers would be enough capital to begin with,
and that with this money 400,000 workmen could be employed, these
representing with their families a population of 2,000,000. Apart from
undertaker's profit he counted on 5 per cent, interest on the capital,
equally to 5,000,000 thalers annually, which at compound interest
would double the capital in fourteen years, besides allowing 20,000 new
workpeople to associate yearly. But a great advantage would accrue
1 " Offenes Antwortschreiben," p. 2Q,
* "Ai^beiterles«bach,"p, 5s,
Lassallis Socialism, 207
from the fact that trades work into each others' hands, the product of
one being the raw material of another. Thus the tanner works into
the hands of the shoemaker, the cloth manufacturer into the hands of
the tailor, the iron and steel worker into the hands of the madhine
constructor, so that it would not always be necessary to raise fresh
capital when an Association was formed, for the new Association might
be carried on with the credit of those existing. Moreover, in time,
Associations would combine, a distinct branch of industry having per-
haps a single organisation in each town, so that over-production and
commercial crises would be impossible. Private trading would be -^
supplanted, the profit-making middleman would disappear, and selling -
would be done in State bazaars. Not only so, but a host of evils •
would vanish in the train of these superfluous institutions ; such, for
instance, as unhealthy speculation, adulteration, deception, reclame,
and Lassalle added, "obtrusive commercial travellers, payments to
newspaper editors, and puffs of every kind." The close connection of
the State with production would also render it possible to establish a
number of undertakings which now, though of great importance for
the welfare and prosperity of the people, cannot be thought of.
Lassalle hoped to help not only the industrial but the agricultural •
population. Peasant Associations would be formed, and the State'
would supply land for cultivation, and in this way the abolition of '
rent would be precipitated. Moreover, the "small bourgeoisie,"'
as he termed the class which includes State and public officials re- •
ceiving small salaries, would be tempted into the ranks of the ordinary •
wage-earners by the prospect of more liberal remuneration. Both in
Industrial and Peasant Associations the mode of payment would be as
follows : first, the wages usual in the particular place and industry
would be given weekly, and at the close of the year the business pro-
fits would be distributed as dividend. But how was the State to be
induced to undertake the great task of supporting the Productive As-
sociations ? Lassalle saw a means of securing his end in the intro-
duction of universal suffrage. When the legislative bodies of the •
country were elected on the basis of a universal franchise, then only — *
but certainly then — would it be possible to realise the scheme. For
when the masses of the people were able to make their influence felt in
legislation, they would become in reality, as they were already nomin-
ally, the State. We find him telling the Leipzig Committee in 1863
2o8 German Socialism.
that statistics showed 96J per cent, of the population to be then in a
more or less distressed and needy condition. "To you, then, the
needy classes, belongs the State, not to us, the higher classes, for it
consists of you." Nevertheless, sanguine as he was, Lassalle did not
venture to regard his Association scheme as a final measure. Fourier
believed that when his teaching had once been accepted society would
be reformed in ten years. Lassalle was not so confident. He ad-
mitted that the settlement of the social question would require genera-
tions — indeed, he once said five centuries — to its completion, and
would be the result of a long succession of measures, each of which
would have to be developed organically from its predecessors. He
held, however, that the Associations would beat a path for further and
more extreme reforms.
Lassalle introduced a perfectly new element into the Socialistic
agitation of his day. His friend Rodbertus and his rival, Schulze-^
the latter, however, being no Socialist — stood upon purely economic
ground, like Saint-Simon and Fourier. Lassalle followed the methods
of Louis Blanc and Proudhon, and made politics part of his programme.
He was indeed the first State Socialist in modem Germany. Ana-
lysing his theories, we find that the State which he seeks to inaugurate
is thoroughly democratic. He wishes to do away with the class dis-
tinctions which have followed in the train of an advancing civilisation.
These he holds to be out of date, and to be marked for extinction in
the natural process of social development. Where there have been
several estates in the past, there will only be one in the future, and
the principle- underlying it will be that of labour. The State will be
society and society will be the State. In order to this change, a
revolution in the economic order of things will be necessary. There
must be capitalists and landowners no longer, for the State must
supplant them. Production must be carried on under the direct
auspices of the State, which will provide both the soil and the capital
which are requisite. Thus the labourer will not have to support a
recipient either of profit or interest, but will receive all the produce of
his labour. Work will in this way be diminished and lightened, for the
labourer's needs will easily be supplied when he only toils for himself
and his family. Leisure will be had in abundance for intellectual and
physical recreation, and while the lot of the labourer will be made
happier, his life will be longer. Lassalle will secure to the individual
Lassalle's Socialism. 209
as much independence of action as possible. Personal liberty will he
complete within the limits imposed by his plan of State Socialism.
Freedom of thought and speech will not be restricted, and the free
Press will be made exclusively a means of public education. His
views on this subject are original, and they have supporters amongst
German social reformers in high places to-day, Professor Adolph
Wagner amongst the number. Lassalle refuses to regard the news-
paper as legitimately a business speculation. In his opinion its
mission is that of a schoolmaster or a preacher. Thus he insists that
a newspaper should be allowed to publish nothing but news. Adver-
tisements turn it into " a public crier, a public trumpeter," and thus
degrade its high functions. Public announcements must be published
solely in official journals existing for the purpose, and conducted either
by the Government or by the local communities. Then the news-
paper will cease to be a lucrative speculation, and the journalist will
follow a profession instead of a trade.
It is, however, pretty certain that Lassalle's views on the subject of
the Press were coloured by the discourteous and often savage treat-
ment which he received at the hands of a multitude of newspapers
when engaged in agitation. He regarded as " literally true " the as-
sertion of Prince Bismarck, that " the newspapers are written by
people who have failed in their vocations," but he thought the con-
demnation not half severe enough. For the Press of his day, indeed,
he had the greatest contempt, for he believed that the worse a journal
was, the more subscribers it had, though it never occurred to him that
newspapers may after all be only what the public makes them. No
anathema came more truly from his heart than the one which he pro-
nounced in the hearing of a Rhenish meeting in 1863. " Hold firm," he
said, "with ardent souls hold firm to the watchword which I give you :
hatred and contempt, death and destruction to the Press of to-day !
That is a daring watchword to be given by one man against the thou-
sand-armed institution of the Press, with which even kings have vainly
contended ; but . . . the moment will come when we shall dart the
lightning which will entomb this Press in eternal night." ^
Further, in the coming Social-Democratic State not only land and
capital but all means of communication, and some, at any rate, of the
banks will be in national hands. EHrect taxation will take the place of
\ " Pie Feste, die fresse, und der Frankfurter Abgeordneteutag," (September, 1863J,
210 German Socialism.
indirect, to which Lassalle is thoroughly opposed. He holds that taxes
upon the necessaries of life, as well as those caused by the administra-
tion of justice, should be abolished, since in proportion to their earnings
the poorer members of society bear too much of the burden. He will,
therefore, have a system of direct taxation according to which every-
one will be liable to pay imposts proportionately to his income. Las-
salle's aim is throughout to engage the support of the State on behalf
of those who through deficiency in wealth, knowledge, or other social
advantages are unable to rely upon self-help. He will not hear of the
doctrine that the purpose of the State is merely to protect the personal
liberty and property of the individual. That idea of the " Manchester
men," ^ he says, may do very well as the basis of a night watchman's
functions, but it wiU not do for the State, whose duty it is to assist
and perfect the development of the race into a condition of freedom.
The whole history of mankind he regards as the history of a struggle
WT?h nature — ^with the misery, ignorance, poverty, impotence, and
servitude in which man lived when he stepped forth into history. The
overcoming of this impotence means the realisation of freedom, which
has gradually been won for the individual. But without the State it
would not have been possible to carry on this struggle. The State,
however, is a union which increases a million fold the strength of all
its units, and this is why it has been able to do for its members what
they could never have done single-handed and isolated. Thus the
working classes — and the poorer classes of society in general — have
learned by instinct to place confidence in the State and to insist that
it shall fulfil its proper function, that of developing the liberty and
' promoting at the same time the happiness and material welfare of all
subjects alike, regardless of condition.
So far Lassalle's economic views. Was he an original thinker or a
mere copyist, a mere adapter of the theories of others ? The answer
must be that he was the latter. Not, indeed, that he was a plagiarist.
It is no plagiarism to declare from the public platform doctrines with
which men of science are all familiar, unless the expounder claim to be
also author. And the " iron wages law " which lies at the very root
of Lassalle's teachings was in his day well known wherever Ricardo's
1 "The Manchester men, those modern barbarians, who hate the State — not this or hat
particular form of State, but the State altogether— and who, as they here and there give us
clearly to understand, would like to abolish the State, to sell justice and police o the Ipw^st
bidder, and fo carry on war by public companies."—" Oie indirecten Steucf, '
Lassalle's Socialism. 2ii
influence had spread. Not a few critics of Lassalle have laboured to
show that he said nothing new. The task is a superfluous one. Pro-
bably Lassalle would have been the last man in the world to claim
that his gospel was an original one. When he made his first appear-
ance as the founder of the Universal Working Men's Association, he
took care to support the "iron law" on the testimony of Ricardo,
Smith, Malthus, John Stuart Mill, Say, and other distinguished men.
The argument that he took the theory from others is in reaUty no
argument at all. People do not usually enter into contention about
matters that need no demonstration, but that is what has been done
in this case. Lassallfe advanced the wages law as a known economic
doctrine, and gave authorities in support of his advocacy of it,, and yet
it has been found necessary to elaborate proofs that this doctrine, whose
authorship he attributed to others, is not his own. In truth, he was
not in need of theories. Of these there was a sufficiency. Lassalle
was emphatically a man of deeds, and he took the theoretical ground-
work which he found ready laid and built upon it a structure out
of material likewise within hand's reach. ^ Karl Marx ^ charges him
with having borrowed " all the general theoretical propositions in his
economic works " from his published writings, and it may be granted
that Lassalle was stimulated by this far deeper thinker. It is, how-
ever, very probable that the principal impetus and help came from his
close friend Rodbertus, whose works he studied with something of a
disciple's devotion.^
Beyond this, however, he had been schooled in English economic
theories, and the influence of this part of his studies may be seen
throughout his writings and published speeches. For England
and English institutions, as representing the highest achievement in
1 " In economical science ingenious tlioughts and systems do not come perfect into existence
as the armed Minerva did from Jupiter's brain ; they rather develop. And he does enough
who brings a train of thought to a certain conclusion."— G. Adler, " Rodbertus, der Begriin-
der des wissenschaftlichen Sozialismus," (Leipzig, 1884), p. 16. So, too, L. von Stein, in his
" Geschichte der socialen Bewegung in Frankreich von 1789 bis auf unsere Tage," (Leipzig,
1850), vol. i., p. 153, says : " Important theories never spring like an armed Minerva out of
the head of a single person, but proceed in organic formation from long preparation, and
require external circumstances in order to attain to external value."
2 Preface to " Das Kapital," vol. i., (Hamburg, 1867).
3 He tells Rodbertus on one occasion, in the year 1863, how ten years before he had read
the third " Social Letter " " three times in succ^on, with my qi«ntal pow^s strained to th^
utmost and with eonsta^t self-d^scus^ion,"
212 German Socialism.
civil and personal liberty, Lassalle always showed great admiration;
He was never weary of telling his audiences, whether in the assembly
room or the Court of Law, how English freedom had "broadened
down from precedent to precedent," how Cobden had converted a
nation and slain a tradition mighty with the growth and strength of
centuries, and how the English working classes bore a character for
manliness and hardy independence unexampled in modern history.
The influence derived by Lassalle • from England in many ways was
very considerable, and Marx might have remembered this when he
spoke of wholesale plagiarism. He might also have remembered that
it was only after long residence in England that he himself produced
an important economic work. Had Marx not lived in this country he
never would or could have written his epoch-making " Capital." Of
that there can be no doubt whatever.
Lassalle's particular application of the theories which he found ready
to hand led him to the Productive Association, and here again he has
been charged with ploughing with the heifers of another. The Asso-
ciation does, in fact, bear great resemblance to the atelier social of Louis
Blanc,^ and it will not be wrong to conclude that Lassalle had this pro-
totype in mind, though he carried the co-operative idea much farthei
than his French contemporary. The Productive Association had, how-
ever, little or nothing to do — as was alleged in 1863* — with, the ateliers
nationaux established in 1848 by the Provisional Government, and
abruptly discontinued after a few months' trial had proved their use-
lessness. These ateliers nationaux were started and worked under
the direct supervision of the State, and, moreover, they were not in-
tended to supplant private industry, but to provide employment for
the workpeople who codld not find food. Both in origin and purpose,
therefore, the French workshops differed radically from the Lassalle
Associations. The latter were to be formed by voluntary association
and not by State compulsion or even initiative : all the State was
1 " Organisation du Travail," 1840. — It is worthy of note that Leibniz nearly two hundred
years ago proposed, amongst his other projects for the advancement of mankind, that artisans
should be employed in national workshops, conducted on the principle of co-operation. It is
very true that there is nothing new beneath the sun.
^ Lassalle published a refutation of the charge that his Productive Associations were
identical with the ateliers nationaux of 1848 in a newspaper article, afterwards reprinted, the
opening sentence of which ran, " Lying is a European Power." As to Louis Blanc's scheme,
he contents himself with the remark that the views of this celebrated Socialist are very differ-
ent fppi bis owp. The implied disavowal is not very ingenuous.
Lassatle's Sociatisni. ' 213
asked to do was to open its purse when called upon. " The free
individual association of the working people," said Lassalle, "but this
association made possible by the supporting and helping hand of the
State : that is the only way offered to the working classes out of the
wilderness." Further, the very raison dUre of the Associations was
the absolute abolition of the undertaker and the capitalist. Not only
were they to compete with private industry ; they were to supplant it,
so that the producer might have undisputed command over the entire
produce of his labour. Then, too, Lassalle intended to apply the
same principle of association to the land, in order that it might to-
gether with capital and the instruments of labour pass out of the
hands of the individual into those of society. Thus, while the idea of
association with State help was not new, his own development was
more thorough and more ingenious than any earlier attempts in the
domain either of theory or practice. It may be said that his work led
to no immediate results. Lassalle, it is true, did not live to see his
abours crowned with the success which he confidently expected. '
But, apart altogether from the founding of a great social movement,
the end of which no man can pitdict, Lassalle's agitation and writings
have exerted an important influence upon the domestic policy of the
German Government. It must not be forgotten that the principle
which he placed at the head of his programme of social reforms, and
which he enforced at various times in private discussion with
Prince Bismarck — State intervention on behalf of the working classes^
— has since become the groundwork of German social legislation, and
that in no country in Europe has this principle been carried so far as
in the country which Lassalle convulsed with agitation more than
twenty years ago. Nor was the appeal for universal suffrage made in
vain. Early in the year 1864, he predicted that before a year had
passed the Prussian Minister President would have played the part of
Sir Robert Peel, by reversing his policy, and that this demand would
have been granted. The prophecy was too sanguine, but universal
suffrage became law of the North German Confederation in 1867, and
of the German Empire in 1871.
" This is what I have to say to you about the principle.^!.aiid to-day we are only dealing
with the principle — of proclaiming as oar motto universal and direct suffrage for the avowed
purpose of improving your social condition by legislation, by the intervention of the State,"
&c— Speech at Frankfort, May ilVa, 1863.
214 German SocialisM.
How far Lassalle was prepared to go in the abolition of individual
property, and in overriding the acquired rights of the present pro-
prietors, we cannot say with certainty, for his practice of taking one
step at a time — of concealing his purposes until the proper time for
their discovery had arrived — makes it difficult to judge of his ultimate
ends. "Truth," he once wrote, "must be developed step by step."
In his correspondence with Rodberfus, however, he speaks of the
Productive Associations as a " transitional measure," ^ and says that
" the Association, proceeding from the State, is the organic germ of
development which leads to everything else." ^ It is certain that he
hoped, by means of the Associations, to get rid of the capitalist'9
profit and the landowner's rent, and thus in time to supersede as
superfluous personal property in capital and land. Indeed, he went
so far as to Germanise Proudhon's " Lapropriitk dest le vol" into the
somewhat more euphemistic " Eigenthum ist Fremdihum," but he did
not say in plain words whether he was prepared, in the words of Marx,
to " expropriate the expropriators." Rodbertus claims him as a con-
vert to his doctrine of income-property, but there is reason to believe
that Lassalle was to some extent an unreadable book to this valued
friend and correspondent, who once admitted that he had to do with
" an exoteric and an esoteric Lassalle." A valuable light is thrown
upon the esoteric views of Lassalle by the learned and exhaustive
treatise in which he considers the theory of acquired rights.^ In this,
his greatest work, Lassalle speculates boldly in a domain of thought
which for Sopialists is one of the utmost importance. He inquires if, an Rodbertus questioned Lassalle as to how he would learn what the national opinion really
Is, holding that this could not be done either by votes of majorities or even unanimous votes.
Lassalle answered ! " You are right when you will not allow a majority or unanimity of
votes to demonstrate what the spirit of the time is. How do I find this, then f Well) I
think very easily. What you by reason, logic, and science can demonstrate to yourself end
to the age, that the age will wishi —Letter of February 17th, 1863,
Zl6 German SocialisM.
acquired rights, he takes up a standpoint opposed to that of Savigny.*
This famous jurisconsult said that indemnity should be given, and
Lassalle answers that the giving of compensation is illogical, illegal,
and unjust. There is, in fact, nothing to indemnify. It is only possible
to stipulate for the validity of a right so long as the public conscience
may approve -of it, and when it does so no longer the right has had its
day and ceases to be, for the limit of its validity has been reached.
At the same time Lassalle takes care to lay stress upon the difference
between the absolute prohibition of a right and the prohibition of a
mode of its exercise. There may be cases where compensation virill
be allowable, viz., when the prohibition does not exclude all rights
founded upon a certain legal title. In these cases, however, the
compensation is really only a change from a prohibited to an unpro-
hibited form of right. Thus in the case of the appropriation of land
for the purpose of public buildings, not property itself, but a form of
property in an individual case is prohibited, and land may continue to
be acquired and held as private property. Here compensation must
be given, but the compensation is mere appearance, the truth being
that the prohibited form of property in a certain piece of land has been
changed into the still unprohibited form of money-property. Pro-
hibitive and compulsory laws may, therefore, be of two kinds. They
may either determine that a right hitherto existing can no more be
the property of the individual and can by no act of the will be made
such ; or they may allow the right to continue as one which can be
made the property of the individual, the only question being the form
and condition which the connection of the individual with the substance
of this right must take in order that the right may be lawful and valid.
Prohibitive laws of the first kind apply to all existing contracts and all
legal relationships, but those of the second class should never apply
to existing legal relationships which may have been caused by
individual actions of the will. If a law abolishes property altogether,
or property in certain objects, it is no matter that the objects may have
been acquired by inheritance or purchase, or in any other way ; they
must still pass out of individual ownership.
In the second part of the work, Lassalle considers the right of
1 Friedrich Karl von Savigny, born at Frankfort, February 21st, 1779, and became in 1810'
« professor at Berlin University, where he continued for thirty-two yearsi Died October 25th,
18611
Lassallis Socialism. iiy
succession as it existed in ancient times and now exists. He holds
that the heir in the Roman sense was not heir of the property but the
will of the dead, that the will of the testator was supposed to be
perpetuated in the heir. The Roman idea of immortality was, in fact
the testament. Dealing then with Germanic right of succession,
Lassalle shows that it is a mixture of old Roman right, that of the
testament, and old Germanic, viz., intestate succession. Germanic
right of succession differed from Roman right in being in reality family
right, for in substance the property of the testator was common family
property during his lifetime, the appropriation only taking place,
however, on his death. The Germanic nations borrowed the testament
from the Romans, but without understanding its significance, regarding
it rather as a formal disposal of the property of the dead. As, then,
the family right of the early Germans has disappeared, and the true
Roman testament has been discarded, — for no one believes any longer
in the significance anciently attached to it, — Lassalle comes to the
conclusion that the modern German testamentary right is nothing but
a great misunderstanding and a theoretical impossibility.^ ^ " This,"
he says, " is the fate of the Roman testament with the Germanic
nations. Accepted by a national spirit which according to its own
national idea interprets all inheritance as intestate, as the peculiar
right of the heir, the character of the Germanic inheritance, the
character of intestate right, is impressed upon testamentary right of
succession, and the maxim necessary with intestate right, le mart
saisit le vif, is extended to it."^ And yet the modern testament has
been said to be a natural right ; a natural right has been made out of
a natural impossibility, out of a right which has never and nowhere
existed. Property is now no longer family but personal property, and
nowadays most systems of succession rest on the will of the State and
society. The logical deduction is that the State and society can if
they desire direct that the property of the dead shall be differently
disposed of than it now is. It may appear somewhat singular that
Lassalle did not refer during all his agitation to the startling doctrines
1 " System der erworbenen Rechte," vol. ii, pp. 592, 593.
2 One of Lassalle's critics, H. von Sybel, has met this argument with the analogy of royalty
Nowadays people do not helieve in *' divine right," yet nations preserve the institution of
royalty because they are convinced that constitutional monarchy is a beneficent form of
government.
' " System der erworbenen Rechte," vol. ii, p. 594-
2i8 German Sociatisnt.
advanced in this work. The explanation is only to be found when we
bear in mind his great tenacity of purpose, which would not allow him
to undertake fresh plans until the plans in hand had been realised.
Had he lived long enough the time might have come when he would
have gone back to the principles which he held to govern acquired
rights and have sought to apply them.
CHAPTER XII,
DEVELOPMENT OF SOCIAL-DEMOCRACY.
Though Lassalle's death was an irreparable loss for the Universal
Working Men's Association, no one hinted at the idea of suspending
operations. When the blow fell, branch organisations had been formed
in fifty-two places, but many had already succiunbed. The lists
showed a membership of 4610, Barmen being most strongly repre-
sented (with 529 members), and Ronsdorf and Solingen following
(with 523 and 500 respectively). Still, it would be far from right to
regard this as the net result of Lassalle's labours. Although the
Universal had failed to draw the working classes to itself, the prin-
ciples which its founder and president had with unflagging zeal
preached from the Rhine to the Oder had been eagerly accepted, and
the foundations had been laid for a great and influential movement.
Thus Lassalle's work must not be estimated by the membership of
his Association ; it must be estimated by the later history of Social
Democracy in Germany.
Meanwhile, it was necessary to take steps "to prevent the fall of the
democratic leader giving rise to anarchy in the camp. Be mhard Beck er
liad been nominated by Lassalle as his successor in the presidency,
and in November, 1864, the choice was confirmed by the Association.
Dammer continued to be vice-president and Willms retained the office
of secretaiy, while Schweitzer began at once to take a greater direct
interest in the agitation. Becker was a complete failur e. Not only
did he fail to work amicably with Countess Hatzfeldt, who believed
that her relationship to Lassalle imposed upon her the duty of keeping '
an eye on the progress of the movement, but — and this was his great
failing — ^he lacked every qualification necessary to one who would be
a leader of men. At first he tried despotism as Lassalle had done witW
such complete success, but the result was only to make himself look
ridiculous. It was the old story of the ass in the lion's skin. When he
"found it impossible to have his way he took refuge in recrimination. Of
Liebknecht he spoke as an " arch intriguer, who calls himself a Com^
220 German l^ociatisnt.
munist but is nothing but an ambitious, diabolical trickster, incapable
of building anything up but always ready to destroy.'' Marx and
Engels were included in the same condemnation, while Schweitzer
was demolished in an egoistic outburst in which Becker said, " As to
this Judas, workihg-men, I will crush this skeleton. I will shatter
him like glass, since I alone amongst you represent Revolution and
have revolutionary power in me.'' Evidently a man of this stamp was
not in his proper place when occupying a post requiring the exercise
of great tact, self-control, and selfrsacrifice. The fall from the intel-
lectual Lassalle to the bully Becker was a great one, and it .seemed to
augur ill for the future of the Association. Lassalle had proved him-
self a prince of agitators, and now his place was filled by a. puppet.
Towards his as'sociates Lassalle had always preserved an attitude of
cordiality, but Becker was unable to control his bad temper. Lassalle
was vain, but it was a vanity which generally pleased and never seri-
ously offended, for there was a great intellect behind it all ; but his
successor, with less justification than Anacharsis Cloots for his vanity,
conferred upon himself the arrogant title of " President of Mankind."
A year after the catastrophe of Geneva signs of decay showed them-
selves within the Association, and even the foundation of an organ in
the Press seemed unable to arrest disintegration. True to agreement,
Schweitzer and Hofstetten had meanwhile issued on January ist, 1865,
the first number of the Social-Democrat, which was published in
Berlin. Hofstetten furnished the money and Schweitzer the brains,
and for a time the newspaper succeeded. It was not, however, recog-
nised everywhere as the organ of the agitation, for Schweitzer had
made himself many enemies — the Diisseldorf general meeting, indeed,
expelled him from the directorate of the Association — and to this
extent its influence was crippled. Nevertheless, with an able staff of
contributors, including Marx, Engels,, Liebknecht, Herwegh, Riistow,
Hess, and Wuttke, the Social-Democrat could hardly fail to prosper so
long as it kept true to its aims, and in the end even the fulminating
Becker withdrew the anathemas with which he had greeted its
(appearance. Schweitzer may be said to have drawn together the
scattered bones of, Social-Democracy and to have breathed fresh
life into them. But towards the end of February a series of clever
articles was published with the title "The Bismarck Ministry," in
which Prussia was glorified, and the duty of settling the German
' Development of Social-Democracy. 22 1
question was imposed upon her. "Two factors are alone capable of
action in Germany," said the concluding article, " Prussia and the
nation. Prussian bayonets or the fists of the German ft oletariat-^fi&
see no third." ^ The democratic party was disgusted, and Schweitzer's
chief contributors severed connection with the journal. The editor
himself soon afterwards fell into the clutches of the law and was put
into prison. His place at the head of the Social-Democrat was taken
by Hofstetten, a man of no ability, who proved a very popr substitute.
But the Universal Association had other enemies to fear besidS"
internal jealousies, and the greatest of them was rivalry without. No
sooner did Lassalle disappear from the scene than Karl Marx, who
was still in London, began to bestir himself. At the end of September7
1864, the famous International Working Men's Association^ was
established, and Marx was made its president. With the principles
of this organisation Liebknecht, who in time won August Bebel over
to his side, was in complete sympathy, and though he continued to
profess allegiance to the more moderate proposals of the German
Association he was known to be promoting the influence of the Inter-
national. When the split occurred on account of the " Bismarck
articles " of the Social-Democrat, Liebknecht came out in his true
colours, and before many months had passed he was expelled from
Prussian territory, and went to Leipzig. Reserving for the Inter-
national a more detailed review, it will be well now to follow the
history of the distinctly German movements further. The first general
meeting of Lassalle's Association was held in December, 1864, af
Diisseldorf, and the proceedings passed off very quietly. The secons
general meeting, held at Frankfort-on-Main at the end of Novemben
1865, was a stormy one, however, and one result was the overthrow oi
Becker, in whose place C. W. Tqlk e, of Iserlohn, was elected president.
Tolke was a man of rough manners but of considerable common sense,
and he did his little best to follow in the footsteps of his dead leader.
He had, however, a fault which, in the eyes of friends of the
International, was unpardonable : he was a monarchist. Indeed, he
went so far as to call upon one occasion for cheers for the King of
Prussia, an act which caused most good democrats to shrug their
1 No. 28 of the Social-Democrat, which, for its effect in dividing the heterodox from the ortho-
dox amongst the Democratic party, may be likened to No. 90 of the Oxford Tracts.
8 gee following chapter.
222 German Socialism,
shoulders and pull long faces. Evidently Tolke was not the man to
preside over the Association, and so when, tired of his honours, he
resigned in the summer of 1866, the opportunity of replacing him was
welcomed. At this time Schweitzer was in prison or he would pro-
bably have received the appointment, but as it was A. Perl, of Ham-
burg, was made president. During the succeeding months the
Countess Hatzfeldt, who had all along kept a hand on the reins,
interfered so objectionably with the affairs of the Association that a
crisis came. The fourth general meeting, held at Erfurt at the end of
December, 1866, repudiated the pretensions of this lady, and the
consequence was that she formed without delay a rival association with
Lassalle's statutes, and made one Forsterling, of Dresden, its president.
This organisation soon came to grief.
The wisest act of the Association after Lassalle's death was the
election of Schweitzer to the presidencj[_in_MaXji867> ^t the Bruns-
"wicirge"nwarrneeErng.~TTlg^ssociation had got into very low water, and
only a man of great ability and of strong will could now put an end to
the disputes and rivalries which were hastening on dissolution. Had
Sch,weitzer been Lassalle's first successor, the Association would have
been growing stronger all the time of its increasing weakness. It was
not too late to arrest decay, but complete restoration was now almost
out of the question. Schweitzer proceeded to work at once in a busi-
ness-like way. He restored the organisation of the Association, placed
its finances upon a sound basis, and in time reduced confusion to order.
The new president was, in fact, just the man' for his position. He was
educated and energetic, was a talented speaker, and, moreover,
through personal intercourse with Lassalle, he understood the ideas of
the late agitator as few of his associates did. Lassalle and Schweitzer
had a good deal in common. Both were men of the world, both were
full of resource and born administrators, and both were suspected at
one time of being merely reactionaries in disguise. Liebknecht, in-
deed, declared that Schweitzer's imprisonment was only a feint, but
later events showed that idea to be untenable. Where the new pre-
sident came far short of his great predecessor was in his lack of real
sincerity in the cause of the working classes. He had drunk the cup of
pleasure and indulgence to the dregs,and the honey had become bitter in
his mouth. Probably Schweitzer first took to politics as a distraction,
though, when events forced him into prominence, he threw his whole
Development of Social-Democracy. 223
energies into party warfare, and his later years certainly redeemed his
earlier. In the first year of his presidency an important political in-
cident took place which had momentous consequences for the Social-
Democratic movement. Universal suffrage was granted for the
election of the North German Reichstag, and before it the Constitutive
Assembly. This deferred fulfilment of a prophecy made by Lassalle
in 1864 was welcomed with jubilation. In the general elections the
Socialists measured strength with the Conservative party in several
constituencies, with the result that Schweitzer, Bebel, Fritzsche, ^
Hasenclever,^ Forsterling, and Mende were returned to the Reichstag,
the party giving about 40,000 votes. The sixth general meeting of the
Association was held in November, 1867, at Berlin, and the seventh in
the following August at Hamburg. At the latter meeting, which was
attended by delegates of 82 associations, representing 7192 members,
two motions of importance were brought forward by the president.
One declared that while industrial strikes were incapable of altering
the ruling system of production, they were, if properly organised, a good
means of promoting esprit de corps amongst the working classes, and
of removing various social evils. The other motion related to the
convocation "of a congress of working-men for the purpose of establish-
ing trades unions. The meeting adopted the strike resolution, but
rejected the proposal to convene a congress. On Schweitzer threaten-
ing, however, to resign, it was agreed as a compromise that the president
and Fritzsche should be allowed to call a conference not as members
of the Association but as members of the Reichstag. This was at once
done, the date of meeting being September 27th, and the place
Berlin. The same month the Universal Association was dissolved by
1 Friedrich WUhelm Fritzsche, a cigar maker, bom March 27th, 1825. at Leipzig. He
emigrated to America. His Tobacco-workers' Association, founded in 1865, was the first
Socialist Trade Union in the country.
2 Wilhelm Hasenclever, author, of Dessau. He was bom April 19th, 1837, at Amsberg in
Westplialia. Originally a tanner, but he early became journalist. In 186S he was appointed
treasurer of the Universal German Working Men's Association, two years later the secretary,
and in 1871 the president. He became the president of the Socialistic Working Men's Party
on its formation at Gotha in 1873. In 1881 he was expelled from Leipzig, where he followed
the journalistic profession, and he has since lived at Wurzen, Halle, and Dessau. He has
almost unintemiptedly sat in the Reichstag since 1869. Hasenclever is described as being
thbrougbly modest, good-natured, and gallant. In Parliament he opposed the granting of/
money for carrying on war with France, but as a Prussian militiaman be did h^s duty
patriotically when with th? besieging army before Paris.
224 German Socialism.
the police at Leipzig, its seat, but Schweitzer formed another associa-
tion with the same name and statutes at Berlin, and all went on as
before. From this time may be said to date the pre-eminence of Ber-
lin as a Socialistic centre.
~ All this time Liebknecht and his associates were doing their best to
advance the interests of the International in Germany, and long be-
fore open hostility to Schweitzer was shown, they had endeavoured to
undermine his power, and convert the Universal Association to their
advanced principles. Finally, on March 28th, 1869, Liebknecht and
Bebel appeared at the general meeting held at Barmen, and openly
charged the president with being a reactionary. The design, how-
ever, failed, for of the fifty-six delegates present all but twelve voted
confidence in their leader, and the rest remained neutral. Still, the
Liebknecht party gained ground by this piece of strategy. Schweitzer,
who this year again served two months in prison, resolved to check-
mate the move of his enemies by having resort to Lassalle's old plan.
He entered upon a political campaign of two months' duration, and
received in all parts of the country warm tokens of attachment. When
the ninth general meeting — held in Berlin— came round, his popularity
seemed undiminished, but eighteen months later, in July, 1871, he
resigned, and his resignation was followed sometime later by his ex-
pulsion from the Association on the charge of treachery. His own
account of his withdrawal from the presidency was that he had grown
weary of the never-ending intrigues, and had become convinced that
the working classes could not be relied on for fidelity to their leaders.
The Social-Democrat, Schweitzer's journal, ceased to be published on
April 30th, 1871, and a younger organ belonging to him, the A£iiator,
was discontinued on June ist of the same year.
It was a long time before Liebknecht and Bebel were able to secure
a footing for the International in Germany, but as an introduction to
the more advanced programme they drew up at a congress of Saxon
working-men held at Chemmitzin August, 1866, a series of "demands
of the Democracy." These demands were : — (i) Unrestricted right of
the people to self-government. This implied universal, direct, and
equal franchise with secret voting in all domains of State life (the
Parliament, the Chambers of the individual States, the communal
governing bodies, &c.), the abolition of the standing army and its
substitution by a militia ; and a sovereisai Parliament having absolute
Development of Social-Democracy. 225
power to decide on questions of war and peace. (2) The unity of Germany
as a Democratic State. Tliere should be no hereditary central power—
"no Little Germany under the guidance of Prussia, no Prussia enlarged
by annexation, no great Germany under Austrian guidance, no Triad."
(3) Abolition of the privileges of position, birth, and confession.
(4) Futherance of the physical, intellectual, and moral training of
the people. The school should be separated from the church and the
church from the State, teachers should be given a worthier position,
and schools should be established for their training, elementary
schooh should become free, and schools for higher education
be provided. (5) The universal welfare to be furthered, and labour
and labourers to be emancipated from all pressure and constraint.
This demand comprised the amelioration of the position of the work-
ing classes, right of free migration, free choice of occupations,
universal right of settlement in Germany, and State support of produc-
tive co-operative associations. (6), Self-government for parishes.
(7) Promotion of a knowledge of the law amongst the people. This
was to be effected by the independence of the Courts and juries,
especially in political and Press trials, and by public and oral judicial
trials. (8) Promotion of the political and social education of the
people. This final demand comprehended a free Press, free right of
meeting, and right of coalition.. The Chemmitz programme attracted
many adherents, and the two confederates felt that they had made a
good beginning. As, however, the Universal Association was not to be
turned out of its course, they looked in another direction. Bebel was
originally a follower of Schulze-Delitzsch, and at the time of his
allis^ice with Liebknecht he was the president of a Working Men's
Association at Leipzig, founded on the principles of Schulze, from
which, however, it had gradually departed. In the autumn of 1867,
Bebel became president of the Union of Working Men's Associations,
and the following year, at the annual congress, he was instrumental
with Liebknecht in inducing a large majority of the associations to
accept the programme of the International.
This was a substantial victory for Marx and his two lieutenants, for
the International was now established in Germany. Thus Liebknecht
and Bebel were encouraged to make renewed endeavours to detach
Schweitzer's adherents, but for the present they were only slightly
successful. In the following year, 1869, however, the Sogial- •
p
226 German Socialism.
Democratic Working-men's Party {Socialdemokratische Arbeiter-
^artd) was formed at Eisenach out of the " internationalised " Union
of Working Men's Associations and the seceded members of the
Universal. A conference was first called for August 7th. This was
done by a manifesto, published by Liebknecht and Bebel in the
former's Demokratisches Wochenblatt, wherein Social-Democrats were
congratulated upon the progress which advanced views were making.
This manifesto gives the key to a curious piece of party nomenclature.
Liebknecht and Bebel spoke of their party as the " honourable Social-
Democracy" (die ekrliche Socialdemokratie), and from that tjme the
adherents of the International in Germany went by the alternative
names of the " Honourables " and the " Eisenachers ' Xhe congress
met, and did all that its promoters expected of it. Schweitzer con-
ceived the plan of outvoting the adherents of the International, but the
scheme completely failed. It is estimated that the two hundred and
sixty-two delegates who avowed Internationalist principles at this
congress represented 150,000 working-men, though two-thirds of
them belonged to Austria and Switzerland. The shrewd and calcu-
lating policy which Liebknecht pursued, when promoting the prin-
ciples of the International, is shown by a letter he wrote this year
regarding the South German Democratic Party, whose progress to-
wards Communism was too slow for many ardent disciples of Marx.
Liebknecht refused to hurry the party, knowing that its advance was
only a question of time. ''Wait a little," he said, "and then the
little people will be able to march to Basel ; but not now." The dis-
tance between the Eisenach and Basel programmes was too great.
Meanwhile, every endeavour was made to secure a firm footing in
Berlin. Liebknecht said at a popular meeting held in Vienna on July
2Sth, 1869 : — " The citadel of servitude in Prussia is Berlin. When
we have, stormed this citadel with the help of the Berlin working-men,
—since the great battle for the emancipation of Germany is to be
fought in Berlin, — where will the small Governments be that now
stand in the way? With the Prussian Government they will all fall."
But progress was difficult and slow, for Berlin was the seat of the
Government and there the vigilance of the police was not to be
^uded.
The Eisenach programme sets forth that the primary object of the
§0ci4l-Den\pcrqtic Working Men's Party is thp establighnfient of XV%
Development of SopiaUDfpiocraey. 227
Free People's SiatQ (freier Volksstaat).^ But that is not all. The'
present political and social conditions are declared to be in tlj©
highest degree unjust, and for that reason they are to be combated
with all energy. A leaf is taken out of the book of the International
when it is stated that " the struggle for the emancipation of the work-
ing classes is not a struggle for class privileges and prerogatives, but
for equal rights and equal duties, and for the abolition of all class
supremacy." As the economic dependence of the working-man upon
the capitalist is the basis of every form of servitude, the party will
strive, by abolishing the present form of production, and by introduc-
ing the co-operative system, to secure for the labourer the full fruit of
his exertions. But political freedom is a prior condition of economic
emancipation, and as the social problem can only be solved, in a
Democratic State various political demands are made. These include
universal, equal, and direct suffrage, with secret voting, for all men of
twenty years, both in the election of Parliamentary and local adminis-
trative bodies ; direct legislation by the people, by which is understood
the right of proposing and rejecting laws ; the abolition of all privileges
of class, property, birth, and confession ; the substitution of a militia for
the standing army ; the separation of the church from the State, and
of the school from the church ; compulsory education in elementary
schools, and free education in all public seminaries ; independence of
the Courts, introduction of juries and courts of trade experts, public
and oral judicial proceedings, and free administration of justice ;
abolition of all Press, Association, and Coalition Laws, introduction
of the normal work-day, the restriction of female and the prohibition
of child labour, the abolition of all indirect taxes, and the introduction
of a.' direct progressive income-tax and succession duty ; and finally
the furtherance by the State of the co-operative system, with State
credit for productive partnerships.
1 The termfreier Valksstaat hardly explains itself. It will be well to quote Liebknecht'a
explanation as given during his trial in 1872. "The idea 'free people's State' is interpreted
by a majority of our partisans as a Republic ; but does the intention of a forcible introduction
of the same follow ? No man has expressed opinions as to the mode of introducing it. Let
a majority of the people be won for our opinions and the State is of our opinions, for the
people is the State. A State without a king is conceivable, but not a State without a people.
The Government is the servant of the people .... If the introduction of the Republic is
legally determined on— as by a Parliament— and the existing Government resists it by fore?,
in my view every citizen is bsund to oppose force with fpree,"
228 German Socialism.
The party adopted as its organ the Volksstaat, as the Dempkratisches
Wochenblatt was rechristened, and the work of propagandism was
eagerly begun. In June, 1870, a second congress was held at Stuttgart
and 66 delegates, representing 113 places and 13,147 members, were
present. The Schweitzer party again tried to upset the meeting, but
unsuccessfully. Liebknecht gave a glowing report of the work done,
but while emphasising the importance of agitation, he recognised the
inadequacy of strikes and similar non-political measures to the com-
bating of the wages system. " Only with the fall of the present State
' in its entirety will a new system of production be possible. We must
therefore overpower the State and found a new one, which shall know
nothing of class domination, which shall tolerate neither masters nor
slaves, and in which society shall be organised on a co-operative
basis." Bebel proposed a resolution demanding the conversion of
agricultural land into common property, and its lease by the State to
associations which should be bound to cultivate it in a scientific way,
and to divide the produce amongst the joint producers according to
fixed agreement. The State was also called on to establish training
schools for the agricultural population. As a transitional measure of
confiscation it was proposed that fiscal lands, crown lands, ecclesias-
tical and entailed estates, common lands, mines, and railways should
be appropriated by the State. The greatest practical achievement of
the congress was the union effected with the South German Demo-
cratic party. In the same month that the congress was held Bracke
issued to the party a manifesto on the subject of the French war, and as
it was too national and patriotic Liebknecht was angry and protested.
Bracke in his reply said : " Bebel and Liebknecht have estranged our
hearts from them. If Liebknecht goes on in this way we shall at the
end of the war have left a dozen incarnate Social Republicans and a
number of Saxons, who, on account of their Particularism, are far
fonder of the far-lying international idea than the near national idea,
which since 1866 has, because of its black and white drapery,^ become
offensive to them." The dispute became so serious that Marx was
asked to decide, and he naturally took Liebkijecht's part, declaring
for peace with France and non-annexation of Alsace and Lorraine.
After Sedan and the proclamation of the Republic a reconciliation was •
effected between Liebknecht and Bracke, chiefly owing to the fact that
^ AUudinc to the Prussian colours.
i)evetopinent of Social- Democracy. 229
the latter took part in the issue of a second " Manifesto to German
working-men" in September, 1870, virging them to see that France
was allowed to conclude an honourable peace, and to protest against
annexation. This conduct was regarded as treasonable, and half-a-
dozen members concerned — including Bracke, Bonhorst, and Spier —
were arrested and taken in chains to Lotzen. Their trial came off in
November of the following year, but as they had been incarcerated
during the intervening time they were not further punished. In De-
cember, 1870, Liebknecht, Bebel, and Hepner, the responsible editor
of the party orgati, were also arrested for the publication of treasonable
writings. They were tried early in 1872, Liebknecht being sent to
prison for two years, and Bebel for two years and nine monthSfT7fatte-\
Hepner was released. The anti-national policy pursued in the party
camp was also pursued by the Socialists who held seats in the Reichs-
tag. Holding fast to the idea of a Republic they voted against war
grants, and opposed the Kaiser aiid Reich. The Reichstag was dis-
solved in December, and in the succeeding elections the Social-Demo-
crats lost ground. '
The congress of 1871, held at Dresden, was attended by 51 dele-
gates, representing 81 places and 6,255 members. The a.ttendance
was smaller, as the war had seriously interfered with the organisation
of the party. At this congress the question of the normal work-day
came into prominence, and working-men were urged to strive for a
legally fixed period of work, which should not exceed ten hours, and
also to agitate for better protection against danger to life and person.
The congress also expressed its approval of the Paris Commune, an
act of bad policy, which alienated a large amount of sympathy from
the Social-Democratic cause. Soon, however, auspicious events oc-
curred, and the ground lost was won back again. Thus the economic
crisis which prevailed in Germany after -the war — the crisis which
succeeded the historical Grundungsera, and which entailed untold
misery on the working classes — told greatly in favour of the move-
ment, and the years 1872 to 1 874 witnessed a renewal of the growth
which in 1870 had been checked. The congress of 1872 was held at
Mayence in September. It was reported that the movement had
suffered greatly from the war, but that the membership was again in-
creasing, the accession of adherents during the past year having been
4,000. Hitherto the party had observed an attitude of strict neu-
i^o German Socialising
trality on the question of religion, but it was now resolved, on the
proposition of the Bavarian delegates, that members should be desired
to withdraw from religious organisations. The next congress was
held at Eisenach, the cradle of the party, in August, 1873, but it was
only held here because permission to assemble at Nuremberg had
been refused by the police. At this meeting no places and 9,224
members were represented, and it was reported that the party had
secured a footing in 170 towns and villages.
In order to keep this story connected, it will be desirable to trace
now the parallel course of the Universal Association, which we left at
the resignation of Schweitzer. His successor was Wilhelm Hasen-
clever, simultaneously with whose election the Neuer Social-Democrat
was founded. With the retirement of Schweitzer the Universal de-
parted altogether from its programme. He, .indeed, had been com-
pelled by stress of circumstances to go farther astray than his judgment
approved, but when his influence was no longer present to check the
intemperate tendencies of the advanced sectioii, these soon won pre-
dominance. The general meeting of 1872 was attended by 44
delegates from 98 places, though there were members in 145 places ;
and the meeting of 1873, held at Berlin, was attended by 61 delegates,
though the organisation had members in about 240 towns and villages.
In the following year ten members of the Social-Democratic party, three
belonging to the Lassalle and seven to the Eisenach section, were re- ,
turned to the Reichstag by 450,000 votes. Bebel and Liebknecht were
still in prison, but they were nevertheless elected along with Hasen-
clever, Most,^ Vahlteich, and others. Socialism was now becoming
such a power in the State that the Government determined to be more
^ Johann Joseph Most, born February 5th, 1846, at Augsburg, is none other than the
notorious Anarchist of Chicago. In r879, he established the famous or infamous Freiheii in
London, and he now publishes the journal in America. He has written a number of small
works for agitation, among them being '* Die Kleinbiirger und die Sozialdemokratie," "Die
Pariser Kommune vor den Berliner Gerichten," " Die Bastille am PlQtzensee,'' (a Berlin gaol),
"DieLesung der sozialen Frage," and " Die sozialen Bewegungen im alten Rom und der
Casarismus." Most is known for his preaching of murderous doctrines. Only a short time
ago, he stood up as the apostle of bloodshed on the occasion of the conviction and sentence of
the Chicago Anarchists. But there was a time when he appealed to reason and not force.
Thus he closed an address to Berlin working-men in 1876 with the words ; " 1 appeal not to
your fists but your heads. I do not recommend to you deeds of violence, but (he thorough
study of Socialism and the further propagation of tlie same. TMnk, and thought will
conquer." (" Die Ldsung der sozialen Frage.")
DevelopiHiM of Sociat-DetHocfaqy. ^%\
'^'' . ,
stringent, and the first evidence of this resolve was the uncompromis-
. ing attitude taken up by the police in all parts. This was partly owing
to the violent attitude of the Socialistic Press. Thus we find the
Volksstaat addressing the wealthy classes in words like these :
"Think what you will, do what you will, but know once for all — and
this holds good for Germany as well as for Spain* — ^you' will not
escape the revolution : you have only the choice of an easy revolution
by means of suitable legislative resolutions, or revolution by the
dangerous means of force ; if the latter pleases you better, well aild
good, it is for you to decide." Doctrines of this sort did the move-
ment no good, and during the summer of 1874 the liaiKetaaJLAasficiji-
tjon was often molested in Berlin. House searches were made in
great number, and when Hasenclever, the president, removed to
Bremen, the Association was declared by the police to be dissolved in
Prussia under the Association Law of 1850, which forbade the combina-
tion of political organisations. The Social-Democratic^Woiking
Men's Party shared the same fate, and nearly all 'ffiel:ra3e"assodations
which had been formed by Schweitzer came likewise beneath the bann
of the law. Misfortune brought the two rival parties together, and
negotiations for the drawing up of a common programme wefe entered
into by Liebknecht and Geib for the Social-Democrats, and HSsenfclfeverj'
and his heiichrhaii Hasselniann^ for the Lassalle party* Liebknecht's
endeavours were at last crowned with success : the jG erman Socialis ts
«er&_unitfid in.tinp bodyii~^,congiess-Jield..at.£othain Ma^,j[875, .
cxuaplfitesLthfi^-unioar- At this meeting 9000 members of the Eisenach
party (representing 144 places), and 15,000 members of the Lassalle
party (representing 148 places) were represented, the number of the
delegates being 125. The programme then adopted became the
basis of the great agitation which followed and extended to all parts of
Germany.
The programme of the new SociaUst Working Men's Party sets out
with the proposition that labour is the source of all wealth and of all
culture, and that as universally beneficial labour is only possible
through society the entire produce of labouir belongs to society as a
whole ; while, with universal oblig-atibn to labourj each man has a
claim upon the prbducS in accordance With his rational heeds. But ir
I Alluding to the revolution which began in Spain in 1872.
8 Wilhelm Hasselmann, bom September 35th, 1844, at Bremedi
232 German Sociahstn.
the present society the capitalist class monopolises the means of
labour, and the consequent subjection of the working classes is the
cause of misery and servitude in all forms. In order that labour may
be emancipated, society must own in common the means of labour,
labour must be based on the principle of co-operation, and the produce
must be justly distributed and employed for the publi good. This
work of emancipation must be performed by the working classes them-
selves. Thus-4fe]e,^Ea;,aiai3s^dl^aMisi3itlg ihyJa^KfeL si.^^"^ a^ Free
State -9nd-.a.TS,ScialisticSocietyj at " shattering the iron wages law,
abolishing exploitation in every form, and removing all social and
political inequalities." Though confining its work within national
"limits, the party recognises the international character of the labour
movement, and is resolved to fulfil all duties which may lead to the
realisation of the universal brotherhood of mankind. As a way to the
solution of the social problem, the party demands the establishment of
Socialistic productive partnerships both for industry and agriculture
with State help, and under the " democratic control of the labouring
people." A series of demands is then advanced as the basis of the
Socialistic State. These demands comprise universal, equal, and direct
electoral rights, with secret and obligatory voting, for every subject
who has reached the age of twenty years, and that not only for Parlia-
mentary but communal elections. Moreover, the day of election and
voting must be a Sunday oniS- holiday, so that none may be hindered
by his work from taking part. Another dem9.nd is direct legislation
by the people, who shall have power to decide questions of war and
peace, and another is the substitution of a militia with universal service
for the standing army. All exceptional laws, as the Press, Coalition, and
Assembly Laws, and all laws restricting the free expression of opinion
and free thought, are to be repealed. The administration of the law
is to be gratuitous. The State is to provide adequate and equal in-
struction for the youth of the nation, and this instruction is to be free,
while all educational seminaries are to offer gratuitous training, and
religion is to be regarded as a private matter. A number of require-
ments are also made as the basis of society as distinguished from the
State. Political rights and liberties are to be extended as much as
possible in the sense of the foregoing demands. There shall be no
indirect taxation, which falls especially heavily upon the popular
classes, but a single progressive income-tax both for State and
Development of ^ocial-£)emdcrcic^. ^ j 3
parish. The right of coalition shall be unrestricted. As to labour, a
normal workday suited to the needs of society shall be fixed, and
Suixday work shall be prohibited, as well as all juvenile work and
such female work as may be objectionable on sanitary and moral
grounds. Laws providing security for the life and health of the working
man, sanitary control of artisans' dwellings, surveillance of mines,
factories, workshops, and house industries by officials chosen by the
workmen, and laws rendering employers responsible for the persons of
their workpeople shall also be adopted. Finally, prison labour shall
be subject to regulations, and complete self-control be given to all
workmen's relief societies.
The energy with which agitation was carried on by the party may
be judged from statements made in the report presented to the con-
gress held at Gotha n August, 1876. During the first fourteen months
of the party's existence 53,973 marks were placed at the disposal of the
committee for the purpose of propagandism, and this amount was
almost wholly " contributed by working-men who, under the pressure of
the capitaUstic mode of production and of the prevailing commercial
crisis, are scarcely able to earn enough to provide the necessaries of
life for themselves and their families." There were already 145
agitators at work, and the newspapers advocating the cause were 23 in
number with 100,000 subscribers. The report, in fact, showed perfect
organisation. In the following year it could be reported that receipts
of 54,217 marks had been received and that the party had 41 news-
papers, 13 of which appeared daily. The congress of the International)
held at Ghent in 1877 recognised the " magnificent organisation" of
the German Socialist party, and recommended it as a model for other
countries. The German Government also observed the perfection of
this organisation and the success of the agitation which was being
carried on, and already was devising means for checkmating both.
CUAPtER Xlli.
THE INTERNATIONAL ASSOCIATION.
Though not strictly a German organisation, the International
Working Men's Association, or the " Red International," as it is often
called, cannot be regarded as independent of German Socialism. - Not
only was a German Communist its founder, but it has exercised an
incalculable influence iipon the SociaUst party in Germany, especially
in the perfecting of its agitation and the moulding of its policy and
its programme.^ As early as the yeat 1840 endeavours had been
made to bring the working-men of various countries together. In
1839 a number of German working-men were expelled from Paris,
where their presence was considered dangerous, and they took refuge
in London. Here they formed in the following year a " Deutscher
Arbeiter-Bildungsverein,'' an association whose purpose was nominally
the intellectual advancement of working-men, but which gave to
political ends especial prominence. The statutes of this association
were printed in several languages, and its members included, besides
Germans, Englishmen, Hungarians, Poles, Danes and Swedes, for the
most part political outlaws and malcontents. The association adopted
the Chartist programme and corresponded with German working-
men's organisations in France and Switzerland. But the " Deutscher
Arbeiter-Bildungsverein " did not make any great stir in the world,
and even when it took the name of the Society of the Fraternal
Democrats its influence continued small. Fresh impulse was given to
international co-operation by the publication of the Communist
Manifesto of Marx and Engels, already mentioned, on the occasion of
a conference of German Communists held in London in 1847. These
1 Among the best German works on the International are R. Meyer's ' ' Emancipations,
kampf," already referred to ; Dr. E Jkger's " Der moderne Socialismus " (Berlin, 1873) ; W.
Eichkoff's " Die Internationale Arbeiterassodation " (Berlin, 1868) ; and C. Hillmann's small
work with the same title (1871). Of French works may be named Edmond Villetard's
*' Histoire de I'lnternationale " (Paris, 1872), which deals fully with the movement in France ;
Oscar Testut's " Le livre bleu de I'lnternationale" (Paris, 1871); and ]^aveleye'a "Le
&ocialisme contemporain " (Brussels, 1881).
The Internationcit Associatiofti 23^
two men, the Hengest and Horsa of modern aggressive Communism,
were commissioned by the " League of Communists " with the draw-
ing up of a programme for the party< and the Manifesto ^ was the
successful result.
In this historic work stress is laid upon the social as distinguished
from the purely national character of the labourers' question. All
society is divided into the two great camps of the bourgeoisie and the
proletariat, and it is the object of Communism to break down the wall
of partition, and to place all classes on the same basis both by level'lihg
up and levelling down, so that there may be only one, all-embracing
class. The Manifesto examines the mode of production which has
given rise to the proletariat, whose growth keeps pace with the
development of capitalism. Labour is bought by the capitalist like
any article of trade, and like all commodities it is subject to the
vicissitudes of competition and to all oscillations of the market. The
price of a commodity is equal to the cost of its production, so that
labour may be purchased for the cost of supporting the labpurer and
of propagating his species. The Manifesto says that the Communists
do not form a special labourers' party independent of other labourers'
parties. They have no interests which differ from those of the entire
proletariat, nor do they advance particular principles according to
which th& proletariat must proceed. The only difference at all is that
the Communists stand upon a social and therefore an international
basis. They demand that private property shall be abolished, the
bourgeoisie be hurled from its place of domination, equality be intro-
duced in society, and the family cease to exist. It is often contended
by critics more or less favourable to the Communist programme that
the revolution proposed in the family relationship is not so great as it
appears. Let us take the actual words of the Manifesto :
" Abolition of the family ! Even the most radical grow warm at
this shameful intention of the Communists. But on what does the
present, the civil, family rest ? On capital, on private gain: It only
exists fully developed for the bourgeoisie j but it is supplemented by
the enforced childlessness of the proletariat a-aA. by public prostitution.
The family of the bourgeois will naturally cease with the cessation of
1 A preface to the thM German edition of 1872 gives a short account of the origin of the
Manifesto, which had up to that year been twelve times published in Germany, England and
America,
i^6 German Sociakstti.
this supplement ; and both will disappear with the disappearance of
capital. Do you charge us with desiring to put an end to the exploi-
tation of children by their parents ? We admit the crime. But, you
say, we abolish the dearest relationships when we replace domestic by
social training. Yet is not your training determined by society — by
the social relationships amidst which you are brought up, by the
direct or indirect interference of society, by means of the school, &c. ?
The Communists do not originate this interference of society in the
training of children ; they only change its character, they liberate the
training from the influence of the ruling class. The talk of the
bourgeoisie about the family and training, about the ' dear relation-
ship ' between parents and children, becomes all the more nauseous,
the more, in consequence of industry being carried on upon a large
scale, all family ties are broken for the proletariat, and children are
converted into mere articles of trade and instruments of labour. ' But
you Communists wish to introduce community of wives,' shrieks the
entire bourgeoisie in chorus. The bourgeois regards his wife as a mere
instrument of production. He hears that the instruments of pro-
duction are to be exploited in common, and he cannot help thinking
that community of wives will take place at the same time. He has no
idea that the very thing in view is the abolition of woman's position as
a pure instrument of production. Moreover, is there anything more
ridiculous than the highly moral horror of our bourgeois at the official
community of wives which the Communists are supposed to desire ?
The Communists have no need to introduce community of wives, for
it has almost always existed. Our bourgeois, not satisfied that the
wives and daughters of the ■proletariat are at their disposal— not to
speak of official prostitution — find in the mutual seduction of their
wives one of their chief pleasures. The civjl marriage is in reality
community of wives. At the most the Communists could be re-
proached for wishing to introduce an official and ingenuous, instead of
a hypocritical and clandestine community of wives. Besides, it is
self-evident that with the abolition of the present conditions of pro-
duction, the community of wives to which they give rise, that is,
official and unofficial prostitution, will disappear."
As transitional measures, leading up to the complete emancipation
of the proletariat, the Manifesto advances : the expropriation of landed
property and the employment of the rent for State purposes ; a heavy
The International Association. ' 237
progressive tax ; the abolition of hereditary right ; the confiscation of
the property of emigrants and rebels ; the centralisation of credit in
the hands of the State by the establishment of a National Bank with
State capital and absolute monopoly ; the centralisation of the entire
transport system in the hands of the State ; the increase of national
manufactories and instruments of production, and the reclamation
and improvement of land according to a common plan ; equal com-
pulsion to work on everyone ; the institution of " industrial armies,"
especially for agriculture ; the union of agriculture and industry for
the gradual removal of the distinction between town and country ;, the
public and gratuitous education of all children, the abolition of juve-
nile labour in manufactories in its present form, and the association of
education with material production.
In conclusion, the Manifesto declares the policy of the Communists '
to be that of combination with either friends or foe for the purpose of
combating the institutions against which they have declared war. Every
revolutionary movement aimed at the existing social and political
order of things will have their support. " Communists labour every-
where for the combination and reconciliation of the democratic parties
of all countries. The Communists disdain to conceal their opinions
and intentions. They declare openly that their purposes can only be
attained by the forcible subversion of all existing social arrangements.
Let the ruling classes tremble in view of a Communistic Revolution I
The proletariat has nothing to lose but its chains. It has a world to
win. Proletariat of all countries, unite ! "
The immediate success of the Manifesto was not great. The time
was hardly ripe for such a proclamation, and it only began to be fam-
ous a dozen years later. The League had later its seat at Cologne,
but it did not accomplish any great work. Until 1862 the Communists
were very quiet, but in that year events occurred to rouse them again
to activity. It was the year of the London Exhibition, and under the
auspices of the Emperor Napoleon III., a number of Paris working-
men visited the English capital. They were welcomed by a London
committee of artisans, and on this occasion the wish for a closet
union between the labourers of different countries was expressed on
both sides. Then the Polish insurrection broke out, and masses of
London and Paris working-men took steps simultaneously to manifest
sympathy with the insurgents. A deputation was again sent over
238 German Socialism.
from Paris, and the result of this measure was a resolution to delay
preparations for co-operation no longer. For some time the interna-
tional idea was carefully given prominence in labour circles in various
countries, and on September 28th, 1864, n congress of many nations
was held in St. Martin's Hall, London, under the presidency of Pro-
fessor Beesly. A committee was appointed, representing England,
France, Germany, Italy, Poland, and Switzerland, for the drawing up
of statutes for an International Working Men's Association, whose seat
should be London. The German members of the committee were
Marx and Eccarius, and the English members were twenty-seven in
number. While Englishmen were chosen as president, secretary, and
treasurer of the general council, corresponding secretaries were ap-
pointed for the affiliated countries, and Marx naturally received the
office for Germany. At first the Association had the help of no less
a man than Mazzini, but Marx and he were never friends, and it was
soon seen that one of the two would have to give way and retire.
Mazzini sought to establish the Association upon a thoroughly inter-
national basis, but the statutes he proposed were not suited to an
organisation which intended to carry on active agitation. Moreover,
he was too temperate a man for the International, and he failed to win
great sympathy. Then Marx produced an inaugural address and a draft
of statutes, and both were at once adopted. Marx thus found himself
at the head of the organisation. This reverse was too much for Maz-
zini, and he withdrew from association with the movement, and did
his best to prevent it from setting foot in Italy. ^ In his inaugural ad-
dress Marx dwelt upon the want prevailing amongst the working
classes, want which had continued undiminished since 1848, though
the propertied classes had become more prosperous. He held it to
be incontrovertibly proved that the perfection of machinery, the utili-
sation of science in industry and agriculture, the extension of markets,
artificial measures like colonisation and emigration, as well as free
1 Addressing a body of Italian working-men in 1871, Mazzini said he refused to co-operate
with the International though pressed to do so. He said : '* With this Association, founded
in London several years ago, I have from the outset refused to co-operate. It is conducted
by a general council, whose soul is Karl Marx, The latter is a German, a man of acute but
destructive spirit, like Proudhon, of imperious temperament, and jealous of the influence of
others. He believes strongly neither in philosophical nor religious truths, and, as I bad rea-
son to fear, hatred outweighs love in his heart, which is not right even if the hatred may in
itself have foundation." Mazzini would thus appear to have assisted the founders of the
Association only so long as h$ saw a i;hw«e «f thwarting the Mv^ t^odf ncjr.
The International Association. 239
trade were all unable to relieve the condition of the labouring popula-
tion. Asking for a remedy, he found it in co-operative labour de-
veloped to national dimensions and promoted by State resources.
But as the land-owning and capitalist classes would be sure to use their
political privileges for the defence of their economic monopolies, the
working classes must first acquire political power. They possessed
one element of strength, that of numbers, but numbers without union
were of no avail, and thus it was a paramount duty to combine for
mutual defence and offence. " Proletariat of all countries," ended
the address, " unite ! " The statutes of the Association advance the
claims of the working classes in a series of propositions. The eman-
cipation of these classes, it is said, must be brought about by them-
selyes, but the struggle for this emancipation does not signify a struggle
for class privileges and monopolies, rather for equal rights and duties
and for the abolition of all class domination. The dependence of the
labourer upon the monopolist of the instruments of labour, the source
of life, is at the root of all servitude, social misery, intellectual degra-
dation, and political subjection ; for which reason the economic
emancipation of the working classes must be the great aim, and politi-
cal movements must be subordinated to this aim. In the past all
efforts on behalf of this emancipation have failed for lack of union
amongst the labourers of different countries, and as this is not a local
or even national, but in the widest sense of the word a social problem,
the working classes should combine in an international organisation.
The statutes declare that truth, justice, and morality are the basis of
the dealings of members both with each other and all mankind. The
watchword is " No rights without duties, no duties without rights."
It was not long before the International Association became a
power which caused alarm to not a few European Governments. The
first congress was to have been held at Brussels,, but the Belgian
Government refused to allow the meeting to take place, and the con-
sequence was that a mere conference was held in London in Septem-
ber. The reports from the Continent were not very cheering. Italy
had, owing to the influence of Mazzini, severed connection with the
Association ; in France the police were ruling with a high hand ; in
Belgium no one appeared to care to take the initiative; only in
Switzerland were things prospering. The first real congress was held
in 1866 at Geneva, and it sat from 3epternber 3rd to joth. Sixty
240 German Socialism.
delegates of affiliated Working Men's Associations attended, seventeen
being from France, seven from London, and several from Germany.
Here the statutes were adopted, and the administrative machinery
was properly set to work. In the discussion which took place on
factory employment, it was demanded that children from nine to
twelve years of age should not be allowed to work longer than two
hours daily in factories and workshops, children of from thirteen to
fifteen not more than four hours, and those between sixteen and
seventeen years not more than six hours. In any case, proper care
must be tak^n by the employer for the education of children working
for him. Other resolutions were adopted in favour of Trades Unions,
of direct taxation, of the abolition of standing armiesj and the inde-
pendence of Poland. An interesting point had to be settled in the
consideration of the statutes. How was the term proletariat to be
defined ? Was it to mean hand-workers without head-workers, or was
it to embrace both ? It was a knotty as well as a delicate question to
decide, for Marx and his associates could not be admitted to the
Association if the word were g^ven the narrower signification, as the
French delegates desired. It was resolved to make the term com-
prehensive in the hope of, gaining intellectual as well as numerical
strength. Already the International was able to boast of quite a host
of helpers in the Press. It had four organs in Germany — ±he Social-
Democrat, Berlin ; the Deutsche Arbeiterzeitung, Coburg ; the
Nordstern, Hamburg ; and the Correspondent, Leipzig ; six in
Switzerland, four in Paris, two in London, and one in Belgium.
The second congress was held at Lausanne from September 2nd to
8th, 1867 A decidedly Communistic direction was taken by the pro-
ceedings this year. I' was resolved that the Association should aim
at making the State the owner of all means of transport and communi-
cation — railways, canals, highways. A resolution was also brought
forward calling for the abolition of hereditary rights and of private
property in land and instruments of labour, but a decision was not
arrived at on these questions. A qualified approval was given to the
endeavours being made in various countries — especially Germany and
England — to found Productive Associations for the labouring class,
and as a means of raising wages the strike system was commended.
No sooner had the Geneva congress of 1866 been held, than the
French Government sharpened its repressive weapons, and so closely
The International Association. 241
were the adherents of the International pursued that before the year-
1868 was out the French Association had to be dissolved. Still, the
members of the expired organisation preserved their association with
the parent society. Italy was now coming round, and a journal in
Naples vigorously championed the cause of the International. ' The
third congress took place September 5th to lith, 1868, in Brussels.
The delegates only fell two short of a hundred, and the countries repre-
sented were this year seven in number : Germany, England, France,
Belgium, Switzerland, Italy, and Spain. This was essentially a
Communistic congress. At Lausanne it had been resolved that means
of communication should be appropriated by the State. Now land,
mines, quarries, forests, and telegraphs were added to the railways and
canals : all must pass into the hands of the community, and by the
community be employed for the universal welfare. Another blessing
was pronounced upon strikes, but it was acknowledged that they could
not be expected to make the working classes free and needed to be pro-
perly organised. Allied associations were recommended to take steps
for the education of the working classes. At this congress, too, the
cry of " The produce for the producer " was raised. Rent, interest,
and profit of all kinds must cease to exist : labour must be rewarded
with the entire produce.
The anti-religious tendency of the Association showed itself in
the words with which the president closed the congress: — ^"We
want no more Governments, for Governments oppress us by taxes ;
we want no armies, for armies massacre and murder us ; we want
no religion, for religions choke the understanding." More out-
spokenly anti-religious, however, was the programme of the " Alliance
Internationale de la Democratic Socialiste " formed at this time by
the Nihilist, Michael Bakunin, of members who had seceded from the
International. The rival organisation did not prosper, and it was
dissolved in 1871. Both in 1867 and 1868 unfavourable reports were
read to the congress from Germany. It was stated that progress was
very slow, for branches of the association could not legally exist in the
country.
Better prospects were offered to the International in Germany in
the year 1869, when the Social-Democratic Party was formed at
Eisenach with a programme based on the principles expounded by
Marx, This year, indeed, the International flourished remarkably
242 German Socialism.
owing to the economic crisis which visited the industrial countries of
Europe, and from Germany, France, Belgium, and Italy the rosiest of
reports could be sent to the Council in London. Branches were also
established in Austria and Holland. This year's congress was held
at Basel, September 6th to 9th, and eighty delegates were present.
The resolutions adopted emphasised the necessity existing for the
abolition of private property in land and its conversion into common
property. The question of hereditary rights again came up, but no
decision was come to. The recommendation was issued to allied
associations that they should promote the formation of Trades
Unions, whose success in England made a great impression upon the
congress.
In 1870 occurred the war between Germany and France. It had
been decided to hold a congress in Paris in September, but events
prevented the assembling of delegates this year. But the International
was not slow to profit by the stormy occurrences of this memorable
year. Several manifestoes were issued relative to the war. The first,
which appeared on June 23rd, '^ declared the war to be for Germany
one of defence, and called upon th& proletariat to see that it remained
such. On September 9th, when the German army, flushed with
victory, was advancing on Paris, an urgent appeal was issued to the
labouring classes of all countries to endeavour to prevent the war
from becoming a war of conquest, and another manifesto followed the
fall of the Commune. Marx actually claimed that the International
had a hand in the September Revolution, and he is said to have
planned risings in various parts of Europe, including the large towns
of Germany.
Neither in 1870 nor 1871 could a congress be held, but in the latter
year a conference took place in London, September 17th to 23rd.
The resolutions related chiefly to administrative and statutary questions.
It was reported that the International had now branches in Sweden,
Portugal, and Denmark. Long before this the German Social-
Democratic party had fully accepted the programme of the Association,
thanks to the zeal of Liebknecht and Bebel, and in 1871 Bebel publicly
declared that while the actual number of members in Germany was
only a thousand, all Social-Democrats were virtual adherents of the
International. It is, however, difficult to say how far the published
J lyar wEis fonnally proclaimed by France on July 15th, tjyq.
The Intetnational Association. 243
reports of the Association are to be relied on when avowals like the
following, which came to light during a Socialistic trial at Leipzig,
have been made. Marx wrote to Bracke on March 24th, 1870 : " I
beg you to remember that the report [respecting the state of the
movement in Germany] is not written for the public, and therefore it
exhibits the facts without varnish, and quite true to the actual state of
things."
In 1872 a congress was held at the Hague early in September.
Sixty-five delegates were present, — twenty-five representing German
associations or bearing German names, — and thirteen countries took
part, Germany, England, Ireland, Holland, France, Belgium, Denmark,,
Switzerland, Spain, Portugal, Hungary, the United States, and
Australia. The congress was one of the most important held. An
endeavour was made by one party to abolish the General Council, and
by another to define its powers ; but Marx stood up boldly for his
prerogatives, and by getting t^he seat of the Council removed from
London to New York, he succeeded in preserving its functions and
powers almost intact. Still, there was serious disagreement on the
subject, and the breach thus caused was never properly healed. The
minority of Spanish, Belgian, Dutch, and Jura delegates whose
proposals Marx succeeded in defeating went so far as to enter formal
protest against the decisions finally arrived at. One of the principal
resolutions adopted at this congress urged the formation of the labouring
classes into a political party, whose airti it should be to combat the
existing social system with all energy. Before the delegates dispersed
a meeting was held by invitation at Amsterdam, and Marx there made ■
a speech in which he proclaimed in the plainest terms the doctrine of
revolution. He said :
" We do not deny that there are countries, as America, England,
and Holland, where working-men can reach their ends by pacific
means. If this is true we must still acknowledge that in most Con-
tinental countries force must be the lever of our revolution : we must
appeal to force in order to establish the supremacy of the working
class." Then, referring to himself, he said, " I shall work away at my
task, I shall not withdraw from the International, and the remainder
of my life will, like the past, be devoted to the triumph of the social
ideas which we are sure will one day bring about the rule of the
proletariat," The result pf this con;e;rea» was that the German
244 German Socialism.
delegates were divided into opposite camps, one part adhering closely
to Marx, and the other seeking to check his power. The dissidents
for a time withdrew from the International This year an attempt
was made by the Spanish Government to induce other Governments
to combine for the suppression of the International, but England
refused to unite, as English laws had so far not been transgressed,
and the plan fell to the ground.
The succeeding congress was held at Geneva in September, 1873.
On January Sth the General Council had suspended the Jura Federation
for contumacy, and on the 9th it prepared to excommunicate on a
larger scale by the adoption and promulgation of a resolution which
declared that " societies or persons refusing to acknowledge the
decisions of the congress, or knowingly neglecting duties imposed by
the statutes and the orders of the administration, exclude themselves
from the International Working Men's Association and cease to be
members of the same." On account of this resolution federations in
England, Belgium, Switzerland, Italy, and Spain ceded or were
expelled. The General Council called a congress -at Geneva for
September Sth, and the excluded federations called a congress at the
same place for the ist of the month. The result of the rival congress
was an attempt at reconciliation, but it proved futile. All that the
seceded associations objected to was the dictatorial power reposed in
the president Marx. Had this been broken down, the secession would
not have occurred. The seceders decided to form a new International,
and new statutes were drawn up, but the old name was preserved. In
the new organisation branch associations were allowed greater
independence of action, and the administrative power was restricted.
The proceedings of his opponents must have been galling to Marx, for
not only did the dissentients represent six countries, but his personal
friend Eccarius had gone over to the enemy's camp. The second
International began its career with every promise of success. Though
the Universal Working Men's Association established by Lassalle in
Germany had kept aloof from Marx, it cordially fraternised with his
rivals, and sent a telegram of congratulation to the opposition congress.
Oddly enough as it sounds, the seceders declared the old International
to be defunct. This, however, did not prevent the holding of the
congress called by Marx for the second week in September. This
eongresg lasted from the 8th to the 13th of the month, and thirty
The International Associatioti. ^45
delegates were present from Germany, France, England, and Switzer-
land. Favourable reports were presented from Germany, where a
fortnight before an important Socialist congress had been held at
Eisenach. It was stated that an unwearied agitation was being carried
on in the country, and that Social-Democratic ideas were nowpropagated
in " every viUage and out-of-the-way comer." The SociaUst Press also
did good work, the organs of the party including eleven ordinary
newspapers, mostly appearing daily, and many trade journals. The
political organisation of the working classes was again considered, and
a resolution was passed for giving federate associations a free hand.
It was also decided to hold biennial congresses for the future.
Of later congresses held at the instigation of Marx, the only one
calling here for notice is that of Ghent. This was an International
Socialist Congress and\ it met from September 9th to isth, 1877.
Delegates were present from Germany, England, France, Belgium,
Denmark, Austria, Hungary, Switzerland, and Italy. It was a mixed
gathering of extremists and moderates, of Marxians and independents.
Liebknecht represented the Social-Democratic party of Germany, and
continued true to his old leader. In this congress there was a lively
debate on the question of the appropriation of not only land but all
means of production by the State on behalf of society. This was the
proposal of the adherents of Marx, who demanded that the State
should alone regulate production and consumption. This was Com-
munism pure and simple, and half-a-dozen years ago it would have
satisfied everybody. But the followers of the Nihilist Bakunin were
not contented ; they would accept nothing less than the total abolition
of the State — in other words, absolute anarchy. This one of the
delegates avowed, when he objected : " Communism is community and
government, but Anarchism is community and anarchy," and this he
wanted. Marx, however, won the day, and thus showed the world
that his star was still in the ascendant, but the majority in his favour
was small. It seemed as though the Communists were out-Marxing
Marx in the extremeness of their demands. The proceedings of the
congress made it clear that the half-heartedness with which participa-
tion in political life was formerly regarded, had entirely disappeared,
for a resolution was passed urging the proletariat to employ all
possible means of exerting an influence in politics with a view to
ultimate social emancipation. A Universal Union of International
24^ German Socialism.
Socialism was formed, with an office in Ghent, and a manifesto was
shortly afterwards issued to the Socialist working-men's organisations'
in England, France, Belgium, Denmark, Germany, Austria-Hungary,
Switzerland, and Italy, in which the demands of earlier congresses
were reiterated, and especial stress was laid upon the importance of
political agitation, since "social emancipation is inseparable from
political emancipation,'' and political action may be made " a powerful
means of propaganda, popular education, and organisation." The mani-
festo ended with the old cry, " Proletariat of, all countries, unite ! "
The International had by this time become almost superfluous, for it
had placed the Socialist movement in Europe upon such a firm basis
that it could be carried on in the individual countries independently of
any guiding organisation. Marx lived to see his labours in the cause
of international co-operati9li cornpletely rewarded, though when he
died in 1883 the goal for which he had for half a century striven re-
mained still out of sight. His Communism is yet a theory. Nowadays^
the International Association is seldom mentioned in Germany, but
in the United States it enjoys more or less success. A mass meeting
held in New York shortly after the death of its founder vowed fidelity
to the principles of the departed leader. "We pledge ourselves,"
said the meeting, " to keep his name and his works ever in remem^
brance, and to do our utmost for the dissemination of the ideas given
by him to the world. We promise, in honour of the memory of our
great departed, to dedicate our lives to the cause of which he was a
pioneer — ^the struggle in which he left so noble a record — and never
at any moment to forget his great appeal, ' Workmen of the world,
unite ! '" The same resolution was adopted by a large assembly at
Chicago, where several Anarchists were executed last November for
complicity in a series of heinous murders.
CHAPTER XIV.
THE ERA OF REPRESSION.
Another epoch in the history of German Socialism has now been
reached, and it is the epoch of Repression, which began in the year
1878, when the German Reichstag passed the now celebrated Social-
ist Law. For years the Government had watched the progress of -
the movement with growing alarm and uneasiness. It had not only
seen the Socialist party envelop the country with an agitation and an
organisation unparalleled in German history, but it had also observed
the gradual strengthening of the party in the Legislature of the Empire
as well as in the Diets of some of the States. It had become at last a
hydra exciting no less wonder than fear, and the Government resolved,
if tardily, that an earnest attempt must be made to grapple with and
overcome the monster. How far this decision was wise and how far
the later measures have been just ars not questions with which we
have to do, seeing that we are dealing with pure history. Prince
Bismarck has put it upon record that he first saw danger in the Social-
Democratic agitation when in the first session of the new Reichstag
a benediction was pronounced upon the Paris Commune. Up to then
he had taken a Uvely interest in the movement, without regarding it
as necessarily a source of peril to the State. But the time came when
his opinions were to undergo a thorough change.
"It was the moment when in the assembled Reichstag either
Deputy Bebel or Liebknecht in pathetic appeal held up the French
Commime as a model of political institutions, and openly confessed
before the nation the gospel of the Paris murderers and incendiaries.
From that moment I experienced a full conviction of the danger which
threatened us. . That appeal to the Commune was a ray of light
upon the matter, and from that moment I regarded the Social-Demo-
cratic elements as an enemy against which the State and society must
arm themselves."^
^ Speecb in the Reichstag, September tyth, 18781
248 German Socialism.
The Parliamentary strength' of the Socialist party at the time we have
reached may be shown by comparative figures, embracing the elections
to the Reichstag from its constitution to the year 1877. The number
of members in the Reichstag is fixed by article 20 of the constitution
at 382, but from the election of 1874 the number has been 397 owing
to the addition of 15 deputies from Alsace and Lorraine. In 1S71 the
Socialists returned only 2 members, exclusive of a member of the
so-called Volkspartei, an insignificant section of the extreme Liberal
Left, one of the first leaders of which, Jacoby, went over to Socialism.
Three years later the Socialist members numbered 9 and in 1877 they had
increased to 12. Saxony returned 2 Socialists in 1871, 6 in 1874, and
7 in 1877 ; Prussia returned 3 in 1874, and 4 in 1877 ; and in 1877 the
Principality of Reuss a. L. returned one Socialist. The votes polled
were as follows during these elections :
First ordinary voting for candidates contesting.
1871 1874 1877
Total poll 3,892,160 5,190,254 5,401,021
Socialist party 124,665 35i)9S2 493,288
In point of numbers polled, the Socialist party in the last year took
the fifth place amongst the fourteen parties returning candidates, while
in point of Parliamentary strength its place was the eighth. The
deputies returpedby the Socialist party in 1877 included Liebknecht,
Bebel, Hasselmann, Hasenclever, Most, Bracke, Fritzsche, and
Vahlteich.
As early as 1871 Prince Bismarck had vainly appealed to the
Governments of Europe to combine for the purpose of withstanding
the enemy which confronted them. Naturally, therefore, the German
Government seconded the proposals made by Spain in 1872 for the
suppression by common European action of the International Asso-
ciation, which was rightly considered to be the root of the evil. The
circular which the Spanish Foreign Minister addressed to the Powers
on the subject was dated February 9th, 1872. It expressed the
sanguine expectation that " in view of the urgency- of the case," every
State would be only too ready to take up arms against the universal
foe. Lord Granville, however, speaking for the British Government,
declined to co-operate, as such a step would be contrary both to the
letter and the spirit of the British law. Foreigners, he said, in a despatcb
The Era of Repression. 249
of March 8th, were secured by law an unrestricted right of residence
in England, and so long as the law of the country was not violated it
would not be possible to interfere. This attitude of the British Govern-
ment gave displeasure to more than one of the Powers, and the semi-
official North German Gazette of Berlin grumbled loudly in an article
published on April 17th. Here, however, the matter dropped for the
time being. The German Government next tried to reach the Socialist
agitation by means of a gag upon the Press. In May, 1874, when the
Imperial Press Law was under consideration, a provision was intro-
duced which would have enabled the Executive to place a severe
check upon the publication of objectionable prints. This provision
was to the effect that any person who held up disrespect for the law as
" something allowable or meritorious " would be liable to two years'
imprisonment or, if extenuating circumstances existed, to a fine of
600 marks. The Reichstag, however, declined to sanction this pro-
posal and also another of a more mildly repressive kind, holding that
they struck at the root of the freedom of the Press. Two years later
the Government made another attempt in the same direction, propos-
ing that the excitement of various classes of the population to acts of
violence and attacks upon the institutions of marriage, the family, and
property — whether by speech or writings — should be punishable.
Again, however, the Reichstag was obdurate.
What finally brought the Legislature over to Prince Bismarck's
views, when argument and persuasion proved futile, were acts which
threw all Germany into perturbation. On May nth, 1878, while
driving in the Linden, in Berlin, with his daughter the Grand Duchess
of Baden, the Emperor William was shot at by a young man named
Hodel, an ignorant fellow of low character. Two shots were fired
from a pistol but both failed to take effect. The scene of the attempted
assassination was near that of the attempt of Blind upon Bismarck on
May 7th, 1866. The nation was horrified, and it was quite in accord-
ance with its passionate desire that somebody should suffer, that two
days later an Anti-Socialist Bill was introduced in the Reichstag.
The conviction was widely shared that Hodel, who three months later
suffered death at Berlin, was an instrument of the Social-Democratic
party, and natural conclusions were drawn from the fact that when
captured photographs of Liebknecht, Bebel, and other prominent
Socialist leaders were found on his person. The coercive law — " Law
^SO Cerman Socialisifi.
for the check ,of Social-Democratic excesses " (Gesetz zur Abwehr
socialdemoktaiischer Ausschreitungeti) — was debated during May, at
a time when the Anarchist Most was being prosecuted in Berlin for
libelling the clergy. The Socialist Deputies denounced the proposals
as an " unexampled attempt on popular freedom," and indeed they
were extreme. Associations and prints which furthered the ends of
Social-Democracy might be prohibited by the Bundesrath, whose pro-
hibitions should be notified to the Reichstag, which had a power ol
veto. The circulation of objectionable prints in public streets, roads,
and places was forbidden, and while offenders made themselves liable
to severe punishment the publications were to be confiscated. The
right of public meeting was also restricted. The Government was
defeated ; the Reichstag by a majority of 251 votes to 57 rejected the
first paragraph of the bill, and the measure was consequently with-
drawn. No sooner had the Reichstag refused to pass the law than
another attempt was njade upon the life of the aged sovereign. This
time the would-be assassin was a Dr. Karl Nobiling, who on June 2nd,
1878, fired at the Emperor from an upper window in the Linden and
severely wounded him. Great as was the indignation of the nation
before, it was now infinitely greater, and the cry for repressive
measures against the Socialists became general. Yet so far were
many people from comprehending the strength of the foe which they,
desired to overcome, that proposals such as the expulsion of all Social-
Democrats from the country and the refusal of employment to all
persons avowing Socialistic principles were commonly advocated.
The Chancellor thought he knew of a more excellent way of dealing
with the difficulty , he would take steps to suppress agitation. A
general election took place, and the constitution of the new Reichstag
was such as to enable Prince Bismarck to carry out his will. In the
assembly of 1877 there was a strong Liberal majority, but the election
of 1878 showed a decided reaction. The German Conservatives
increased their strength from 40 to 59, and the Imperial party (Free
Conservatives) advanced from 38 to 57, while the National Liberals
fell from 128 to 99, the Liberals from 13 to 10, and the Progressists
from 35 to 26. The Socialists only succeeded in retaining 9 of their
12 seats, and their aggregate poll in the first elections fell from 493,288
to 437,158 votes. With such a Reichstag, Bismarck could do pretty
nearly as he liked.
The Era of Repressiott. > ij t
ITT -i-y ■ ^ : i^ji ;^£«,fl ..i,.^ ,
Another law was now proposed — the " Law against the publicly-
dangerous endeavours of Social-Democracy" {Gesetzgegen die gemein-
gefdhrlichen Bestrebung&n der Socialdemokratie). The bill as intro-
duced consisted of twenty-two clauses, and as approved it gave to the
Executive and the police, as will shortly be seen, very extensive powers.
The statement accompanying the bill in which the Government justified
the powers sought for referred to the two attempts made upon the
Emperor, the' result of which was a firm conviction on the part of the
Federal Governments that repression was imperative. This Begrund-
■ung also set forth :
" The endeavours of Social-Democracy are aimed at the practica
realisation of the radical theories of modern Socialism and Communism.
According to these theories the present system of production is un-
economical, and must be rejected as an unjust exploitation of labour
by capital. Labour is to'be emancipated from capital ; private capital
is to be converted into collective capital ; individual production,
regulated by competition, is to be converted into systematic co-
operative production ; and the individual is to be absorbed in society.
The Social-Democratic movement differs greatly from all humanitarian
movements in that it proceeds from the assumption that the ameliorar
tion of the condition of the working classes is impossible on the basis
of the present social system, and can only be attained by the social
revolution spoken of. This social revolution is to be affected by the
co-operation of the working classes of all States, with the simultaneous
subversion of the existing constitutions. The movement has especially
taken this revolutionary and international character since the founda-
tion of the International Working Men's Association in London, in
September, 1864. ... It is, in fact, a question of breaking away from
'the legal development of civilised States, and of the complete subver-
sion of the prevailing system of property. The organisation of the
proletariat, the destruction of the existing order of State and society,
-and the establishment of the Socialistic community and the Socialistic
State by the organised proletariat — these are the avowed aims of
Social-Democracy. The well-organised Socialistic agitation, carried
on by speech and writings with passionate energy, is in accord with these
■finds. This agitation seeks to disseminate amongst the poor and less
educated classes of the population, discontent with their lot as well as
-Ihe conviction that under the present ri^jm* their condition is hopeless
^S^ Oerman SociatisfH.
and to excite them as the " disinherited " to envy and hatred of the
upper classes. The moral and religious convictions which hold society
together are shattered ; reverence and piety are ridiculed ; the legal
notions of the masses are confused ; and respect for the law is destroyed.
The most odious attacks and abuse which are levelled at the German
Empire and its institutions — at royalty and the army, whose glorious
history is slandered, — give the Socialist agitation in this country a
specifically anti-national stamp ; for it estranges the minds of the people
from native customs and from the Fatherland. The representations
which are given, both by spoken and written word, of former revolu-
tionary events and the glorification of well-known leaders of revolution,
as well as the acts of the Paris Commune, are calculated to excite
revolutionary desires and passions, and to dispose the masses to acts
of violence. . . . The law of self-preservation, therefore, compels the
State and society to oppose the Social-Democratic movement with
decision ; and, above all, the State is bound to protect the legal system
which is threatened by Social-Democracy, and to put restraints upon
Socialistic agitation. True, thought cannot be repressed by external
compulsion '; the movements 'of minds can only be overcome in intel-
lectual combat. Still, when such movements take wrong ways and
threaten to become destructive, the means for their extension can and
should be taken away by legal means. The Sociahstic agitation, as
carried on for years, is a continual appeal to violence and to the
passions of the masses with a view to the subversion of State and social
, order, The State can check such an enterprise as this, by depriving
Social-Democracy of its most important means of agitation, and by
destroying its organisation ; and it milkst do this unless it is willing to
surrender its existence, and unless there is to grow up amongst the
pbpulation the conviction either that the State is impotent, or that the
aims Of Social-Democracy are justifiable. . . . Social-Democracy
has declared war against the State and society, and has proclaimed their
subversion to be its aim. It has thus forsaken the ground of equal
right for all, and it cannot complain if the law should only be exercised
in its favour to the extent consistent with the security .and order of
the State."
Such was the heavy indictment brought by the Government against
Socialism on the momentous occasion of its demand for exceptional
coercive laws. The debate which took place on the bill was one of
The Era of Repression. 253
historical importance, for Prince Bismarck expounded his economic
and social views with a freedom and candour which astonished: many,
and paved the way for an open avowal of the policy of State Socialism.
The debate on the first reading was begun on September i6th, and it
lasted two long days. The Socialist party endeavoured to clear itself
of compUcity in the two attempts on the Emperor, but it was answered
that even although Hodel and Nobiling might not have been the
emissaries of the party, the very essence of Socialism and Communism
was hatred of the ruling classes. Bebel declared :
" We wish to abolish the present form of private property in the
instruments of production and means of labour, as well as in land.
That is a fact which we have never denied. But so far Social-De-
mocracy has never forcibly taken or destroyed private property to the
value of a nickel FUnfer' [5 Pfennig or about Jd.], nor does it
wish to attack private property with the intention of ruining the
individuals."
On this ground he opposed a bill that proposed to attack the
legally-acquir,ed property of Socialists and their sympathisers by the
confiscation of newspapers and publications. He twitted Prince
Bismarck for associating with Socialists like Lassalle, an act which
could only serve to confirm the working classes in the behef that their
Socialisticconvictionswereright,andinstancedRodbertus,VonThunen, ,
Rau,i Lange, Schaffle, Roscher,^ Wagner, Samter,8 Von Scheel,*
1 Karl Heinrich Rau, bom November 23rd, 1792, at Erlangen, counts as one of the classical
political economists of Germany. He became professor at Heidelberg in 1822, and remained
there until his death, which occurred March i8th, 1870. His chief work is " Lehrbuch der
politischen Skonomie," which since his death has been remodelled by his pupils Adolph
Wagner and Erwin Nasse, the latter professor at Bonn.
2 Wilhelm Roscher, professor of political economy at Leipog, where he last year cele-
brated his seventieth birthday in the midst of a large circle of admiring disciples. He was
bom October 21st, 1817, at Hanover, and in 1843 became professor a GBttingen, his alma
mater. Since 184S he has taugjlt at Leipzig. Roscher is the founder of the historic method
in Germany. He has been a very fertile writer.
S Adolf Samter, political economist and author, bom at KOnigsberg, March 2nd, 1824.
Until 1878 he was in the Prussian State service, but on account of his pronounced Socialistic
opinions, or rather the advocacy of them, he lost his position. Samter is a defender of the
nationalisation of the land. 1
4 Hans von Scheel, a writer of repute on sogial-political questions, was appointed to an
academic chair at Pern in 1871.
2S4 German Socialism.
Brentano,^ and Schmoller,^ as political economists whose writ-
ings all had more or less a Socialistic tendency. In reply, how-
ever, to Bebel's profession of the pacific character of his mission. Count
Eulenberg could quote from " Unsere Ziele," a work now prohibited,
wherein Bebel considers the contingency of violent developments, and
euphemistically says that the social question will not be " settled by
the sprinkling of rose water." Prince Bismarck repudiated the charge
that he had formerly been in communication with Social-Democrats,
to whose number he refused to reckon Lassalle, and complained that
distinction should not be made between honourable endeavours to
improve the condition of the working classes, and " that which we are
to-day compelled to our sorrow and pain to understand by the idea of
Social-Democracy." Surely men like Rodbertus were not to be
placed on the same level with Nobiling and the Nihilists. The bill
was referred to committee, and the second reading was fixed for
October gth. It was proposed that the measure should continue in
force until March 31st, 1881. The second debate was even more
animated than the first. On October 9th the Chancellor said : —
" I will further every endeavour which positively aims at improving
the condition of the working classes . . . As soon as a positive
proposal came from the Socialists for fashioning the future in a sensible
way, in order that the lot of the working-man might be improved, I
would not at anyrate refuse a favourable examination to it, and I
would not shrink from the idea of State help for the people who would
help themselves." He charged the Socialists with being a party of
pure negation : their programme was simply subversion and annihila-
tion. For eleven years the Reichstag had had Socialists in its
i Lujo Brentano, professor of political economy at Strassburg, was bom December i8th»
1844, at Aschaffenburg, In 1868 he travelled in England for the purpose of studying the
labour question here, and especially the working of trades unions. Thus he was led to in
vestigate the history of our guilds, the result being a work published in 1871 with the title
Geschichte der englischen Gewerkvereine," forming part of his " Arbeitergilden der
Gegenwart." He has written other works upon phases of English political and social life.
2 Gustav SchmoUer, professor of political economy at Berlin. Born June 24th, 1834, at
Heilbronn. First filled an academic chair at Halle (1865), and then at Strassburg (1872).
SchmoUer lias devoted great attention to the history of the German guilds. His views on the
Socialistic question are contained in a little work bearing the title " iJber einige Grundfragen
des Rechts und der Volkswirthschaft," which was published in 1874 as a reply to an attack
by Professor von Treitscbke upon the tolerant critics of Socialism (" Per So;ialismus und
sfine Conner.")
The Era of Repression. 255
midst, and he challenged anyone to point out a single positive thought
uttered during that time : they had heard nothing but dark, vague
promises, whose fulfilment was impossible. Referring to the atheistic
tendencies of Socialism, he said : —
" If I were to come to the unbelief which is attributed to these
people : well, I live a life of abundant activity, and am in a well-to-do
position, but all this would not make one wish to live a day longer if I
had not what the poet calls the ' belief in God and a better future.'
Rob the poor of that, for which you cannot compensate them, and you
prepare them for the weariness of life which shows itself in acts like
those we have experienced."
The bill became law on October 19th — after Liebknecht had de-
clared that it could " neither be made better nor worse,'' and the Pro-i
gressist leader, Richter, had said, "I fear Social-Democracy more]
under this law than without it," and on the 21st it was promulgated.
The division showed 221 members to be in favour of the measure, and
149 against it. This business having been transacted, and thus the
only object of its convocation fulfilled, the Reichstag was at once pro-
rogued. The Socialist Deputies had done their best to thwart the
passing of the measure, but it had been a hopeless struggle from the
first.
The Socialist Law prohibited the formation orexistence of organisa-
tions which sought by Social-Democratic, Socialistic, or Communistic
movements to subvert the present State and social order. The pro-
hibition also extended to organisations exhibiting tendencies which
threatened to endanger the public peace and amity between classes.
Registered relief associations might be dissolved if thought necessary,
and the same applied to independent unregistered relief associations,
but first of all an extraordinary system of control and supervision must
be adopted by the police authorities on suspicious symptoms showing
themselves. While local associations were subject to the authority of
the police, foreign organisations could only be prohibited by the Im-
perial Chancellor, and in all cases prohibition was to affect the entire
federal territory. In the event of an association being prohibited, its
funds and effects were to be sequestered, and after its affairs had been
properly liquidated, the money was to , be applied according as its
statutes or the law might direct. Appeal was allowed against tljg
prohibitory a.cts of the police,
256 German Socialism.
The right of assembly was . also greatly restricted. All meetings in
which Social- Democratic, Socialistic, or Communistic tendencies came
to light were to be dissolved, and even meetings which might be ex-
pected to show such tendencies could be prohibited, request for per-
mission to assemble being pre-supposed. In this respect public
festivities and processions were regarded as meetings, the police being
here again the empowered authority. Further, Social-Democratic,
Socialistic, and Communistic publications of all kinds were to be
interdicted, the local police dealing with home publications and the
Chancellor with foreign ones. Prohibition must be announced by
letter, together with the reasons for the step, and right of appeal was
allowed. Stocks of prohibited works were to be confiscated^ and the
type, stones, or other apparatus used for printing might likewise be
seized, and, on the interdict being confirmed, be made unusable. The
collection of money on behalf of Social-Democratic, Socialistic, or Com-
munistic movements was forbidden, as were public appeals for help.
Coming now to the penal provisions of the law (Sec. 17 et seq.),a.D.y
person associating himself as member or otherwise with a prohibited
organisation was liable to a fine of 500 marks or three months' im-
prisonment, and a similar penalty was incurred by anyone who gave a
prohibited association or meeting a place of assembly. The circula-
tion or further printing of a prohibited publication entailed a fine not
exceeding 1000 marks or imprisonnient up to six months ; and,
sirtiilarly, contraventions of the provisions regarding the collection of
money entailed penalties of half this severity, while unwitting contra-
vention was in either case punishable with a fine not exceeding 150
marks or detention. As all prohibitions were made public, no excuse
was allowed for ignorance. Convicted agitators might be expelled
from a certain locality or from a Governmental district, and foreigners
be expelled from/ federal territory. Innkeepers, printers, booksellers,
and owners of lending libraries and reading rooms who circulated
interdicted publications might, besides being imprisoned, be deprived
of their vocations. Persons who were known to be active Socialists,
or who had been convicted under this law, might be refused permission
to publicly circulate or sell publications, and contravention of a prohi-
bition, or of the provision against the circulation of Socialistic literature
in inns, shops, libraries, and newsrooms, was punishable with a, fipe of
[000 marks or imprisonment for six months,
The Era of Repression, 257
But the kernel of the law was the 28th section, which conferred
upon authorities exceptional and extreme powers when the exist-
ence of Socialistic organisations was held to endanger the public
security. Here the police were made subject to the Executive
Government, and the powers granted were only valid for a year at
a time. The provisions were four in number, and their application
constituted what is known as the minor state of siege.' They ran as
follows : —
" (a) Meetings may only take place with the previous sanction of
the police, but this restriction does not extend to meetings held in
connection with elections to the Reichstag or the Diets ; (b) The
circulation of publications may not take place without permission in
public roads, streets, squares, or other public places ; {c) Persons from
whom danger to the public security or order is apprehended may be
refused residence in a locality or Governmental district ; (d) The
possession, carrying, introduction, and sale of weapons within the
area affected are forbidden, restricted, or made dependent on certain
conditions." ,
All ordinances issued on the strength of this section were to be
notified at once to the Reichstag, and to be pubhshed in the official
Gazette. Contravention of the foregoing provision entailed a fine not
exceeding 1000 marks or imprisonment up to six months.
1 The Hat de sitge dates from the revolutionary orgies of 1791 in France. It was first in-
troduced in Saxony amongst German States ; then in Prussia (July 4th, 1851), and was
finally incorporated in the Imperial Constitution of 187; (article 68). From the state of siege,
in which military law supervenes, was derived the " minor state of siege " (in German,
kleinerer Belagerungszustand):
258 German Socialism.
^cial-Democratic literature of all kinds, from the daily newspaper to
the pamphlet and the hand-bill for circulation in the streets, and the
yearly turn-over was reckoned at 800,000 marks or nearly £i,Ofioo.
The organisation was perfect and seemed to be incapable of sub-
version. If, therefore, the Socialists saw themselves confronted by a
formidable enemy whose strength had still to be put to the test, they
were by no means disposed to lose heart. They rather nerved them-
selves for a severe struggle, and prepared for the worst which the full
exercise of the new legislative powers might bring. One of the first
things which the Government and police did was to place Berlin in a
minor state of siege on November 29th, and meanwhile a plan of
campaign was organised for the combating of Socialist organisations
and agitation in the several States most seriously affected. Societies
were dissolved, meetings prohibited, newspapers suppressed, mis-
cellaneous publications confiscated, and before many months had
passed nearly fifty agitators had been expelled from the capital. Soon
Prince Bismarck attempted to grapple with Socialism in the Reichstag
itself. Here the Socialist Deputies were free to utter their opinions
and expound their doctrines without let or hindrance, and when the
1 public platform was refiised to them they took good care to turn the
I Parliamentary tribune to. advantage. The Reichstag became, in fact,
/a last place of refuge. Here, at any rate, the pursued Socialist knew that
(he could claim the right of sanctuary, and at first the right was quietly
j conceded. It is hardly to be wondered at that the Socialist Deputies
I turned liberty of speech within the walls of Parliament into hcence. :
They did not hesitate to say that when they spoke it was not with a
view or a desire to convince their listeners but to reach the ears of the
outside world. The publication of Parliamentary reports being privi-
leged, journals with Socialistic tendencies were able to reproduce in
full the speeches in which Bebel, Liebknecht, and their fellows
preached the principles of a movement which the Government had just
been given a commission to suppress. >•
There was only one way of meeting this new danger, and it was by
1 The Volksstaat wrote as early as the year 1874 : — " The Social-Democratic party is a
revolutionary party. If it allows itself to be decoyed upon Parliamentary ground it ceases to
be a revolutionary party — ceases, in fact, to exist. We take part in the Reichstag elections
and send representatives to the Reichstag solely for purposes of agitation. The strength of
our party lies in the people, in the people lies our sphere of operations. Only in order thaj
yye may addr^s the people do we ascend the tiribun^ pf ^he I^eichstag,"
The Era of Repression. 259
restricting the privileged publication of reports or by silencing the
speakers by getting rid of them. While the Chancellor tried the
former plan, the Berlin police authorities tried the latter and atteippted
to seize two obnoxious members while literally holding to the horns of
the altar. On February i8th, 1879, a letter was read to the Reichstag
in which consent was sought to the imprisonment and prosecution of
Hasselmann and to the expulsion from Berlin of Fritzsche on account
of their violation of the provisions of the new law. The section of the
law to which the Deputies had become amenable was the tWenty-
eighth, in accordance with which the police wished for power to act.
During the debate on the second reading of the bill a speaker had
proposed that this section should apply also to Deputies, but a voice
cried out "The constitution!" and no attempt was made by the
Government to act on the suggestion. Members were thus protected
against the police by the thirty-first article of the constitution, which
provides that no Deputy can be arrested for debt or for any offence,
unless he be taken in the act of commission or on the following day,
without the sanction of the Reichstag, The proposal roused quite a
storm of opposition, and Professor Gneist,'- the constitutional historian,
was one of the boldest leaders of the resisting party. The Reichstag,
by a great majority, refused to grant the powers sought, but an un-
easy feeling prevailed in the Socialist camp that the police should
have dared to play such a game.^ Then Prince Bismarck showed his
hand. On March 4th, a bill was introduced giving the Reichstag
power to punish any member who abused his Parliamentary position.
The court which should award punishment was to consist of thirteen
pei-sons — the president and vice-president of the assembly, and ten
members to be chosen at the beginning of every session — and the
punishment was to have three degrees of severity : censure by the
House, obligation to apologise to the House, and exclusion for a fixed
period. It was also proposed that the House should, when it was
1 Rudolph Gneist, born August 13th, 1816, at Berlin, where he is a respected professor.
He was elected to the Prussian House of Deputies in 1859 and to the German Reichstag in
1871. He is a gifted speaker.
2 On January 14th, 1882, the same question arose again. A Socialist Deputy for Ham-
burg, Dietz, was that day arrested at Stuttgart. The matter was at once introduced' in the
Reichstag by the Socialist members, and a resolution was passed by a large majority calling
upon the Chancellor to request all Federal Governments to instruct courts to communicate
with him immediately on the arrest of a deputy during the sitting of the House, so that tho
lattsr might learo the fact and the pariiciilars, Pietz was releaseij the same day.
26o German Socialism.
found desirable, prevent the publicity of its proceedings. In the
course of the three day?' debate England and English freedom of de-
bate were frequently extolled, but Prince Bismarck reminded members
of the power which the British House of Commons reserved to itself,
and,which was enforced by the utterance of the words, " Mr. Speaker,
I see strangers in the House." He asked that the measure might be
passed for two years, for he hoped in that time to place an effective
barrier against the spread of Socialistic agitation. Not only were the
Ministerial proposals warmly opposed in the Reichstag, where the de-
sired precedent was thought too dangerous to be tolerated, but out of
doors the cry of " Freedom of debate '' was also taken up heartily, and
the Maulkorbgesetz or Muzzle Bip was defeated.
While the Government was bracing itself up to the task of crushing
the hydra, the extreme members of the Socialist party began to clam-
our for a more aggressive policy. The existence of a group of men
disposed to violence was especially made clear at a secret onference
held in September, 1879, ^.t Wahren, near Leipzig. Here Most and
Hasselmann were all for force. Hasselmann advised revolution out-
right. He acknowledged the certainty of failure, yet he argued that
the blood that would be shed would help on the cause. Most, who
early in 1879 established \ht Freiheit in London, with the motto "AH
measures are legitimate against tyrants," advocated murder, outrage,
and rapine. The columns of this print were filled, issue after issue,
with incitements to crime and instructions as to the preparation of in-
struments of destruction, while war was declared against "princes and
ministers, statesmen, bishops, prelates, and other dignitaries of the
various churches, a large part of the officers, the greater part of the
higher bureaucracy, divers journalists and advocates, and finally all
important representatives of the aristocracy and bourgeoisie." The
Social-Democrat was now appearing at Zurich, and it did its best to
fan the flame of discontent and violence. The Wahren conference
was guided by sober counsels, and all it did was to resolve on carry-
ing on an energetic though secret agitation. It was proposed to hold
a congress in June of the following year at Rorschach, in Switzerland,
but it was at the last moment postponed on it becoming known that
Most and Hasselmann intended to be present 'and to endeavour to
force a revolutionary programme on the party. An important con-
gress was, however, held at Wyden, near Ossingen, in Switzerland) on
The ^ra of kepression. i& 1
August 20th-23rd, and fifty delegates were present from Germany,
but neither Most nor Hasselmann appeared. It was found that the
adherents of these men were a strong body, and the congress became
divided into Government and Opposition. The former persisted in
preserving an avowedly pacific policy, while the latter demanded the,
adoption of a revolutionary programme, along with the establishment
of a party organ of as radical a tone as the Socialist Law would toler-
ate, and the reorganisation of the directorate of the party. The con-
gress, however, refused to be led by the nose by the trumpeters of
Most and Hasselmann, both of whom were disowned, and decided to
agitate peacefully but energetically in all electoral districts ; to collect
funds for propagandism ; to place the direction of the party in the
hands of the Socialist Deputies, who were to be assisted by a com-
mittee of control, acting as a tie between leaders and followers ; to
hold regular congresses for the future ; and to keep up communication
with associates abroad. The principal result of the Wyden congress
was the severing of the revolutionary limb from the Socialistic body.
Most and Hasselmann were rejected, and Bebel and Liebknecht were
adhered to. While the Socialist party was pretending to desire a
peaceful development of events, its now official organ, the Social-
Democrat, was declaring that " only by a violent subversion can the
Democratic State be attained." Indeed, the manifesto issued just
after the congress behed the assumed attitude of passive resistance.
This declared the firm resolve of the Socialist party to continue the
struggle for the emancipation of the oppressed and plundered classes
of society, and for the overthrow of the present "insane and criminal "
State and social system, in spite of all opposition and persecution. It
then stated that while German Social-Democrats adhered to the prin-
ciple of adopting peaceful and lawful means for the accomplishing of
their ends, it was " self-evident " that unless the ruUng classes " sur-
rendered their privileged position voluntarily and without compul-
sion," they would be justified in resorting to any measures that might
be found expedient. In other words, if society did not reform itself
the Socialists would undertake the work and make it bear the cost.
The manifesto added : "This is now our position in Germany. Our
antagonists, the Government and the bourgeoisie, are so infatuated
that they are making any pacific development of affairs absolutely im-
possible, and are thus forcing matters to a necessarily and inevitably
262 German Socialism.
violent issue. The present political and economic rulers of Germany
I do not wish for negotiation or mediation, but for a war of extermina-
tion. Well, if they wish it they shall have it, and to the full, but the
responsibility will fall on their own heads." " Be sure, in any case, of
this," concluded the manifesto, " wherever the struggle for the eman-
cipation of the working classes from political and social bondage is
carried on, you will find the German Social-Democracy on the spot,
with advice and assistance, with sympathy and energetic help, eager
and ready for the combat. Long live International Socialism t "
On March 13th, 1881, the Emperor Alexander II. of Russia was
assassinated by Nihilists, and a few days later the German Emperor
wrote to his faithful Chancellor, urging him to lose no time in bringing
before the Governments of Europe the necessity of combining against
the forces of anarchy and destruction. " The great crime of the 13th,"
said the Emperor,' "forces the conviction upon me anew, that the
time has come for checking the incitement, now extending all over
Europe, to attempts on political grounds upon sovereigns and persons
of all conditions. In my opinion this can only be done by common
action on the part of the Great Powers. . . . The chief thing is to in-
duce England, Switzerland, and France, which have hitherto offered
asylum to the perpetrators of political murders, to enact laws for
putting an end to this mischief. ' The task is no easy one, since these
countries have hitherto had no such laws. England is, however, now
bound, owing tc the proceedings within her own shores, to alter her
legislation in this domain, in order to be able to act more vigorously.
The present would therefore be a favourable moment for winning Eng-
land over to acquiescence in an international proposal It would be
more difficult with France and Switzerland. You know what I think
of these attempts, and you know that police measures are no pro-
tection, as the murder of the Emperor Alexander has again proved,
but the general weal of the States and their peace will be at stake un-
less this conduct be conjointly opposed by the Powers." If any
sovereign in Europe had a right to consideration in such a matter
it was the aged Emperor of Germany, whose life had three times been
imperilled, and who had once at least fallen severely wounded to the
pistol of a desperado.
Prince Bismarck at once opened negotiations with foreign Govern-
1 See speech by Prince Bismarck in the Reichstag, May 9tb, X884.
The Era of Repression. 263
ments. The Russian Government, as most nearly affected, owing to
the spread of the Nihilist movement, was asked to take the initiative
by convening a conference of representatives of the Powers, the
German Chancellor promising to do all he could to further the object
of such a meeting. Accordingly th^e Government in St. Petersburg
nvited the chief States to a council at Brussels. Germany and
Austria immediately expressed wiUingness to take part, but France
made her assent dependent on that of England, and England, for
reasons which only Englishmen can be expected properly to appre-
ciate, declined to participate. Switzerland and other countries also
insisted on the co-operation of the two great Western Powers, but
this co-operation being out of the question, the conference was not
held. Prince Bismarck then tried to bind the three Eastern Empires
in a league against anarchy, and the negotiations were continued for
some time, but Austria eventually backed out, and the net result of
months of diplomacy was that Germany and Russia concluded an ex-
tradition and dynamite treaty for themselves. • —
Meanwhile the election of 1881 took place. The Socialists fought
against great odds. Liberty of meeting and of speech was restricted,
the distribution of literature was dangerous, and the collection o)
money for electioneering purposes was difficult, yet a triumph awaited
the party. In 1878, when the two attempts on the Emperor had
created a violent revulsion in the national mind, the Socialist Deputies
fell from 12 to 9 and the Socialist vote decreased 56,000. The election
of 1881 gave the party agam 12 Deputies, while diminishing its support at
the poUing booths by over 125,000 votes, the exact figures being 437, 158
votes in 1878, and 311,961 in 1881. It must not, however, be con-
cluded that this represented the strength of the cause. The repressive
legislation and the vigorous policy pursued by the pohce prevented
the real position of the party from being known. Still, an addition of ,
three members in the Reichstag was a substantial victory. Towards
the expenses of the election the party received 13000 marks from
America, collected by Fritzsche, who went thither for assistance, and
the same amount from a Jewish banker in Germany who had already,
given considerable help. When the time came for the prolongation
of the Socialist Law, whose duration only lasted until March 31st,
1881, the Government did not find it difficult to secure assent, though
the parties which had opposed the measure in 1878 did the same thing
264 German Socialism.
again. A report presented to the Reichstag in November of this
year stated that the minor state of siege had been extended to Altona,
Harburg, Hamburg, and Leipzig. The admission had to be made
that the Socialist movement had not been seriously checked, for not only
did the old organisation continue in force, ^but agitation was energeti-
cally carried on both by meetings and the circulation of prints, not-
withstanding all the vigilance of the police. The Saxon Government
reported that agitation was carried on with great ardour in Leipzig and
the large towns, in spite of the suppression of newspapers, and the
expulsion of obnoxious persons. What the native Press could not do,
was done by journals like the Social-Democrat and Freiheit, which
were smuggled into the country in large numbers. Socialistic litera-
ture had even been introduced into garrisons. As for the associations,
there was no grappling with them, for no sooner were suspected or-
ganisations dissolved than others " with innocent-sounding names "
took their place, and funds for the agitation were raised by means of
concerts and public entertainments. The Saxon authorities were, in-
deed, in despair. The next report presented to the Reichstag, bearing
►.date December 5th, 1882, was equally discouraging. It stated:
I The position of the Social-Democratic movement in Germany and
Ithe other civilised countries is unhappily not such as to admit the
Ihope of its being suppressed or weakened. The interruption and
Vcheck naturally caused in the organisation of German Social-Demo-
cracy by the introduction of the Socialist Law, and by the adoption
of exceptional measures in the chief seats- of the movement, are, to-
' gether with the embarrassment and uncertainty which resulted from
these measures and from the vacillating attitude of many of the
leaders, being overcome. From the last Reichstag election, which
afforded the party a welcome, and as it proved an effective means of
strengthening the organisation, a renewed breaking out of the move-
ment must be dated. The hope that the movement would, owin^ to
the social-political legislative proposals, take a quieter character has
not been fulfilled. At first it seemed as though the more moderate
views which were showing themselves would gain the upper hand,
but after the utterances of the chief leaders it must now be admitted,
that a proper appreciation of the endeavours of the State to promote
the welfare of the working classes is hardly to be expected as yet
from the Social-Democratic party." The report spoke of the activity
The Era of liepressioH. i6$
with which agitation was being carried on by means of newspapers and
other pubHcations. During three months no fewer than 13,000 copies
of the Social-Democrat had been confiscated in various parts of the
country. It was evident, moreover, that the views of Most were
spreading rapidly, owing largely to the agitation of the International
Association, which had been endeavouring to win over the Polish
population of Prussia. Both in Berlin and Leipzig, said the report,
the agitation was increasing, notwithstanding that there had been
many expulsions, eighty persons being expelled from the latter town
during the period June 29th, 1881, to May 15th, 1882. What was
thus said by Government reports was said, in more reserved terms,
by Minister von Puttkamer on December 14th, 1882 : — " It is un-
doubted that it has not been possible by means of the law of October,
1878, to wipe Social-Democracy from the face of the earth or even to
shake it to the centre."
This year a conference of the party was held at Dresden, when the
social policy lately entered upon by Prince Bismarck was discussed. ^
As early as February, 1879, the Emperor, in the speech from thej
throne read at the opening of the Reichstag, gave the assurance that'
the Government would not stay its hand at purely repressive measures,
but would devise social reforms which might improve the condition of
the working classes, and this assurance was several times repeated/
during the following two years. Finally, on February 15th, 1881^
the definite statement could be made that a measure for the insurance
of workpeople against accident would shortly be laid before tha
Reichstag, and during the same year Prince Bismarck foreshadowed
bills for the insurance of working people against sickness and againsH
want in old age. These promised reforms were very ungraciouslyj
received by the Socialist members, Bebel's criticism of the Accident'
Insurance Bill introduced on April ist being that the Socialists didj
not suppose it would hurt them. The Dresden conference, however,
went farther than this, for it decided to "reject State Socialism un-
conditionally so long as it is inaugurated by Prince Bismarck, and is
designed to support the Government system." A section of the party
1 The endeavours of Prince Bismarck to grapple, by means of reforms, with the difficulties
presented by the social problem meet with appreciative treatment in a work which is at once
a biography of the Ch.nncellor and a history of modern Germany, "Prince Bismarck, an
historical biography," (London, 1S85), by C. Lowe, M.A., (vol. ii., chapter xiv., pp. 433-460.
266 German SocidUsfH.i
was, nevertheless, disposed to treat the Government fairly, inasmuch
as it had shown a desire to conciliate where hitherto only coercion had
been offered; but the " Aut Ccesar aut nuUus'' adherents of the
Socialist State would hear of no compromise. In August of 1882 a
three days' conference was held at Zurich, and at the end of the
following March a congress assembled at Copenhagen. The place of
meeting was kept an absolute secret up to the last moment. Even the
delegates themselves did not know until train time whether they were
to meet in Switzerland, Belgium, Sweden, or Denmark. There were
sixty delegates present, and a very encouraging report was presented to
them. It was stated that the Socialist Law had but little interfered with
agitation, though new methods had now to be resorted to. Contribu-
tions were being liberally given, and from August 5th, 1882, to
February 28th, 1883, the agitation fund had received the addition of
95,000 marks, apart from 150,000 marks expended locally in relief and
on the elections. The Social-Democrat was said to have four times as
many readers as at the time of the Wyden congress. The congress
recorded its disbelief in the, honourable intention of the new reform
party in Germany, as well as in its ability to carry out efficacious
measures. " The congress ... is convinced that the so-called social
reform is only to be used as a tactical means of diverting working-men
from the true way. It is, however, the duty of the party and its
represeihtatives in Parliament to look energetically after the interests
of the working classes when proposals are brought forward for im-
proving the economic position of the people — without regard to the
motive — but, self-evidently, without for a moment abandoning any of
the Socialist demands." Other questions debated were the advisability
of abandoning the religious question, which had always been a source
of greater or less disagreement ; measures for gaining the sympathy
of the rural population, and for interesting students and the educated
classes ; and also the expediency of disavowing the Anarchist party
more decidedly than hitherto. It is evident, too, though the meagre
official protocol does not say so, that the congress was exercised on the
subject of trade organisations, for soon afte^-wards it was seen that these
coalitions were being formed all over the country just as after
Schweitzer's Berhn congress of 1868. The party Press and the leaders
look up the question vigorously, while the police quietly awaited the
development of this new move. As to principles the Copenhagen
The Era of Repression. 267
congress cannot be said to have advanced anything new. But it was
not, indeed, principles that the Socialist party needed — of these it had
more than enough — what was felt to be necessary was still more ener-
getic agitation, and this lack was at once supplied.
On the other hand, an event occurred during this year which roused
the authorities to increased vigilance. This was the Niederwald plot
against the Imperial family, the existence of which was discovered in
September. Various arrests were made, and the trial took place at
Leipzig, two men, avowedly Anarchists, being in December, 1884,
sentenced to death. In the early part of this latter year the Socialist
Law was prolonged for two years until September 30th, 1886, and the
Government succeeded on May 15th in passing a law against the
" criminal and publicly-dangerous use of explosives," a measure which
received general support. The accounts given by the several Federal
Governments of their stewardship under the Socialist Law were not
more sanguine than before. Agitation continued to be carried on with
undiminished zeal, the circulation of prohibited newspapers defied
prevention, money was collected in large amounts, and meetings were
held in spite of police prohibition and espionage. As before, Berlin,
Leipzig, Hamburg, and other places were in a minor state of siege, but
although the local authorities thus acquired greatly increased powers,
it was impossible to check the movements of the enemy. Bebel was
perhaps right when he declared in the Reichstag on March 20th that
the Socialist party was nowhere more numerous or better organised
than in the districts where the minor state of siege had been proclaimed,
and that the patty Press had never been more serviceable than then,
for though the Social-Democrat was published abroad, its circulation
was far larger than before the passing of the coercive measures, and it
was now able to furnish the agitation with considerable funds. He
referred to Prince Bismarck's State Socialism as follows :
" I will frankly tell you something. If anything has furthered the
Social-Democratic agitation and the Social-Democratic tendency, it is
the fact that Prince Bismarck has to a certain extent declared for
Socialism and social reform ; only we are in this case the master, and
he is the scholar. People are saying everywhere : when to-day Prince
Bismarck with his great authority comes forward and not only acknow-
ledges the existence of a social question — which was a few years ago
emphatically denied by the ruling parties — but declares for Socialism,
268 German SociatisiH.
and regards it as his duty to introduce measures on the subject, then it
may well be concluded that Social-Democracy is at bottom right."
He also made use of the significant words : " The fathers of the
Socialist Law are also the fathers of Anarchism in Germany,'' words
which, if they were intended as a disquieting prophecy, have fortun-
ately had no fulfilment as yet. On the same occasion Liebknecht
rang the changes on the word revolution. He said:
" It has been said that it is hoped to put an end to social revolution
by social reform. But is there any essential difference between social
reform and social revolution } What is social reform ? A proper and
true social reform is only that which fundamentally removes the evils
of society as it now exists. Wherein consist these evils ? . . . They
consist in the wrong relationship between production and consumption
and in our present wages;, system. From these causes springs the un-
equal distribution of wealth — wholesale poverty on the one hand and
great wealth in few hands on the other. He who takes up the ques-
tion of social reform honestly must place the lever here, at this wrong
relationship between production and consumption, and abolish the
exploitation of the working classes by capital. That is social reform,
and, carried out thoroughly, social revolution. What the Imperial
Chancellor is summing up as social reform has. nothing to do with real
social reform. What is the Sick Fund Law ? A police law for the
regulation -of a part of the poor law system.- What is the Accident
Law ? Exactly the same thing — a police law for the regulation of a
part of the poor system. And what is the great law which still hovers
befor us in the misty future, the law for the support of the infirm and
old ? Exactly a police law of the same kind for the regulation of a
.part of the poor system. Since all those persons who are to receive
Bupport under tho Sickness Insurance Law and the Accident Insur-
knce Law and the proposed law providing for age do already receive
Support under our present poor law, only it is in another form. Thus
'this is not solving the social problem ; it is not even breaking the way
for social reform ; and with this kind of reform you will certainly not
obviate a violent settlement of the question."
What follows might appear to offer an unfavourable commentary
upon the supposed pacific direction of the Liebknecht-Bebel school ;
" So far," said Liebknecht, " you have not succeeded in destroying
our organisation, and I am convinced that you never will sucbeed. I
The Era of Repression. 269
believe, indeed, it would be the greatest misfortune for you if you did
succeed. The Anarchists, who are now carrying on their work in
Austria, have no footing in Germany — and why ? Because in Ger-
many the mad plans of those men are wrecked on the compact organi-
sation of Social-Democracy, because the German proletariat, in view
of the fruitlessness of your Socialist Law, has not abandoned hope of
attaining its ends peacefully by means of Socialistic propaganda and
agitation. If — and I have said this before — if your law were not fro
nihilo it would be pro nihilismo. If the German proletariat no longer
believed in the efficacy of our present tactics ; if we found that we
could no longer maintain intact the organisation and cohesion
of the party, what would happen ? We should simply declare — we
have no more to do with the guidance of the party ; we can no longer
be responsible. The men in power do not wish that the party should
continue to exist ; it is hoped to destroy us — ^well, no party allows
itself to be destroyed, for there is above all things the law of self-
defence, if self-preservation, and if the organised direction fails you
will have a condition of anarchy in which everything is left to the
individual. And do you really believe — you who have so often praised
the bravery of the Germans up to heaven when it has been to your
interest to do so — do you really belieye that the hundreds of thousands
of German Social-Democrats are cowards? Do you believe that what
has happened in Russia would not be possible in Germany if you
succeeded in bringing about here the conditions which exist there ? "^
The Government secured the prolongation of the Socialist Law, but
while applying this law with great stringency it did not falter in the
attempt to pacify the working classes by the passing of social measures
ofthe kind Liebknecht ridiculed. On June isth, 1883, a Sickness
Insurance Law was passed for workpeople employed in mines, salt
works, quarries, factories, smelting and other works, as well as on the
railways and in the inland shipping trade. This was supplemented
by an instalment of the Accident Insurance Law on July 6th, 1884.
Prince Bismarck, indeed, went so far as to proclaim the doctrine of a
right to work {Recht auf Arbeit) and astonished both friends and foes
by the pronounced Radicalism of his views on the social question.'^
1 Speech in the Reichstag, March zist, 1884.
2 " Give the worlting-man the right to work," he said in the Reichstag on May gth, 18S4,
"as long as he is healthy, assure him care when he is sick, assure him provision when he is
old. If you will do that, and not fear the sacrifice or cry out at Slate Socialism directly ths
27P German Socialism.
He showed that he had broken for ever with the doctrine of laissen'
faire as he preached that it was the duty of a State pretending to be
Christian to care more for the weak and less for the strong amongst
its citizens. Nothing could exceed the earnestness with which the
Chancellor enforced the pressing importance of social reforms during
these early years of the State Socialistic era, but so far as the Social-
Democratics were concerned he found but little sympathetic response.
This did not, however, give him discouragement, for he refused to
regard the working classes and the Social-Democrats as identical.
" Our working-men,'' he said, " are not all, thank God, Social-Demo-
crats, and are not all indifferent to the endeavours of the Federal
Governments to help them, and perhaps not to the difficulties which
,they have to contend with in Parliament." In this year another
general election took place and it afforded the Socialist party an
opportunity of demonstrating a strength which no one had believed to
, exist. The campaign was entered upon with extraordinary vigour, and
the result was that, in spite of all the difificulties incidental to the
vigilant enforcement of the Socialist Law, no fewer than twenty-four
seats were won, or double the number of 1881. Ten seats were won
in Prussia, five in Saxony, two in Bavaria, one in Hesse and six in
minor States.
In Berlin two out of the six places fell to Sociahsts, and in Hamburg
and Breslau two out of three. The number of votes polled was 549,990,
words ' provision for old age ' are spoken ; if the State will show a little more Christian soli-
citude for the working-man, then I believe that the gentlemen of the Wyden programme will
sound their bird-call in vain, and that the thronging to them will greatly decrease as soon as
working-men see that the Government and legislative bodies are earnestly concerned for their
welfare." Then, answering the sneer of an opponent, he said, *' Yes, I acknowledge uncon-
ditionally a right to work (Reckt auf Arbeit J and I will stand up for it as long as 1 am in
this place. But here I do not stand on the ground of Socialism, which is'said to have only
begun with the Bismarck Ministry, but on that of the Prussian Common Law." [This states
expressly : " It is incumbent on the State to provide for the support and care of those citizens
who are unable to provide sustenance for themselves and cannot obtain the same from other
private persons who are by special laws made responsible." Then : " To those who lack means
and opportunity of earning a livelihood for themselves and those belonging to them, work suited
to their powers and capacities shall be appointed."] " Was not the right to work," proceeded
Bismarck, " openly proclaimed at the time of the publication of the Common Law ? Is it not
established in all our social arrangements that the man who comes before his fellow citizens
and says, ' I am healthy, I desire to work, but can find no work,* is entitled to say, ' Give me
work,' and that the State is bound to give him work?" He would have great public work^
unjtrijikeo if it were n^ijessary in (h; iqtere^t of the unemployed, for i% wss a duty.
The Era of Repression. 271
an in crease of 238,029, so that even judging by electoral results the
partv could now claim a tenth part of all the votes cast in the country,
but the real voting strength was far greater, for in a multitude of cases
no candidates were brought out where the Socialist vote was consider-
able. The alarming story told by the elections produced a great
effect in Government and police circles ; and the war of extermination
was carried on with greater determination than ever. Between
October , 1st,' 1884, and September 30th, 1885, seventy-six meetings
were dissolved in Berlin alone, and as many more were forbidden. In
spite of this it was reported to the Reichstag that an extraordinarily
vigorous agitation was still carried on. Industrial associations were
formed in large numbers, and the careful secrecy preserved baffled the
powers of the police. The history of the year 1885 was made more
exciting by the murder at Frankfort-on-Main of a high police official
named Rumpff by the Anarchist Lieske, and the judicial measures
which followed. This year also a split occurred in the Socialist camp,
and at one time it promised to attain serious dimensions. The cause
was the support given by the Socialist Deputies to the Government's
mail steamship subvention scheme, which passed the Reichstag in the
spring. There was a little plain speaking on both sides, but the breach
was eventually healed.
On January 21st, 1886, the Socialists in the Reichstag brought in a
bill for the repeal of the Explosives Act. The proposal was, of course,
defeated, but the Government's request that the Sociahst Law might
be prolonged was two months later agreed to, and the measure was
extended until September 30th, 1888. During the debate which took
place on this latter question Liebknecht again professsed that he had
no sympathy with violence. " The Government may be sure," he said,
"that we shall not, now or ever, go upon the bird-lime, that we shall
never be such fools as to play the game of our enemies by attempts.
Yes, it would be your game : it would be exceedingly agreeable to
you we know that well." Yet the Socialists were as defiant as ever.
" I will tell you this : we do not appeal to your sympathy ; the result
is all the same to us, for we shall win one way, or the other. Do your
worst, for it will only be to our advantage. And the more madly you
carry on, the sooner you will come to the end ; the pitcher goes to the
Tvell imtil it breaks." ^
I Speech p{ April ?nd, i8?6,
272 German Socialism.
Bebel was more warlike than his friend Liebknecht, and an ex-
pression used by him roused Prince Bismarck to an unusual outburst
of indignation. Either with or without ulterior design, Bebel said that
if such a crisis occurred in Germany as in Russia, there would be
, murder. This brought the Chancellor to his feet in a rage, and he
deduced from the words said a declaration of the justifiableness of
assassination. " Herr Bebel," he exclaimed, " says ' The monarchy
would certainly be affected if you employed the measures which are
custonary in Russia.' The monarchy 1 — ^that is with us the monarch,
so that coming in immediate connection with the reference to the
murder of the Emperor Alexander, this is a direct threat of the
murder of the German sovereign ! . . . It is a direct threat of the
murder of the Emperor, of the repetition of the Hodel and Nobiling
attempts which you [the Socialists] seek to repudiate. It depends on
your own theoretical judgment whether our institutions are sufficiently
Russian to justify the murder of an Emperor. You leave it to the
individual to pass judgment over the State, the monarchy, customs,
and over all our institutions and our laws. You hold the individual
to be under certain circumstances justified in committing murder.
That is the enormous difference which divides you from the rest of
mankind and qualifies you to be the object of exceptional laws." ^
The Government sought prolongation for five years, but this was out
of the question, as the Clericals took sides with the Progressists in
opposing a longer term than before. The majority on the second
reading was 27, and that on the third reading, on April 2nd, was 32.
It is significant that the Ministerial majority had fallen very low. In
1878 the Socialist Law was passed by 221 votes against 149, a majority
of 72 ; and now it was prolonged for two years by 169 votes against
137, a majority not half so large. In Jidy a somewhat sensational
^ Speech of March 3xst, 1886. It should be explained that the word trejffen which Bebel
used is ambiguous, and from the context might be understood to mean either that the
monarchy would be " affected " or "struck at." Bebel's words, spoken on March 30th, were as
follows : " Herr von Futtkamer calls to mind the speech which 1 delivered in z88i on the
debate on the Socialist Law a few days after the murder of the Czar. I did not then glorify
regicide. I declared that a system like that prevailing in Russia necessarily gave birth to
Nihilism and must necessarily lead to deeds of violence. Yes, I do not hesitate to say that if
you should inaugurate such a system in Germany it would of necessity lead to deeds
violence with us as well. [A Deputy called out : ' The German Monarchy ? '] The Germas
monarchy would then certainly be affected, and I do not hesitate to say that I should be one
of the first to lend a hand in the work, for all measures are allowable against such a system."
The Era of Repression. 273
Socialist trial took place at Freiberg, when nine Socialists, including
the six Deputies, Bebel, von Vollmar,i Dietz,^ Auer,* Frohme,* and
Viereck ^ were charged with taking part m a secret and illegal organisa-
tion. The result of the trial was that all the accused were sentenced
to imprisonment for six or nine months, Bebel and four Parliamentary
associates receiving the heavier penalty. Several of the Deputies were
reported on their release to have suffered severely from incarceration.
At the end of November, reports were presented to the Reichstag
on the working of the Socialist Law in Berlin, Altona, and other
places. It was stated that agitation continued to be carried on with
unflagging zeal, and that the prohibition and dispersal of meetings
had frequently to be resorted to in the metropolis, where " social-
revolutionary agitations and Anarchist movements threaten public
security.'' Up to date 172 refusals of residence in Berlin were in force.
1 Georg Heinrich von Vollmar, born March 7th, 1850, at Munich. He was a lieutenant in
the Bavarian army as early as 1866, when he went through the Austrian campaign, but he
withdrew from service in 1867. He took part, however, in the Franco-Prussian war as a higher
official in the field telegraphic department and was severely wounded near Blois. Invalided,
he devoted himself to philosophical, economical, and political studies and became a Socialist.
After several years of authorship and journalism his political principles brought him a year's
imprisonment and expulsion from Dresden (1S78). In 1879 ^^ proceeded to Zurich and
carried on his studies further both there and later In Paris. He was in 1881 returned to the
Reichstag and the following year he resumed residence in Germany, but in 1883 he was im-
prisoned. Last year he was unable to regain a seat in the Reichstag. He has written several
small works on Socialistic subjects and has contributed largely to newspapers.
2 Johann H. W. Dietz, printer and bookseller, of Stuttgart, born October 3rd, 1843, at
Lubeck. He was' expelled from Hamburg under the Socialist Law in 1878. He has sat in
the Reichstag since i8Sr for a Hamburg division.
3 Ignaz Auer, a saddler of Schwerin, in Mecklenburg, bom April 19th, 1846, in Bavaria, a
Catholic Socialist. He has been successively expelled from Dresden, Berlin, Hamburg,
Altona and Harburg. He was elected to the Reichstag by a Saxon constituency in January,
1877, but was defeated in the election of the following year. In 1880 he succeeded in winning
a seat, and he continued to sit in the House until 1887.
* Karl J. E. Frohme, author, of Bockenheim, Frankfort, born February 4th, i8so, at Han-
over. Has travelled in Switzerland, Holland, Belgium, Austria, Denmark, and England, and
since 1870 has been an avowed Socialist advocate, in which capacity he has several times been
imprisoned. He has sat in the Reichstag since 1881. His principal literary achievement is a
work on the development of the institution of property, but he has written many Irochures for
the purposes of agitation.
6 Louis Viereck, a Munich journalist, bom March zist, i8si. He studied medicine at
Marburg, and after the French war, during which he did voluntary hospital service, he
studied jurisprudence and social science at Beriin, entering the State service in 1873. In
1878 he became a journalist. He has travelled in many countries, including England, Scotland
qqd the States.
274 German Socialism.
During this year further progress was made with the accident and
sickness insurance schemes, which it was found desirable to carry out
piecemeal. The only other incident calling for mention is the issue
of an unpopular decree by Herr von ' Puttkamer, the Minister of the
Interior, rendering strikes of workpeople difficult. For some time
the Socialist Deputies strove to secure the recall of the ordinance, but
its author stood firm, and the matter ended with the addition of a new
word to the Socialist vocabulary, the not too graceful word Puttkamerei.
In February, 1887, the Reichstag was dissolved on the Army Bill,
which it refused to accept, and the patriotic spirit aroused led to a
reaction similar to that of 1878. On this occasion the National
Liberals and Conservatives united in support of the septennate, and
this coalition of forces naturally affected some of the other parties
very seriously, and the Socialist party most of all. The Socialists
were also handicapped in that their movements were carefully watched
by the police, who rigorously made use of all the powers given by the
law of 1878. Electoral agitation was in most places next to impossible,
for meetings were forbidden, the circulation of pamphlets and leaflets was
made illegal, and proper house-to-house visitation was in the nature of
the case impracticable. These modes of electioneering were, of course,
pursued to some extent in the teeth of law and police, but the odds
were after all very heavy. During the four weeks preceding the
election, the Government Gazette pubUshed prohibitions of 106
publications, 88 of them being electoral leaflets, while during the first
quarter of the year the Berlin police dissolved or prohibited nearly
forty meetmgs, made fifty domiciliary visits, and apprehended or
expelled seven persons. Yet, in spite of all difiiculties, the Socialists
• polled 763,128 votes, or 213,138 more than in 1884, an increase of
nearly 39 per cent., though the aggregate increase in the number of
votes cast in Gemiany was only 33 per cent. The number of Deputies
returned fell, however, from twenty-four to eleven. The total number
of valid votes cast in the first elections was 7,540,938, (the number of
persons qualified to vote being 9,769,802, with a population of 46,855,704),
so that lo'l per cent, fell to the Socialist party. The Socialists took
the fifth place numerically amongst Germany's eleven political parties.
The results of the Berlin elections were very startling. Of the 232,362
valid votes cast in the first elections 93,335 or 40 per cent, fell to the
Socialists, an increase of 24,425 or 35 percept., though the numl^er qf
The Era of Repression. 275
persons qualified to vote only increased about 10 per cent. The
Socialist vote was nearly twice as large as in the year of the passing
of the Socialist Law. It was not, however, in Prussia that the
Socialists so seriously lost in Parliamentary strength, for the Prussian
Deputies only fell from ten to eight. The decline was chiefly attributable
to the total extinction of the party in Saxony, which in 1884 returned
five Socialists, and in the minor States, with the exception of Hamburg,
which still retained its two Socialist members. And yet Saxony, with
no Socialist Deputy, polled 149,270 votes, or 287 per cent, of the
aggregate poll, against only 87,786 votes in 1881. Indeed, in Saxony
the Socialist voters increased during this period considerably more
than the total number of qualified voters. The results of the elections
showed some curious inconsistencies. With proportioflal representation
the Socialists would have had forty instead of eleven members, and
as a fact the Imperial Party (Free Conservatives) with a less vote
returned forty-one members. Nevertheless, the Socialists were
thoroughly satisfied with their moral victory, and the party Press
raised loud shouts of exultation, and spoke of the " mighty growth " of
the proletarian vote. " Have we any need to doubt the future ? "
asked the Berlin Volksblatt ; " no, the old parties may divide the old
property class as they like, but the future belongs to none of theKi." The
Socialist Deputies returned included Bebel, Grillenberger, Hasenclever,
and Singer. 1
It cannot be uninteresting to give here a few figures showing the
distribution of Socialism in Germany as indicated by this election :
States, &C.
Population on
December I,
1885.
Votes given
Total valid.
in the fiist elections.
Socialist.
Percentage
No. of whole.
Socialist
members
returned.
Prussia
Bavaria
Saxony
Wurtemberg
28,318,470
5,420,199
3,182,003
1,995,185
4,530,500
827,327
519,358
326,798
393,635
54,774
149,270
11,437
87
6-6
287
3-5
8
I
The Volkspariei, an extreme democratic party, polled 45,803 votes,
or 14 per cent, of the whole vote of Wurtemberg.
1 Paul Singer, a tradesman of Berlin, whence, however, he was expelled under the Socialist
Law in i8S6. Born January i6th, 1844, a Jew. He has been a member of the Reichstag
since iSS*, having been returned i» that year by a g^lin division, lyhich \fR still repr^sent^,
2/6
German Socialism.
States, &C.
Baden
Hesse '
Mecklenburg- )
Population en
December x,
1885.
1,601,25s
956,611
Votes given in the first elections;
Socialist. Socialist
Percentage members
of whole, returned.
S7S.I52
313,946
98,371
Schwerin
Saxe-Weimar
Mecklenburg- )
Strelitz J
Oldenburg 341,525
Brunswick 372,452
Saxe-Meiningen 214,884
Saxe-Altenburg 161,460
Saxe-Coburg-Gotha 198,829
Anhalt 248,166
Schwarzburg-Son- ) ^^
dershausen j '•"
Schwarzburg-l 0,0,6
Rudolstadt / '^^.SSO
Waldeck S6,57S
Reuss older Line 55,904
Reuss younger Line 110,598
Schaumburg-Lippe 37,204
^ Lippe 123,212
Lubeck 67,658
Bremen 165,628
Hamburg 518,620
Alsace-Lorraine 1,564,355
Total for the \ ^^ o,- r ^r..
Empire / 46'85S.7o4
Total valid.
275,537
168,063
100,151
53,964
11,229
52,852
61,412
34,078
28,251
32,171
39,100
11,505
14,093
6,444
9,930
18,615
7,321
21,244
12,732
27,884
96,860
253,517
7,540,938
No.
13,088
18,913
^,653
3,097
268
2,359
12,550
4,659
4,078
9,105
3,448
920
1,167
4,079
6,455
172
359
4,254
7,743
50,972
673
763,128
4-8
"■3 —
5-6
57 —
2-4 —
4-5 —
20"4 —
137 —
14-4 —
28-3 —
8-8 —
8 —
8-3
4I-I
347
2-4
17
33'4
27-8
52-6
0-3
And here a few words upon a phenomenon which has hitherto re-
ceived little attention. It is a fact of much significance that in the
Catholic jiarts of the Empire Socialism does not wield anything like
the power which it can boast in those parts where Protestantism pre-
dominates. This is undoubtedly due in great measure to the greater
solicitude shown by the Catholic priesthood for the masses — ^indeed,
the Protestant Church has acknowledged its neglect in this respect —
though another factor of importance is the industrial character of
most centres of Socialism. The following figures relating to Prussia
are also taken from the election returns for 1887, the population being
based on the census of December ist, 1885. Districts in which in-
dustry prevail? oyer agriculture are indicated by an asterisk. The
The Era of Repression. tTj,
districts regarded as Protestant are those in which at least 60 per
cent, of the population are Protestants ; so, too, with Catholic districts.
Protestant Districts.
Population.
Sdcialist
smmental Districts.
Protestant.
Catholic.
Socialist votes.
members.
*K6nigsberg
78-2
20-8
8,174= 5-5
—
Gumbinnen
97-3
2
49 —
*Berlin
87-1
7-6
93,335 =40'2
2
•Potsdam
96-8
27
26,636=117
—
*Frank-furt
97-1
2'3
I2,8u= 7-8
—
*Stettin
97-8
1-2
8,062= 8-3
—
Koslin
97-0
I '9
— — ■
— 1
Stralsund
98-6
1-2
116= o"4
—
*Liegnitz
82-9
i6-5
6,6x1= 37
—
•Magdeburg
95-3
4"i
22,935 = 13-4
—
*Merseburg
977
2-1
14,674= 8'9
—
*Erfurt
76
23"4
5,702= 8-3
—
' Schleswig
98-5
l"l
39,876=21-5
I
•Hanover
86-9
12-4
31,086= 8-1
I
•Minden
61 -8
37'i
4,845= 6-2
—
•Cassel
81
1 6-6
13,709=11-4
—
The average percentage of Socialist votes is here 9"7.
Catholic Districts.
Posen
26
71-0
'Oppein
9-1
89-3
Miinster
10-6
88-7
Coblenz
33-6
64-8
'Cologne
15-3
83-1
'Treves
i8-6
80-4
'Aix-Ia-Chapelle
37
95-4
Sigmaringen
3-5
95-5
226= o-l
294= O'l —
243= 0-3 —
327= 0*3 ^
9,625= 7-6 —
1,244= i"3 —
The average percentage of Socialist votes is here r2i. Even tak-
ing the industrial districts alone, the percentage is only 2*25 against
97 in the Protestant districts. Taking Prussia altogether, the popu-
lation was 64'6 per cent. Protestant and 34 per cent. Catholic, and the
Socialist votes numbered 4*8 per cent. In Bavaria the bulk of the
population is Catholic. An analysis of the election returns gives thq
following results : —
278
GifiHan Socialism.
Population.
Socialist
Governmental Districts. i
Catholic.
Protestant.
Socialist votes.
members.
Upper Bavaria
94'4
s
17,432 = 12-2
—
Lower Bavaria
99-2
07
270= 0-3
—
Palatinate
43'2
S4-8
5,060= 4-1
—
Upper Palatinate
91 "3
8-4
1,011= I "4
—
Upper Franconia
42 '2
57
7,552= 9
—
Central „
22-3
75-8
17,771 = 16-2
I
Lower ,,
79"9
177
2,073= 2
—
Swabia
84-9
i4'4 .
3,605= 3-2
—
Totals
70-8
28-1
54,774= 6-6
I
The total number of votes cast in the first elections was 827,327'
(apart from 1,305 spoiled votes). Where the Protestants were in ex-
cess of the Catholics the Socialist vote was on an average of 97 pef
cent., and where the Catholics predominated this vote only averaged!
3'8 per cent. In Saxony the population was 96*8 per cent. Protestant
and 2'8 per cent. Catholic : the Socialist vote was, as we have seen,,
287 per cent. In Wurtemberg the population was 69*2 per cent.
Protestant and 30 per cent. Catholic, and the Socialist vote was 3"5.
per cent. In Baden the Catholics numbered 627 per cent, and ther
Protestants 3S'6 per cent., and the Socialists voted 4'8 per cent.
CHAPTER XV.
PRESENT ASPECT OF THE SOCIALIST
MOVEMENT.
For twelve years a stringent law held in check the public agitation of
Socialism, but the party grew by leaps and bounds. The Socialist
Law failed, in fact, of its purpose, for it was dictated by a short-sighted
estimate of the results of coercion, and by an unwarranted deprecia-
tion of the resource of those who were to be coerced. The end came
in. 1890 at the instance of the Emperor William II. In that year, the
last year of his Chancellorship, Prince Bismarck proposed to embody
the Socialist Law, as a permanent statute, in the penal code of the
Empire. Another provision in the bill which marked departure from
the earlier measure was the proposal to give to the Government the
power of expelling not only, as hitherto, from districts proclaimed to
be under the minor state of siege, but from Germany altogether, sub-
jects whose Socialistic proclivities might render them publicly obnoxi-
ous. This latter proposal was the great stone of stumbling at which
one party of the Reichstag after another hesitated during the debates
on the- bill. Had the then Chancellor agreed, as his friends asked
him, to withdraw the expatriation clause, he might have secured a
majority for the measure, but. he refused either to do this, or to take
part in the discussions. ' The bill, shorn of its expulsion clause, passed
its second reading by a majority of five votes, but it was ultimately
rejected, on January 25th, by 169 votes against 98.
It was regarded at the time as singular that the speech with which
the Emperor dissolved the Reichstag the same evening made no
mention either of the Socialist Law or of the Government's defeat.
Yet the omission was not accidental ; it had a deep significance. For
279
28o German Socialisfn,
already the courageous decision to abandon exceptional legislation
had been formed in the mind of the new ruler. Prometheus was at
last to be unbound.
The election took place in February, 1890, and, when the final
results were known, it was found that the only party which could speak ,
of triumph was the Socialist party. They left the Reichstag numbering,
eleven ; they returned numbering thirty-five, and had later a further
addition. Prince Bismarck said in 1884, when the Socialists had won
greatly at the polls, that although they had then returned "their
second dozen " members, he would " give them a third." The third
dozen was now completed. But more significant than this increase
of Socialist members was the increase of Socialist voters, for of the
seven million men who voted in the first ballots, a million and a half
supported Socialist candidates. In other words, with proportional
representation, the Socialist members of the Reichstag would have
numbered 85 out of 397. The Socialists, indeed, polled more votes
than any other party.
The doomed law had still validity for six months, and its provisions
continued to be quietly, though faithfully, enforced. Yet, as the time
of expiration drew near, no attempt was made to secure the prolonga-
tion of the measure. Without further appeal to the supporters of
coercion in the past, without even the suggestion of compromise, the
Government allowed the law to run out its sands. On September
30th, 1890, just twelve years after its birth, the Socialist Law died a
natural death. Social Democracy had conquered, after all. " The .
Imperial Chancellor thinks he has got hold of us,'' said Bebel on one
occasion in the Reichstag, "but, the fact is, we have got hold of him."
The boast was no hollow one. After a long and desperate struggle
with the indomitable pertinacity of a coaUtion which had brought to
perfection the art and science of secret agitation, the Government
abandoned the weapon to which it had once attributed the strength
and virtues of the invincible Excalibur. "The Socialist Law has .
fallen," exclaimed Liebknecht, as he began a speech of congratulation
in Berlin, " The Socialist Law has fallen, and the Red Flag is mount-
ing up."
Present Aspect of the Socialist Movement. 28 1
The " Prisoner of Chillon" regained his freedom with a sigh, for he
had " learned to love despair." Not so the Social Democrats of Ger-
many. Yet it must be allowed that they made very tolerant use of
their restored liberty. The eve of emancipation saw the re-gathering
in Berlin of many of the expelled victims of the moribund law. From
east and west, from north and south, they came back to the scene of
agitations which for most of them had meant the hard severing of
friendships, the sacrifice of home, even the loss of livelihood. It was
a glad, mad evening for the Socialistic workman of the metropolis.
For the first time for ten years he dare avow his Socialism with im-
punity. He might now restore the portraits and busts of his heroes —
Marx, Lassalle, Liebknecht, Bebel — which he had so long been com-
pelled to treasure in secret. He might again read literature the pos-
session of which had been forbidden him on pain of imprisonment.
For him the police had no longer terror. The spectre of the vigilant
spy ceased to trouble his imagination and his tranquillity. He needed
no longer to whisper with bated breath thoughts which his fellows in
other lands known to him might proclaim from the house-tops. He
was free again, and once more he felt himself a man. As midnight
approached, great gatherings were held in all parts of the city to cele-
brate the victory which had been won. When twelve o'clock sounded,
roar after roar of triumphant acclamation testified to the intense relief
and joy experienced by the working classes. There was no disturbs
ance, only much cheering, much congratulation, much singing of the
" Marseillaise," and much waving of red flags. To complete the cele-
bration, a medal was struck " in memory of the famous victory won by
the people's cause"— let it be added— against tremendous odds. And
so the era of repression reached its close.
Within a few days a congratulatory jgathering of the party was held
at Halle, the result of which was the convening in the following year
(1891) of a formal Congress (Parteitag) at Erfurt, at which the official
programme was revised, and given its present form.
The succeeding elections of 1893 and 1898 have peculiar interest,
since in them the Socialists were able to resort to the free and open
agitation of old. In the former year 1,786,738 votes were cast for
Socialist candidates, of whom 44 were elected, a number increased
later to 48 by bye-elections. The election of 1898 showed further
remarkable progress, for the party made an addition of eight to
282 German Sodatisnt.
their Parliamentary representatives. This election, in fact, made the
Socialists the second party in the Reichstag in point of seats— being
only surpassed by the Ultramontanes— while in point of votes they
came out at least half a million ahead of any rival faction, having
polled about 2,135,000 votes, or one-fourth of the total number
recorded. Even in Berlin, where they had to surrender two seats to
the Radicals, they were the only party that could boast an increase of
votes as compared with 1893. '
More significant still, however, was the progress which the Socialists
made in the rural districts, where, until latterly, they have almost
vainly striven to gain the ear of the electorate. East Prussia is one of
the most agricultural parts of the Empire, and, traditionally, one of
' the most Conservative ; yet while in 13 rural constituencies of this
province the Socialist candidates nine years ago polled just 236 votes
between them, and while their aggregate vote in these same constitu-
encies was only 11,816 in 1893, the number rose in i8g8 to 29,338. In
one constituency the five years' increase was from 660 to 3,178, in
another from 1,392 to 3,564, in another from 225 to 3,539. Taking the
whole province, with the exception of the town of Konigsberg, the
SociaUst vote was 12,368 in 1893, arid in 1898 31,774 — an increase of
19,406. Again, in the essentially pastoral kingdom of Wiirtemberg
the increase was from 42,000 to 62,000, or nearly 50 per cent. In the
kingdom of Saxony, while all parties together only polled 12,386 votes
more than in 1893, the Social-Democratic vote increased 28,534 (from
270,654 to 299,188), being as nearly as possible one-half of the aggre-
gate vote of all the seven parties which put forward candidates. In
Bavaria and Schleswig-Holstein the increase of Socialist votes was
10 per cent., in Hanover 20 per cent,, and in Mecklenburg 46 per
cent.
Yet while the elections told so emphatically in favour of Social Demo-
cracy, it is significant that never before did the "parties of civil
order" manifest so serious or so general a determination to join forces
in resistance to the onslaught of a common enemy. In the first
ballots the watchword was, of course, " Sauve qui peut," and as most
of the factions which confronted each other did so with a genuine
hope of success, it was only here and there that agreement was come
to, outside the groups closely allied in principle and aim, to combine
in this sense. But no sooner were the first elections decided thai!
Present Aspect of the Sociatist Movement. 283
iFrom the headquarters of every party the injunction was issued that
wherever Social-Democratic candidates were in the field, no effort
Should be spared to inflict upon them crushing defeat. Even parties
Bo self-centred as the Conservatives and the Ultramontanes did not
hesitate to unite with their antagonists in pursuance of this end,
'while in not a few Rhenish and other Catholic districts Ultramontane
Candidates were supported both by Radicals and National Liberals
Vvhere Social-Democratic success was the only other alternative.
The two principal leaders of the Social-Democratic party in Germany
— in fact, the only members of the party to whom the term leader can
properly be applied — are now Wilhelm Liebknecht and August Bebel.
Both men have lived eventful lives and have suffered often and
severely for the sake of their cause. Already we have seen how they
•worked hand in hand on behalf of the International Association and
5iow they gradually came to the head of the German Socialist move-
anent. A few biographical facts may well be added here. Of Lieb-
tnecht not even enemies venture to say that he seeks interested and
ambitious ends. Mehring's verdict is the following : " A fanatic, with
all the good and bad sides of one, Liebknecht is personally a very
estimable man, whose private life is in all respects exemplary. Un-
like LassaUe, Marx, and Schweitzer, he was born poor and he has
remained poor ; he is contented with mere necessaries so long as he
can devote himself to his work, and he despises the most honourable
gains which might turn him from his life's purpose. In this respect
he is irreproachable ; the reproach of sordid motives in the low sense
of the word cannot be brought against him. But when his cause is
at stake it will be difficult to find in Germany the man who can use the
most poisoned and contemptuous weapons with equal indifference,"^
Liebknecht was born at Leipzig on March 29th, 1826. He studied at
the Universities of Giessen, Berlin, and Marburg, and at one time he
thought of following an academic career, but scientific and social
■studies made him a politician, and when the first Baden insurrection
broke out in 1848, he took arms in the Republican cause. The enter-
prise failed wofully, and he was captured and flung into prison, where
he remained from September until the following May. We next find
him as a fugitive in Switzerland, but this country he soon exchanged
•for England, which was his home from 1850 until 1862, During this
1 "Die Deatsche Socialdemokratie, ' pp. 89, 50.
284 German Socialism..
time he was much in the society of Marx and Engels, and he embraced
the former's views with enthusiasm. In August, 1862, he returned to
Germany and became a chief writer for the North German Gazette
before it was converted into a Ministerial organ, confining himself to
foreign politics, as he had lost touch with domestic affairs. A month
later. Count von Bismarck was called upon to form a Ministry, and
the journal went over to the Government. Liebknecht at once re-
signed his position, though great inducements were held out to him
in the hope that he would stay. His next move was to join Lassalle's
agitation. A letter written by the secretary of the Universal Associa-
tion to the president in December of this year expresses doubts as to
the new convert's trustworthiness, but these were soon set at rest.
The last clinging suspicion that he was a reactionary was dispelled in
the summer of 1865, when he was ordered to quit Berlin and Prussia.
Taking up his residence at Leipzig he conducted a democratic journal
until it was suppressed in September, 1866. A little later he ventured
to return to Berlin without permission, and the penalty for this act of
defiance was his imprisonment for three months. In autumn of 1867
he was returned to the North German Diet by a Saxon constituency,
and from that time until the present he has been one of the greatest
supports of the German Socialist movement in the manifold capacity
of joumahst, author, agitator and Parliamentary Deputy, and he may
now be regarded as the commander-in-chief of the Social-Democratic
army. He entered the New Reichstag in 1874 as member for a
division in Saxony, and this division he represented until 1881, when
he was elected in the Grand Duchy of Hesse. The reaction of 1887,
however, cost Liebknecht his seat, though his rival's majority was
small. He has suffered other imprisonments than the one named.
In December, 1870, he was apprehended on a charge of high treason
and was detained in prison until March following. In 1872, he was
with Bebel sentenced to two years' imprisonment for publishing
treasonable writings during the French war. In 1881 he was expelled
from Leipzig under the Socialist Law.
Liebknecht cannot be regarded as an original thinker. He is, how-
ever a man of high intellectual attainments and his several pubhshed
works are more than mere compilations for propagandism. Especially
deserving of mention is " Zur Grimd- und Bodenfrage,'' a work on the
land question, expanded from a lecture and first published in 1874.
Present Aspect of the Socialist Movement 28S
Yet, though not claiming the authorship of new theories, Liebknecht
has done a great deal to popularise the political and social theories of
men like Marx and Lassalle. He is through and through a Com-
munist and a Republican, and he is determined upon realising his
ideals by hook or by crook — by fair means if possible, but if not by
fair means then by foul. "I am a Republican,'' he wrote in 1869,
" the fact that I live in a monarchy does not make me a Royalist. We
acknowledge the supreme power, but only as a fact which we shall
tolerate until that power no longer possesses power. We do not sit
idle, but use every weapon which the ruling power has left us in
struggling with that authority."^ And again, " Socialism is no longer
a question of theory but simply one of power, which can be settled
with no Parliament, which can only be settled in the street or on the
battlefield."^ He works for the subversion of the monarchical prin-
ciple and for the establishment of a Free People's State. In this
State all subjects will stand upon the same level : there will be no
classes and no privileges. The political revolution will necessarily
entail a social and economic revolution. Society will come into
possession of the land and instruments of production, and the labourer
will receive the produce of his labour. In all these theories he stands
upon the ground of Marx, at whose feet he sat so long. Upon one
occasion he explained his standpoint to the Reichstag as follows : —
" You reproach us with desiring to introduce community of goods
and to abolish private property : we on the other hand say that
modem society already has community of goods in the bad sense of
the word and is abolishing property ; that is, the produce of labour,
which belongs to the labourer, is taken from him, the real proprietor is
expropriated, and the end of the matter, the revolutionary conclusion,
must be that which Marx has put into the formula, the expropriators —
those who have stolen the real property, which is the produce of
labour, from the true owners, the labourers — will themselves be ex
propriated." Unlike many Socialist agitators, Liebknecht has all
along recognised the importance of winning the rural population. So
long ago as 1869 he wrote to one of his associates : " We do not need
the peasantry in order to bring about a revolution, but no revolution
can take place if the peasantry are against it."^ Thus while others
1 " XJber die politische Stellung der Socialdemokratic"
2 lUd. '
3 Letter of November, 1869, to Bracks.
286 German Socialism.
have confined attention to the industrial classes, he has sought to
induce the rural labourer to take an equal interest in the Socialist
movement, and he has also represented strictly rural or semi-rural
constituencies in the Diet. Like Marx and Lassalle, Liebknecht has
been a careful student of English literature, and among his favourite
authors are Macaulay, Mill, and Lord Beaconsfield, all of whom have
exercised influence upon him. His admiration of Disraeli is, indeed,
boundless, and we find him expressing it not only in his writings but
in Parliament. He gives the author of " Coningsby " and " Sybil," —
works which, from beginning to end, he does not hesitate to take au
sirieux — credit for having " studied the social question and understood
it up to a certain point, and for having drawn a picture of the social
condition of England a generation ago which for truth and skill sur-
passes any of Zola's achievements.'' A year ago the publication of a
German translation of " Sybil," done by Frau Liebknecht, was begun
in a Berlin democratic journal, and in an introduction written for the-
work Liebknecht pronounced the following verdict upon the author o}
the novel, a verdict which, coming from such a quarter, is noteworthy..
" Disraeli," he said, " is the first statesman who recognised the im-
portance of the social question, and who practically interpreted
politics as the science of society. A novelist, he hated the bourgeoisie,
but he nevertheless saw that it would be madness to hinder howrgeois
development. Still, he did not wish to see the hi/wrgeoisie in the State.
His ideal was a monarchy of the people ; the government to be exer-
cised through sovereign and Parliament, and the working class taking
part as a counterbalance against the middle class, the bowrgeoisie. In
regard to Chartism and the movements of the working classes,
Disraeli professed a Radicalism which in Germany would have caused
him to savour of Socialism. The fact is, that all that has of late been
said respecting State Socialism and the duties of the State towards the
'poor man' was said twenty times better by Disraeli forty years ago."
August Bebel — or Ferdinand August Bebel, to give the name in full —
is a man of far coarser mould. By occupation a master turner, and
an author through force of circumstances, his character possesses none
of the traits of refinement which mark that of his intellectual coadjutor.
Bebel is a plain, blunt man, a Mark Antony of an inferior class, but
he can claim the high merit that he does not try to appear what he is
not, Yet if Bebe} lacks in culture, he has abundant energy and will,
- Present Aspect of the Socialist Movement. 287
and the Social-Democratic movement would fare ill if it lost the ser-
vices of this champion. Bebel was born near Cologne, on February
22nd, 1 840, and was educated first at a village and afterwards at a Sunday
school. He passed through the industrial grades of apprenticeship
and journeymanship, and spent his Wanderjahre in South Germany
and Austria from 1858 to i860, settling down in the latter year at
Leipzig. Always reflective and observant, and fond of improving his
mind, he gained both in knowledge and experience of the world by his
travels, and when he began to give attention to labour movements, he
secured a ready ear amongst his fellow workmen. Originally Bebel
had no Socialistic tendencies. He was for some time an adherent of
the Schulze-Delitzsch school, and took, a prominent part in the pro-
motion of working-men's associations on a political and educational
basis, being, in fact, a leading member of the organisation which
called Lassalle into public life. - On the establishment of the Universal
Association, however, he became a violent opponent of Lassalle, and
by the influence he was able to exert upon the working-men's associa-
tions did him great injury. In 1865, he was elected president of the
Leipzig association, and two year later of the Union of German
Working Men's Associations, a congeries of labour strength which, in
association with Liebknecht, he took over to the Internatiohal camp,
thus hastening the conversion of the entire German democratic party
to advanced views. Up to the year 1866, he held an entirely anti-
Socialistic position, but the influence of his patron Liebknecht soon
showed itseL^ d.nd now his views illustrate the adage, plus royaliste
que h >oz. He was returned to the North German Diet by a ^axon
constituency in 1867, and he continued in the German Imperial
Parliament until 1881. In that year he was defeated, but two years
later he obtaitied a seat in a by-election, and he was returned in 1884,
and again last year for a division of Hamburg. In his last contest he re-
ceived 52*5 per cent, of the votes cast, and thus overcame the combined
strength of two antagonistic candidates. His prison record is a heavy
one. In 1869 he was detained three weeks for disseminating doctrines
dangerous to the State. In Dfecember of the following year he was
apprehended on a charge of high treason, and was kept under arrest
for over three months pending investigations. The trial came off" in
March, 1872, and he received sentence of two years' imprisonment,
which he served ^t Huburtusburg. July of the sam? year s£^w an
288 German Socialism.
addition to this penalty of nine months, for the offence of leze majesty.
Finally, the Freiberg trial of July, l886, led to his being deprived of
liberty for a further nine months on account of complicity in a secret
and illegal {i,e., Socialist) organisation. Repeated imprisonment has
given Bebel ample leisure for authorship, and a number of works have
left his vigorous if unrefined pen. Chief among them are " The Ger-
man Peasant War," ^ " Woman in the past, present, and future," ^
and "The Mohammedan- Arabian Period of Civilisation in the East and
Spain," 8 while smaller writings published for the purpose of agitation
are " Christianity and Socialism," " The Parliamentary activity of the
German Reichstag and the Diets," and "Our aims." Nearly all
Bebel's works are interdicted in Germany.
Bebel once summarised his views in a sentence which, so far as he
spoke for himself, is as true as it is short. " We aim," he said, " in
the domain of politics at Republicanism, in the domain of economics
at Socialism, and in the domain of what is to-day called religion at
Atheism."* Here we see Bebel as in a mirror. He is a Republican
and a Socialist, and he is proud of it ; he is without religion, and he is
never tired of parading the fact, even having himself described in
the Parliamentary Almanacs as " religionslos.^' Like his colleague
Liebknecht he is a warm admirer of England, of which be has spoken
as "this model of a Constitutional State, this free England," and he
is prepared to do anything in order to win for the German working
classes the freedom enjoyed in this country. Of all latter-day Socialists
he has with least reserve proclaimed the doctrine of force. The
following passage from " Our Aims " shows Bebel in what for him is a
favourable light : — " There are only two ways of attaining our economic
ends. The one is the gradual supplanting of the private undertakers
by means of legislation, when the Democratic State has been
established. . . , The other and decidedly shorter though also violent
way would be forcible expropriation, the abolition of private under-
takers at one stroke, irrespective of the means to be employed. . . .
If it should come to force, there could be no doubt whatever as to
which side would win in the measuring of physical powers. The
1 " Der deutsche Bauernlo-ieg mit Beriicksichtigung der hauptsachlichsten sozialen Bewe-
gung des Mittelalters." (Brunswick, 1878).
2 " Die Frau in der Vergangenheit, Gegenwart, und Zukunft," (Zurich, 1883).
s "Die mohamedanisch-arabische Kulturperiode in- Orient ijnd Spaniep," (Stuttgart, 1884),
4 Speech in the Reiphatag, March 3ist| i88f.
Present Aspect of the Socialist Movement. 289
masses are on the side of the labouring population, and so also is
moral right. Only let the necessary insight be gained by the masses,
and the struggle is decided. But there is no need to be horrified at
this possible use of force, or to cry murder at the suppression of
rightful existences, at forcible expropriation, and so forth. History
teaches that, as a rule, new ideas only assert themselves through a
violent struggle between their representatives and the representatives
of the past, and that the champions of the new ideas have endeavoured
to strike the latter blows as mortal as possible." Then, after referring
to the French Revolution of 1848, he adds : " We thus see how force
has played its part in various periods of history, so that it is not without
justification that Marx exclaims in his work ' Capital,' in which he
describes the development of capitalist production : ' Force is the
midwife of every old society which is in labour with a new. It is
itself an economic power.' " Bebel's economic theories need not
detain us, for they are not his own. It is, however, worth while glancing
at the model Socialistic State which he has sketched, and the
perfection of which is only to be understood when we bear in mind his
contention that "Socialism is the true representative of culture,
civilisation, and morality. It is the only guarantee for human progress,
for the liberty, equality, and fraternity of mankind. "i The primary
conditions of the Socialistic State are the abolition of personal property
in land and the means of production and communication, the
universality of labour, the equality of all members of society, and the
secularisation of all social institutions. Production must be carried on
upon the principle of association, the basis of association being the
individual commune. When this mode of production is adopted,, the
distinction between employer and employed— a relationship which is
to Bebel that of ruler and oppressed— will disappear. Labour is a
social necessity, and so every member of society who can work must
do so. The duty will, however, be all the pleasanter from the know-
ledge which a worker will have, that what he is doing for others these
are doing for him. . As all the subjects of the Socialistic State will
naturally strive to facilitate and economise labour, an impetus will be
given to the making of technical improvements and inventions, and
the time thus gained will be employed partly in the production of new
commodities for the satisfaction of new needs, and partly in intellectual
1 " Die parlamentarischeThStigkeitdesdeutschen Reichstags." ^
290 German Socialism.
pursuits. When labour is compulsory for both men and womenj a
healthy spirit of emulation and a lofty pride in toil will spring up. No
capable man will be exempted from engaging in a certain class of
industrial or agricultural labour, though choice of occupation will be
free. Not even the learned members of society will escape. The
distinction between head work and hand work will be abolished, and
philosopher and ploughman will take their places side by side as
producers for society. The scholar, the man of science, the artist,
tiie musician may go their own ways in the afternoon, but it is on the
express understanding that they do a fixed amount of muscular work->~
whether it be brick-laying, hedge-clipping, soil-turning, or wood-
chopping — during the morning hours. And, moreover, as Bebel takes
care to say, for the sake of sages who may be absent-minded, they
must do this physical work diligently (JkisHg ■physisch arbeiten), for
that will both benefit society and their own digestive organs. It
follows that there will in future be no distinction between "higher"
and " lower " kinds of labour.
Now-a-days a mechanic thinks himself superior to a day labourer, but
in the Socialistic State there will be no respect of labour, as there will
be none of persons. As onjy work of social use will be performed,
all kinds of labour which fulfil this requirement will be of equal value
to society. It may be expected that all unpleasant and oflfensive work
will in time be performed mechanically, but until the requisite
machines are invented, everybody must take his turn at this work, so
that there may be no such thing as false shame or contempt for useful
labour. The unit of the State will be the fariiily, families will be
grouped in communes, and the communes will elect local adminis-
trations on the principle of universal sufFfage for both sexes. The
central administration at the head of the State will not be a Govern-
ment possessing executive power, but a guiding and directing organi-
sation. Thus the State as now understood will disappear, and with
it all the present political machinery, Ministers, Parliaments, standing
army — for this a national militia will be substituted — police and gen-
darmes, law courts and lawyers, prisons, customs and revenue de-
partments, and the rest. Political crimes and indeed crimes of any
kind will be unknown. Robbery will cease because every man wil
, be able to supply his needs by honest work. There will be no vaga-
bonds ; perjury, forgery, fraud, and fraudulent bankruptcy will exist no
Present Aspect of the Socialist Movement. 29I
longer, since the abolition of private property will remove the cause
of these crimes ; incendiarism will never be committed, since the possi-
bility of hatred will be taken away ; and as for murder, why, asks
Bebel, should there be murder when no man can enrich himself at the
expense of another ? Altogether the condition of society will be
angelic. One great requirement must, however, be fulfilled. The
training of youth must be radically altered, and this will involve new
family relationships. Free marriage or rather free love is to be in-
troduced, woman being economically and socially independent, and
politically equal with man. The training of children will become the
duty of society, which will take charge of infants as soon as they can
leave their parents and will bring up the sexes together. The views
which Bebel represents on this subject, and which are but a debased
imitation of Plato, are, as set forth in detail, not less opposed to comr
mon sense than repulsive to moral instincts. Education will be pro-
vided gratuitously, and on a liberal scale, but the State must have
nothing to do with religion. Holding this to be hostile to progress,
he would like to see it suppressed, but such an act would be opposed
to the SociaUstic principles of equality and freedom. All, therefore,
that he can fairly require is that the State shall give no sanction or
help to religious institutions or agencies. Until the Socialistic State is
realised, he demands that Ministers for Public Worship shall lose
their ofiices, and that the money thus saved shall be applied to the
purposes of education and culture. The physical trainirig of the young
is to be carefully looked after, and he proposes that just as children
are prepared in school for their vocation, so they shall be taught how
to discharge the military duties of citizens. If boys learned military
exercises during school years little further training would be
necessary at a later time, and barrack life and parade service would
be superfluous. The citizen army of the future will be far superior,
both in technical efficiency and moral status, to the standing army,
and it will be a less drain on the physical strength and the resources
of the nation. But, further, in order that time, labour and expense
may be spared, and the Socialistic idea be developed to the fullest
extent, great warehouses and magazines will replace shops, and the
work of the household will no longer be done independently, but
collectively in vast establishments for feeding, cooking, washing,
bathing, and heating. Woman, thus relieved of the duties at once of
292 German Socialism.
wife and mother, will be set to work for society in various useful ways.
For society is to be regenerated in such a way that all its members
will be mutually dependent and helpful, and all will pursue the com-
mon end of universal happiness.
Such are the two men who now stand at the head of the German
Social-Democratic movement. There are other more or less pro-
minent leaders, such as Herren Hasenclever,'^ Von Vollmar, Singer,
Grillenberger,^ Auer, and Dietz, but above all these Liebknecht and
Bebel tower head and shoulders. The one is the complement of the
other ; separate they would both lack the qualities requisite to the
direction of a great party, but together they make up as much of a
Lassalle as suffices to preserve unity in organisation and resolute
«5nRr5y in agitation.
INDEX.
Alexander II., Murder of Emperor, 262, 2^2.
Anarchism, 92, 245, 246.
Association, production by, 84, 140-143, 145 et seq., 204-213.
Auer, Ignaz, 273, 290.
Baden, political disturbances in, 20, 21, 25, 30, 31, 32,
Bakunin, Michael, 92, 241.
Bavaria, political movements in, 20, 21, 25,
Beaconsfield, Lord, 186, 284.
Bebel August, 168, 223-229, 242, 247-291.
Becker Bernhard, 145, 151, 153, 156, 189, 219, 220.
Berg, Frau von, 18.
Berlin Revolution, 25-33, 130.
Bernays, Lazarus, 92,
Bismarck, Prince, 7, 8, 11, 12, 13, 37, 63, 127, 142.
„ ,, and Ferdinand Lassalle, 8, 155, 167-170, 186.
„ „ and the Socialist movement, 37, 38, 167, 247-280.
,, „ and State Socialism, 12, 13, 167-170, 213, 254, 267-274.
Blanc, Louis and the Atelier social, 208, 212, 213
Boeckh, August, 116, 130, l8l.
Borne, Ludwig, 193.
Bowrgeoisie, Lassalle's definition of, 150.
Brandenburg, Count F. W. von, 32, 120.
Brandes, Georg, 114.
Brunsvfick and the 1830 Revolution, 20, 25.
BUlow, Hans von, 114, 126, 152, 179.
Bucher, Lothar, 142, 180.
U
294 Index.
Cabet, 43, 44.
Camphausen, Ludolf, 32.
Capitalistic production in Germany, development of, 33-37.
Carlyle, Thomas, 24, 34, 124, 158.
Cobden, Richard, 160, 212.
Communism in Germany, 39-60, 91-113.
Communist Manifesto, 53, 94, 113, 234-237, 291.
Communists, League of, 53, 94, 96.
Constitutional movements in Germany, 20-33.
Co-operative movement in Germany, 135, 136, 137.
Co-operative production, 45, 46, 51, 141, 142, 143, 145 tt seq.
Dammer, Otto, 141.
Dietz. J. H. W., 259, 273, 290.
Disraeli, Isaac, 114 ; B., 284.
Donniges, Helenevon, 174-183.
Duhring, Eugen, 53, 59, 87, 96.
Diisseldorf rising, the, 120-123.
Engels, Friedrich, 2, 39, 61, 87, 88, 89, 92-98, 120, 220, 234, 291.
>■ •> life. 52, S3. 54-
„ „ Socialistic theories, S4-S9-
English influence on German Socialists, I, 2.
Ense, Karl August Varnhagen von, 116.
Faucher, Julius, 149.
Fawcett, Mr., and Lassalle, 9.
Feuerbach, Ludwig, 92.
Fichte, 16, 39, 127.
Forster, Friedrich, 126.
Fourier, 43, 44, 208.
Frederick William II., 32 ; III., 19, 23 ; IV., 23-33, 62
Preiheit, the, 260, 264.
Freiligrath, Ferdinand, 95.
Fritzsche, F. W., 223, 248, 259, 263.
Frohme, K. J, E., 273.
Gallows Ministry, the, 32.
Germany, revolutionary movements in, 20-33, 95. 120-123, '29.
Index. 295
Grillenberger, Karl, 290.
Grun, Karl, 59, 60, 93.
Hanover, political movements in, 20, 25.
Hardenberg, Prince K. A. von, 18, 19.
Hasenclever, Wilhelm, 223, 230, 231, 248, 290, 291.
Hasselmann, Wilhelm, 11, 231, 248, 259, 261.
Hatzfeldt, Countess Sophie von, 1 17-120, 123, 170, 172-182, 219, 222.
HSusser, Ludwig, 130.
Hecker, Friedrich, 30, 31, 32.
Hegel, 16, 59, 96, 97, 127, 200.
Heine, Heinrich, 30,92, 93, 115, 116, 182, 185.
Held, Adolph, 7, 86, 190.
Hervfegh, Georg, 30, 92, 152, 220.
Hess, Moses, 93, 152, 220.
Hesse, political movements in, 20.
Hodel's attempt on the Emperor William, 37, 249, 272.
Hofstetten, von, 171, 180, 220.
Humboldt, Alexander von, 8, ii6, 121, 125.
International Association, the, 96, 98, 221, 224, 234-246, 251, 285.
Jacoby, Johann, 92.
Jager, E., 7, 145.
Joerg, J. E., 145.
Jena, the disaster of, 18.
Ketteler, Bishop von, 35, 165, 166.
Kotzebue, murder of, 20.
Labour, wages of, 34, 35.
„ productivity of, 74.
,, money, theoiy of, 68, 81-84.
Labourers, early degradation of the rural, 17, 18.
„ mortality amongst, 35, 36.
Labouring classes, organisation of the, 133-144
Lange, F. A., 7, 141.
Lassalle, Ferdinand, 7, 8, 9, 16, 39, 59. 61, 77 281-291
„ relationships with Prince Bismarck, 8, 155, 167 170, 186
296 Index.
Lassalle and Rodbertus, 77, 132, 145-159.
parentage and youth, 114, 115, 116.
dislike of Judaism, 114.
relationships with Heinrich Heine, 115, 116, 117, 182.
literary work, 116, 123, 124, 126, 127, 158.
and the Hatzfeldt lawsuit, 117-120, 123.
and the Dusseldorf rising, 120-123.
trials and imprisonments, 121-123, 129-132, 156, 160-163, 196-198.
theory of the State and constitution, 122, 123, 128, 201, 205, 209,
[210.
and revolution, 122, 200, 201.
as agitator, 124, 128 «< stq., 191-198.
in society, 125, 126.
personal characteristics, 125, 126, 184-198.
his duels, 126, 179-181,
and the organisation of the working classes, 133-144,
Socialistic views, 140, 141, 145-157, 199-218.
and the Productive Association, 141, 142, 143, 145-157, 160, 205
[214.
and the Universal Association, 144, 149, 151, 158-173, 219-233.
arid the Press, 149, 150, 159, 209,
illness, 153, 158, 159, 172, 173.
death, 174-183.
theory of acquired rights, 214-218.
Liebig, Baron Justus von, 49.
Liebknecht, Wilhelm, 2, 150, 156, 198, 220-231, 242, 247-291,
Lindau, Paul, 172, 195, 196.
Louis Philippe, 24.
Louis L of Bavaria, 25 ; II., 25.
Malthus, 52, 67, 211.
Mannheim assassination, the, 20.
March Revolution in Berlin, the, 25-33, ,
Mario, Karl, see WinkdhUch.
Marx, Karl, 2, 16, 39, 44, 52, 53, 54, 59, 61, 86-90, 120, 121, 183, 220, 281-
[291.
,, relationships with Engels, 52, 53, 92-98, 234, 235.
„ and surplus-value, 55, 86, 87, 88, 98-113.
„ and Rodbertus, 86-90,
,, parentage and youth, 91,
Index. 297
Marx, Karl, political agitation, 92-96, 120, 121.
„ expulsion and exile, 93, 94, 95.
„ and the International Association, 96, 9S, 221, 234-246.
„ economic theories, 98-113.
„ and the normal workday, 108, 109.
,, and the "expropriation of the expropriators," 112, 113.
Maximilian II. of Bavaria, 25.
Mehring, Franz, 8, 114, 145, 281.
Metternich, Prince, 22.
Meyer, Rudolph, 7, 10, 61, 63, 87, 88, 145.
Mill, John Stuart, 9, 284.
Mommsen, Theodor, 130.
Most, II, 230, 248, 260, 261, 291.
Napoleon I. (and Prussia), 16, 18, 98; III., 98, 237.
Niederwald plot, 267.
Nobiling's attempt on the Emperor William, 37, 251, 272.
Owen, Robert, 63, 82.
Peel, Sir Robert, 160.
Pertz, Georg Heinrich, 130.
Poland, revolution in, 21, 30, 2J7.
Political parties in Germany, 138.
Population, Winkelblech and, 52.
Press restrictions in Germany, 19-22, 134, 135, 256, 257.
Progress and poverty, 72, 73, 152.
Productive Association, 141, 142, 143, I4S-i57j i6o> 205-214.
Profit-sharing, von Thunen and, 41.
Proudhon, 59, 93, 208, 214.
Prussia, constitution granted to, 23, 24, 32, 33, /
„ revolutionary movements in, 25-33, 53, iio-123, 130
„ constitutional struggles in, 25-33, 127-iy!.
Puttkamer, Minister von, 265, 272. '
Ranke, Leopold von, 130. \ m
" Recht auf Arbeit," Prince Bismarck and the,t jg, 270.
Reichstag, Socialism in the German, l, 247-28<^.
Rent, Rodbertus' theory of, 67-73.
298
Index.
Revolution, French, of 1789, 16, 19, 129, 199.
» » l*i30. 20-
„ „ 1848, 24, 94, 120, 199, 287.
Ricardo, 62, 66, 67, 74, 96, 140, 210, 211.
Richter, Eugen, 167.
Rodbertus, Karl, 39, 42, 114, 159. 168, 192, 193, 253.
parentage and life, 61-65.
economic theories, 65-90.
published works, 65, 66.
theory of wages, 67, 68.
theory of rent, 68-73.
theory of pauperism, 73.
and laiasez-faire, 76.
theory of the State, 77, 78.
and Ferdinand Lassalle, 77, 132, 145- ISS-
and income-property, 78, 84, 85.
and the normal workday, 78-82.
and Karl Marx, 86-90,
Rossmassler, Professor E. A., 139, 141.
Ruge, Arnold, 92.
Sand, Karl, 20; Georg, 30, 113.
Saxony, risings in, 20, 31, 95.
Say, 67, 211.
SchafHe, Albert, 7, 52, 253.
Scheel, Hans von, 7, 253.
Schelling, H. von, 129.
Schmidt, Julian, 127.
Schon, Theodor von, 18.
Schulze-Delitzsch, Hermann, agitation of, 135-143, 158, 285.
Schweitzer, Jean Baptista \on, 152, 171, 220-231, 281.
Silesian weavers' rising, the. 34, 166.
Singer, Paul, 275, 290, 292.
Sismondi, 67.
Smith, Adam, 66, 211.
Socialism, definition of, 2, 3, t.
Socialism in Germany, strenf n of the movement, I, 233, 248, 274-278.
„ origin, 15-38, 139.3
,, early theorists, 39 .0.
„ of Karl Rodberti 66-90.
Index. 299
Socialism of Karl Marx, 98-123.
„ of Ferdinand Lassalle, 140 e< seg., 199-218.
Socialist Working Men's Party, formation of, 231.
Socialist Law, 13, 37, 249-280.
Socialist Leaders to-day, 281-290. ,
Socialistic programmes, Chemnitz, 224, 225 ; Eisenach, 226, 227; Gotha, 231.
Social-Democracy, 219-234, 247-292.
Social-Democratic Working Men's Party, formation of, 226.
Social-Democrat, 220-224, 260-267.
State Socialism, 4, 12, 13, 208, 213, 264-274, 292.
Stein, Baron vom, 18, 19.
Stein and Hardenberg reforms, 18, 19.
Struve, Gustav von, 30, 31.
Surplus-value, Karl Marx and, 54, 86, 87, 88, 98-113.
Thunen, Heinrich von, 39, 253.
„ ,, his life, 40-42.
„ ,, sympathy with the working classes, 41.
„ „ economic theories, 41, 42.
Trendelenburg, Adolf, 130.
Universal Working Men's Association, the German, 144, 149 et seg,, 158-173,
[219-233.
Unruh, Hans Victor von, 120, 121.
Vahlteich, Karl Julius, 154, 171. 23°. 248.
Viereck, Louis, 273.
Vollmar, G. H. von, 273, 290, 291.
Wages of labour, 34, 35.
Wagner, Adolph,7, 8, 61, 62, 146, 209, 253.
Weitling, Wilhelm, 38.
„ life and agitation, 42, 43, 44.
„ „ Communistic theories, 44-48.
William, Emperor of Germany, 126 ; attempted assassination of, 37, 249, 250.
Winkelblech, Professor, 39.
„ „ life of, 48, 49, SO
„ Socialistic theories of, $0, 51, 52.
300
index.
Wirth, Moritz, 83, 84 ; Max, 149.
Wolff, Wilhelm, 95, 120.
' Wurtemberg, political disturbances in, 20, 21, 25.
Wuttke, Heinrich, 142, 220
Zachariae, H. A., 691
Cffuiait &> Ca, Limited, Primers, PeriJh
SOCIAL SCIENCE SERIES.
aOJLRLET CLOTH, EACH »b. fid.
1. Wort and Wa^et. Prof. J. B. Thomld Rosbsi.
" Notfabw that Pnfeasor Sogers writes caD fail to be of InUrMt to tboatfitM
peopl*."— ^lAoiffum. ^^
S. (ttTlUMkUoa : It* Oauie and Cure, Edwabd Oaspbhiul
" K« passing pUoe of polemlos, but a psrmanent possssBion."— ScoWiiA Rtview.
t. QidDtMMnee of Boolallsn. Dr. SoiuirLa.
•' PTMissly Hm manual needed. Brief, lucid, fair and wise."— irWuA WtMy.
4. Darwinism and Polltin. D. Q. Ritchie, M.A. (Ozon.).
New Bdition, with two additional Essaya on Human BvoLnTioN.
" Oae of the most suggestive books we have met with." — IMerary World.
(. RallglOB of Bosialism. E. SsLroBT Bix
t, BtUa cr BMlaliim. B. Bbltobt BjlZ.
" Mr. Bax is by far the ablest ef the English exponents of Socialism. "—ITutmirutir
Mtview.
T, fke DrlBk Qaution. Dr. Katb Kitombu^
" Pleaty of interesting matter for reflection. '-« ^apMt.
& VmaaUaa af Oaaaral Happlaess. Prof. M. Maoiiiu.u(.
** A isaseaod SMMoat of tJie most adTanosd and most enlightened utilitarian d«e-
Isteo in a eUar and readable form." — BcoUman.
I. ■■fand'a Idaal, t». Edwabd Oabtbhtbb.
" The literary (teww la unmistakable, their freshness of style, their huioeur, and
their enthusiasm. "—Pall MM OomUi.
10. ■ealallam In England. Sidmby Wbbb, LL.B.
"The best general riew ef the subject from the modem Socialist !Ai%."—At%nimMm,
U. FrlBoe Blamarek and State ■eoiallsm. W. H. Dawsoh.
" A sucdBot, well-digested rsTiew of Qerman social and economic legislation since
1870."— AMimUy Mmitv.
11. eodwlB"! PaUtlaal Jiietlea (On Property). Edited by H. S. Sai.t.
"Shows Oedwln at his best ; with an interestlag and informiag introduction.'*—
0lat§ov Btrmid.
18. Tha Mory •( the Frenoh BavolntioB. B. Bblfobt Bax.
" A tmatwerlhy entllne."— ScotiTnan.
14. The 0«-Op«ratl¥a Oammanwealth. Lattbbnob QBOiii.iniB.
" An independent exposition ef the Soclallsni of the Marx school."- Ckntmiwnirif
lUtfUw.
K. Bnays and Aidteseei. Bbbnabs Bosamqdbt, M.A. (Oxaa.),
" Ought to be in the hands af every student of the NtaMtoenth Oentnry spirit. "—
Scha.
" Ufa one can cemplain of net being able to anderstand what Mr. Bosaaqnet
means."— />«« Ifall eautte.
M. aharlty OrfaBlsatlan. 0. S. Loom, Seoretary te Charity Organisation
Sooiaty.
" A parfeot little manual."— ^ the anieHenktlaa
of the condition of the poor."— Morning Pott.
U, The New York State Reformatory at Blmira. Auixabdbb Wimtbb.
With Prefaoa by Hatbloox Bllib.
" A valuable contribution to the literature of penalsff ."— Jlaci and Wliitt.
SOCIAL SCIENCE S&EIEB— {Continued).
8|l OoHmon 8«nra abont Women. T. W. HiesntlOB,
" An admirable collection of papen, adTooatiac la tha Boat llheial apirit the
•mancipation of women.** — Wmnan't Herald.
n. The Unearned Inorement. W. H. DiwaoH.
"A concin but comprehenalve Tolome."— Jck*.
S2. Oar Deatlny. Lausbroi QBOHLnm.
" A Tery Tigoroua little book, dealing with tbe Inflnence of SocialUm on moral*
and religion. —Daily Chronicle.
98. The Workin^-Claaa Hovement In Imtrloa.
Dr. Edwabd and B, Mabz Atilin*.
" Will glTe a good idea of the condition of the working clauea in America, and »t
the varioiu organisations which they have formed.**— &ot« leaitr.
94, Lunry. Prof. Emui db LATii,an.
" An eloquent plea on moral and economical grounda for aimplicity of life.**—
Ueademy.
96. Tha Land and the Labonrera. Bev. 0. W. Stdbbs, M.A.
"Thia admirable book should be einnlated In every Tillage in the country." —
Momchetter Swirdian.
96. Tba Evolution of Property. Paul IiATABOua..
" Will proTe interesting and profitable to all students of eoonomio history." —
Beotaman.
97. Orlmo and Ita Caaaea. W. Douslas Mobbiboh.
" Can hardly fail to anggeat to all readera aeveral new and pregnant reflectiona or
the aubject." — Anti-Jacobin.
98. Prinoiplea of State Interferenoa. D. Q. Bitohib, M.A.
" An intereating contribution to the controversy on the fnnctiona of the State.**—
Ulaigov Herald.
99. Qerman Bociallam and F. Laaaallt. W. H. Dawiob.
" Ab a biographical history of German Socialistic moTements during this century
it may be accepted as complete.'* — Britith Weekly.
•0. The Pnrae and the Conaoience. H. If. Thohtbon, B.A. (Cantab.).
" Shows common sense and fairness in his arguaenta."- Scetiman.
81. Origin of Property in Land. Fustil db Coulangbi. Edited, with an
Introdaotory Chapter on the English Manor, by Prof. W. J. Ashley, M.A.
" Hii Tiews are clearly stated, and are worth reading." — Saturday Review.
KL The Enjliah Republic. W. J. Linton. Edited by Kinbton Fabebs.
" Characterised by that Tigorous intellectuality which has marked his long life of
literary and artistic activity." — Glasgow Herald.
SS. The Co-Operatlve Movement. Beatbice Pottbb.
" Without doubt the ablest and most philoaophlcal analysis of the Co-Operative
Movement which has yet been produced. —Spmiibfl-.
84. neighbourhood Guilds. Dr. Stanton Con.
" A moat suggestive little book to anyone intereated in the aocial question."—
Pall Mall OazeUt.
96. Modern Humaniata. J. M. Bobbbtboh.
*' Mr. Robertson's style is excellent — nay, even brilliant — and his purely literary
oritlciama bear tbe mark of much acumen." — Tinus.
86. Outlooks from the New Standpoint. E. BELroRT Bax,
" Mr. Baz is a very acute and accomplished student of history and economica.*'
— Daily Chronicle.
W. Distributing Co-Operative Societies. Dr. IiQiai PizzAXiaLio. Edited by
F. J. Shbll.
" Dr. Pizzamiglio baa gathered together and grouped a wide array of facts and
statistics, and they speak for themselves." — Spiaker.
88- OoUectlvlam and Socialism. By A. Kacqubt. Edited by W. Hbafobd.
" An admirable criticism by a well-known French politician of the New Socialism
of Man and Lassalle."— i)oiJy Chronicle.
SOCIAL SCIENCE SEEIE&— {Continued).
89. The London Programmo. Sidnby Webb, LL.»,
" Brimful of exoellaat idcu."— ^nti-^OMMn.
«). The Modern State. Paul Lbroi BBAULiBn.
"A most int«re»tlng book; well worth a plaoe In the library of eyery social
Inquirer."— i». B. ISamomut.
41. The Condition of Labonr. Henry Gbobob.
" Written with striking ability, and sura to attract httmli»n."—Newcautle ChnmieU.
42. The Revalutlonary Spirit preceding the French ReTolntion,
Fblix Eooquain. With a Preface by Frofeaeor Hhxlby.
' The student of the French Bevolntion will find in it an excellent introduction to
tne ntttdy of that catastrophe."— /Seodnuin.
48. The Btudenfa Han. Edwabd Avelino, D.So.
" One of the most practically useful of any in the Series."— SfoipoM Herald.
44. k Short Hiitorr of Parliament. B. 0. Sbottowb, M.A. Ozon.).
"Deals very carefully and completely with this side of constitntional history."—
Spectator,
46. Poverty : Its Genesis and Exodns. J. O. Godabs.
" He states the problems with great force and cleamese."— JT. B. Scmomut.
46. The Trade Policy ot Imperial Federation. Maubics H. Hebvit.
" An interesting contribution to the discussion."— PubliiAeri' Circular.
47. The Dawn of Radloallsm. J. Bowles Daly, LL.D.
" Forma an admirable picture of an epoch more pregnant, perhaps, with political
instruction than any other in the world's history "—J>«tJy Tehirt/jh.
48. The DeatltHte Allan In Qreat BrItalB. Abnold White ; MoNTAeuB Cbackar-
TBORPE, Q.C. ; W. A. M'Arthdb, M.P.; W. H. Wilkins, &o.
"Much Taluabie information concerning a burning question of the day."— Timet.
49. Ulagltlmaey and the Influtnea of laasou on Conduet,
Albebi LETriMawBLL, U.D.
We hare not often seen a work based on statistics which is more continuously
Interesting."- ITeKmi'tuter Eenevi.
BO. Oommarolal Orisea of the H ineteenth Century. H. M. Htndkan.
" One of the best and most permanently useful Tolumes of the Series."- Zfiterary
Optnien.
61. The State and Penaloni la Old Age. J. A. SriiiiDXB and Abtbub Acland, M.P.
" A careful and cautious examination ot the question."- I'inus.
HL The Fallaay of laving. Join M. Bobebtsoit.
" A plea tor the reorganisation of our social and Industrial system." — Speaker.
18. The Iriih Peasant. Anok.
' A real contribution to the Irish Problem by a close, patient and dispassionato
Investigator."- Daily Ckrtnide.
fi4. The Blleata of Haohlnary an Wagei. Prof. J. S. Nickolson, D.So.
"Ably reasoned, clearly stated, impartially written."— Xitsrary World.
K. Tha Social Horlion. Anoh.
"A really admirable little book, bright, clear, and nnconTentionaL"— Aatly
Chronicle.
56. loclallim, Utopian and Sclentiflo. Fbsdebice ENasLa.
" The body of the book is still fresh and striking." — Daily Chronide.
57. Land BatlonallMtlon. A. B. Wallace.
" The moat instructive and convincing of the popular worts on the subject."—
National R^ormer.
68. The Ethic of Uinry and Intereat. Bev. W. Blibbaxs.
" The work is marked by genuine ability."- MrM Mriti$lt Africulluraliit.
69. The Bmanolpatlon of Women. Adblb Cbepaz.
" By far the most comprehensive, luminous, and penetrating work on this question
that I have yet met w\ta."—Sxtr»cl/r»m Mr. Olaostoni's rrtfaee.
MX The Eight Hours' guestion. Jobn M. Bobbbtsoh.
"A very cogent and sustained argument on what is at present the unpopular
fide."— Tim«.
n. Drunkenness. 6eobȣ B, Wilson, M.B.
" Well written, carefully reasoned, free from cant, and full of sound sense."—
Ifationml Obteruer.
IS, Tha New Reformation. Bahisin Balhtobth.
" A striking presentation of the naeeent religion, how best to realize the personal
and social ideal."- ir««imi»«(w Xniaii
68. Tha Agricultural Labourer. T. E. EBBBaw
" A short summary of his position, with appendlees on wages, education, alle^
ments, etc., etc."
61 Ferdinand Laisalle as a Social Baformer. B. Bebhsteoi.
" A worthy addition to the Social Science Series."— iferM Jri«jk Bconmitt.
SOCIAL SCIENCE SERmS— (Continued).
•6. BntflMid'i Foreign Trada In XlXth Otntnry. A. L. Boitlbt.
" Full of valuable informatioo, carefully compiled."— Times.
W. Tbeery and Polloy of Laboar Proteotlon. Dr. ScnAinx.
" An attempt to syitematiM a coneerratlTt programme of reform,"— Jfan. Gumrd,
97. Hlitory of Roohdala Ploneen. G. J. Holyoaks.
" Brought down from 184A to the Rochdale CongreM of IStt."— Co-Op. /fnn.
66. Rights of Women, M. daTKAOOBSEi.
"An admirable atorehouRe of preeedente, ooBrenlentlyanancad." — Daily Chron.
69. Dvelllnji of the People. Lockb Wortbihoton.
*'A valuable contribution to one of the meet preedng prableme of the day." —
IklAly ChronicU.
70. Hoan, Wafee, and Produetlen. Dr. Bsbhtako.
" Characterlied by all Profeiaor Brentano'i elearnen of Mtj\e."—BconamK JInitu.
71. Klse of Modern Demooraoy, Oh. BoBsaAUO.
** A very useful little volume, oharaoteriaed by exact research." — DUily CknmieU.
n. Land Systems of instralasla. Wm. Em.
"Exceedingly valuable at the present time of depreaelon and difficulty."—
Sttti. Mai.
78. The Tyranny of Boclallsm. Y'^ai Outot. Pret by J. H. Iibtt.
" M. Ouyot is smart, lively, trenchant, and Interesting." — Daily ChinnKU.
74. Population and the Social System. Dr. Nith.
" A very valuable work of an Italian eoonomlst." — ITeit. ils«.
76. The Laboar Qnastion. T. Q. Spyxbb,
" Will be found extremely useful." — Tinut.
76. British Freenomen. 0. C. Stopbb.
" The most complete study of the Woman's SnBrage qneetton.'— ^^liaA Worn. Rn.
77. Suicide and Insanity. Dr. J. E. Stbahah.
" An interesting monograph dealing exhaustively with the subject." — Times.
78. K History of Tithes. Bev. H. W. Oubeb.
" Hay be recommended to all who dealra an accurate idea of the subject."—!). Oirim.
79. Three KoDtha In a Workahop. P. Qouu, with Pref. by Prof. Blt.
" A vivid picture of the atatt of mind of Oerman workmen."— Jfanu. Ouard.
80. Danrlnlam and Race Profrasa. Prof. 3. B. Hatoxatt.
" An interesting subject treated in an attiaeMve fashion." — Qltuimi HtrtiU..
81. Laoal Taxation and Finance, O, H, Bldudbn.
eS. Perils to Britlah Trada. B. Bmwia.
88. The Social Contract. 3. 3. Bvuibiah. Bdlted by H. J. Toxut.
84. Labour upon the Land. Bdited by J. A. HosgOH, M.A.
86. Moral Pathology. Abthdb B. GiLua, M.D,, B.Se.
86. Parasitism, Organic and Sodal. Uasiabt and Vahdbbtbldb.
87. Allotments and Small Holdlnfa. J. L. Gbxm.
88. Meoey and Its Relatione to Priaaa. L, L. Fbios.
89. Sober by lot of Parliament. F. A. Uackhikii.
90. Workera on their Industrlea. V. W. Gai,toh.
91. Revolution and Ooanter-RavoIutloB. Eabi. Maxz.
92. Over-Produotlon and Crises. K, BosBamToeL
98. Local OoTemment and State Aid. 8, J. Ohaphaii,
•4, YlUa
Cornell University Library
HX 279.D2 1899
German socialism and Fer«i|"a"^„[:,S"^'
3 1924 002 265 407